A "Captain
Scarlet & the Mysterons" story
"Had a nice
stay on the ground?"
At the helm of
the Spectrum Passenger Jet which was bringing them from Los Angeles back to
Cloudbase, Captain Blue addressed the question to Rhapsody Angel, sitting in
the co-pilot’s seat. She answered with
a large smile.
“Indeed,” she
said, “I don’t often have occasion to go down there. I was actually able to catch up with that old friend I worked
with a couple of years ago at the Federal Agents Bureau. He has opened a private investigation office
in LA. Looks like he’s very
successful.”
“No kidding!”
Blue replied. “I bet he asked you to go
and work with him?”
“I told him I
had… other career plans.”
“I’m sure he was
crushed,” Blue noted, smiling.
He and Rhapsody
had been in Los Angeles for the past week, both on official Spectrum
business. After four days working with
the officers of Spectrum Los Angeles concerning the investigation of suspected
terrorist activities in the area – during which she had met with her old friend
– Rhapsody’s help had no longer been necessary; she then took advantage of the
free time to visit the city with her friend.
During that time,
however, Captain Blue had been busy checking on the security of the Los Angeles
Headquarters, and had not been able to free himself before the very day of
their return to Cloudbase. He and Rhapsody had not been able to see each other
this past week until the moment they boarded the SPJ.
“I noticed you had time to do some shopping
too,” he said, giving a sharp nod toward the cabin in the back. “You must have bought something for
everyone onboard Cloudbase.”
Rhapsody
laughed. “Not quite! But enough not to create any jealousy
amongst the senior staff, anyway.” She
stole a glance in his direction. “I
know you wanted to buy something for Karen, too. Were you able to tear yourself away from work for a few hours to
do that?”
Blue grunted.
“The last three days in particular have been very busy. I got about three consecutive hours for
myself earlier today,” he admitted.
“Thankfully, that was enough to run off to the shops. When Colonel White gave me this assignment,
I made a call before leaving Cloudbase and placed a special order. I hope it has turned out right and that
Karen will like it.”
Rhapsody raised a
brow. “It will surprise me if she
doesn’t like it,” she retorted. “You
know she worships the ground you walk on. So whatever you buy her, she’ll adore
it.”
“I just hope this
thing will be the right size,” Blue
retorted with a sigh. “If Karen had
been able to come with us…”
“And that would
have spoiled the surprise!” Rhapsody protested. She smiled mischievously.
“And anyway, after the stunt you pulled in Las Vegas, I doubt the
colonel would allow you both anywhere near that city in any foreseeable
future.” She chuckled. "He will want to avoid any further
temptation for you to elope.”
Blue grimaced.
"We've learned our lesson, don't worry.
Besides, there’s no need anymore, since he has more or less given us his
blessing to get married eventually."
“Perfect. Because no-one on Cloudbase would miss that
for the world, so you two had better not try
to secretly elope again, if you know what’s good for you.”
“I’ll pass the
message to Karen,” Blue said with a short laugh.
“And when
'eventually' might the wedding be?” asked Rhapsody.
Blue
shrugged. "We haven't set a date
yet… And what about you?”
“What about me?”
“You and
Paul. I seem to recall that you haven't
set a date either," Blue pointed out.
Rhapsody shook
her head slowly. "No… and neither
have we talked to the colonel. You know
Paul's feelings about this. While there
is this continuing war with the Mysterons…"
"Mmm-hmmm… I know.
He wants to wait until it’s finished.
Has it ever occurred to you that it might go on for years and
years?"
"I know… but
I’m hoping that he might change his mind…”
She smiled. “…eventually.”
“Seems to me that
makes a lot of ‘eventually’, don’t you think?”
Blue replied, smiling in turn.
“I think that
makes us hopeful people, Captain.”
Blue laughed
openly. “Sure does at that…”
A beeping sound
coming from the control panel attracted their attention, and they looked ahead;
through the cockpit windshield, they could see their destination, growing
bigger as they approached it.
“Cloudbase in view,”
Blue announced, flicking up a switch.
“Auto-pilot deactivated. Taking back
control of the plane.”
“S.I.G.,”
Rhapsody answered, taking the same official tone, and checking the information
on the computer. “We’ll touch down in
about… five minutes. Contacting
Cloudbase Control Tower…”
“It’ll be good to
be back home,” Blue muttered, while Rhapsody was preparing to make the
call. “I wonder what the others have
been up to while we were gone… I heard
it was pretty quiet up there…”
“It’s difficult
to imagine Cloudbase being ‘quiet’ at all,” Rhapsody retorted. “Especially with Captain Ochre and Captain
Magenta probably up to their usual tricks…
If you know what I mean.” She
spied Blue’s knowing smile just as she was making the call to the Control Tower
to announce their arrival.
That’s certainly true, mused Blue. Life on Cloudbase is
ANYTHING but quiet…
* * *
Upon seeing his
friend and colleague Captain Magenta enter the Officers' Lounge, Captain Ochre
raised his head, his eyes momentarily leaving the chess board set on the table
between him and Captain Grey. In the
back of the lounge, Captain Scarlet barely glanced over the top of his
newspaper to see who the new arrival was, before going back to his reading.
“Hey, Pat… What have you
got there?”
Captain Magenta
had a large, multicoloured box stuck under his left arm; hearing Ochre's call,
he strode toward him, a broad grin on his lips. “I’ve got something to show you, guys. Fresh from this morning’s shuttle from London.” He sat down and put the box on the table,
right next to the chess board, almost on top of it. That made Grey turn to him in annoyance.
“Hey! Be careful where you
put that! You almost knocked the pieces
down…”
“Forget your chess board, Grey,” Magenta retorted with a
dismissive shrug. “That is so boring… here is something much more interesting.”
“How can you know chess is boring if you never play?” Grey asked
with a frown. “You’re a philistine,
Magenta.”
“Chess is all about strategy, and defence, and taking your
opponent right where you want him to go,” Scarlet added from behind his
newspaper. “It’s a good exercise in our
line of work.”
Magenta rolled his eyes.
“It might be good for you, Paul, but for these two…” Scarlet lowered his newspaper in time to see
Magenta shake his head pathetically, turning to face both Ochre and Grey. “I
swear, you two are becoming more and more like Scarlet and Blue when you’re
playing with that board. And that’s starting to worry me… ”
“Hey!” Scarlet protested, putting the paper aside and getting to
his feet. “Whatever do you mean?”
“Especially coming from you, Rick,” Magenta continued, without
taking notice of Scarlet’s protests.
“Brad I can understand… We know what to expect from him.”
“What do you mean by that?” Grey retorted in a warning tone. “That I am boring and predictable?”
Scarlet, who had joined the three of them, cleared his throat, but
kept silent. Grey stared at him, before
fixing Ochre and Magenta with a look of enquiry. He was somewhat annoyed that none of his colleagues would answer
his question. Instead, Ochre had turned
with interest to the box that Magenta was opening. “Oh, that’s grand! So
it’s arrived?”
“What’s arrived?” Grey
asked, unsure whether he should feel more frustrated at being ignored – or that
his friends should be more interested in the contents of that big box. They watched in curiosity as Magenta, his
smile becoming broader, almost dramatically took a large object out of the
box. He handed it to Grey, who started
turning it around in his hands.
“Now, if you want a strategy game, so much more exciting than
chess, I’ve got just the thing.”
Grey stared at the object for a second, before lifting a
brow. “Electronic goggles?” he asked
Magenta.
“More than that,” Ochre retorted.
He fished out another pair of goggles from the box, and passed it along
to Scarlet, standing beside him. “Those
are state-of-the-art, the finest piece of equipment in the ultimate in 3D
digital entertainment.”
“I see.” Grey exchanged glances with Scarlet, who shrugged. In fact, the only thing that both could see
was that Ochre also knew what all this was about. Unlike themselves.
Grey sighed deeply. “I
know I don’t usually strike you as
being the most computer-minded person
onboard, but I can recognise what they are – do I have to remind you that all of us had to train with computerized
flight simulators – and in my case, sea-navigation simulators – for the
different aspects of our past or present jobs?”
“Gee… For a guy who
usually doesn’t talk that much, Grey, you sure can string mean sentences
together when you want to.”
“Oh, stop pestering me, Ochre,” Grey retorted with obvious
annoyance. “Now, would you care to tell
me what this is all about?”
“Tell us,” Scarlet
corrected, walking around the group to sit next to Grey. “I am quite curious to know
what this is all about, too.”
“Rick told you,” Magenta replied patiently. “It’s the state-of-the-art in 3D digital
entertainment.” He took the lid of the
box onto his knees to show it to Grey and Scarlet, as if it was a large sign. The two men frowned deeply. On the cardboard cover was a colourful
drawing of bearded, fur-wearing Viking warriors, all armed with swords or axes,
battling with each other in a snowy background setting.
“Twilight of the Gods… The ultimate battle against the Ice
Giants,” Grey read in a mumble. “It’s a computer game?”
“It’s a 3D role-playing game,” Magenta specified. “You put those goggles on and, it’s like
you’re there, in the middle of it.”
“Thank you, I know what a 3D game is. I’ve played some of them
already.”
“I’m sure you’ve never played one like this. The graphics are so real, you would BELIEVE
you’re really in those battlefields, and that the people you’re talking to are
as real as yourself. As for the feel –
it’s like you’re really holding an axe to cut your enemy open.”
Scarlet raised an eyebrow. “Why would I want to cut an enemy open
when I can blast him with a gun?”
Ochre rolled his eyes.
“The real soldier talking. I knew it, you’ve got no imagination.” He ignored Scarlet’s indignant look and
pointed a finger at Grey. “That goes for you too.”
“”I’ve got as much imagination as both of you,” Grey defended
himself. One look toward Magenta told him that he shared their colleague’s
view. That made him frown. “Except I
use it for far less trivial things than you.”
“Come on, don’t you know how to have fun?”
Grey
did not deign to answer that. Ochre for
his part was flipping through the pages of a thick user’s manual. Magenta pointed to a note on the cover,
attracting his friend’s attention to it.
“Read that. It’s really
interesting.”
Ochre nodded slowly. “For
the full version, and better effects, this very special strategy game should be
played inside an FX Room…” He shrugged
and threw the book back into the box.
Scarlet reached for it and started flipping the pages in turn. “Too bad
we don’t have that kind of thing around.
This game will really be appreciated only in games arcades.”
“That’s where you’re wrong,” Magenta retorted with a new
smile. “You know Lieutenant Bromwell,
in Engineering?”
“Yeah – the guy’s who’s in charge of the Room of Sleep. What does he have to do with this?”
“Well, hear
this: before joining Spectrum, Bromwell
was a video game designer – one of the best in the field. He worked with the
company which created the FX Room.” He turned to Grey and Scarlet to
explain: “FX Rooms were created
especially for very sophisticated 3D games.
They’re pretty much only available in games arcades. You go into the room, you see, and…”
“I know what an FX Room is, Pat,” Grey cut in.
“I know too,” Scarlet added, not wanting to be left out. “It’s the same as those goggles, but on a
larger, and more realistic, scale.”
“Okay, so from
what Bromwell’s told me, he was working on a similar type of 3D role-playing
game to this one, a few years ago, and had adapted it to work in an FX
Room. That was before he branched out
and came to work exclusively for Spectrum - where he was hired, with a team of
engineers, to work on the Room of Sleep concept.”
“Yeah? So?”
Magenta
sighed. “You were right, Rick. No imagination whatsoever…” He stopped upon seeing Grey’s warning
frown. As for Scarlet, he didn’t seem
to be too concerned by the comments. He
looked far too occupied reading the contents of the book he had taken from the
box earlier. “So Bromwell told me he
would be able to use this program here and combine it with the Room of Sleep’s
electronic mechanism so it would induce in the players a sense of near
authenticity in the game’s virtual world.”
“In plain
English?” Grey asked with an impassive expression on his face.
“That means that
the virtual reality in which the players will find themselves will feel totally
real. The Room of Sleep could be used as an FX Room, simply put.”
“Uh-uh. I got that, okay,”
Grey said with a quiet nod. “I’m not
totally stupid. But there’s something
that is bothering me. As you two well
know, the Room of Sleep is programmed to induce sleep, by using lights, sounds,
music, and low frequency electromagnetic waves – directly to the brain.” He took the small disc he found inside the
box and showed it to Magenta and Ochre.
“So… erm!… isn’t it a little risky to feed this kind of program directly
into one’s brain?”
“Why
do you think Spectrum hired Bromwell to perfect the Room of Sleep idea to begin
with?” Magenta reiterated. “It’s
because the mechanism behind the Room of Sleep is pretty much the same as for
an FX Room. An FX Room also uses
electromagnetic waves directly to the brain – except the user is awake, and not
asleep – and instead of being induced to sleep, they are plunged into a new
virtual reality in which they can live out their fantasies. So Bromwell only has to cut the
sleep-inducing program, introduce this one and we’re in business.”
Scarlet
was keeping silent. He had left the
reading of his book and was now totally involved in Magenta’s explanation, his blue eyes reflecting the obvious
fascination and interest he was feeling about it all. The same couldn’t be said of the more cautious Grey, however.
“Okay… I’ll buy that.
Another question, please?”
“You’re very inquisitive.
What now?”
“What makes you believe you will be allowed to use the Room of
Sleep as an FX Room?”
“Bromwell IS responsible for the Room of Sleep. He’s already given his agreement.”
“You think the colonel would approve?”
“Oh, lay OFF, Grey!” Magenta almost snapped. “The colonel’s bound to approve; it sharpens
our wits and sense of strategy.”
“It’s a goddamn game!”
“Yeah, so is this,”
Magenta pointed out, gesturing towards the chess game.
“It’s similar to a war game,”
Ochre interjected. “Now, isn’t that
enough to justify its use? It’s like
we’d be doing an exercise.”
“Think of it as a
simulator,” Magenta added quickly. “Who
knows, it could also be accepted as an official training session for all of
us?”
“Doing battle with a bunch of Ice Giants, using axes and
swords? I hardly think so!” Scarlet now expressed his opinion, but both
Magenta and Ochre could see that he was contemplating the possibilities
presented by the game. He was looking
down pensively at the book he was still holding. He patted Grey’s shoulder.
“You know, as strange as it may sound, these two clowns may actually
have a point, Brad.”
“Thank you,” Ochre said with a broad smile. It disappeared
suddenly, to be replaced by a frown. “Who are you calling ‘clowns’?”
Scarlet ignored him, and continued addressing Grey: “If this… experiment… of theirs is
conclusive… and if Bromwell is as adept with computer games as Magenta
pretends…”
“I don’t pretend anything,”
Magenta cut in suddenly.
“Bromwell is a genius.”
“Then maybe he can create some kind of a program especially made
for Spectrum to use in… training sessions?” Scarlet continued with a meaningful
smile.
“Are you serious about this, Scarlet?” Grey asked with a frown.
“Think of the possibilities, Brad. I think there’s no harm in trying it out and seeing what can be
done with it. Besides… Battling ‘Ice
Giants’ might prove interesting.” He showed him the book and patted it. “I’ve been reading the game backgrounds and
the characters’ bios. There’s a lot in
there which is relatively similar to that book on Norse mythology that Adam
lent me to read a few weeks ago. Could
actually be fun…”
“You’re saying
you will try this with us?” Ochre asked
with a raised brow.
“Well, I would say I’m rather curious to see how it goes.”
“And I’m saying that we should talk to the colonel about this,”
Grey added quickly. He seemed a little concerned at the direction the
conversation was now taking. He knew
all too well how impetuous Scarlet could be.
Fortunately, Scarlet’s next statement made him breathe a sigh of relief.
“Of course, we’ll have to ask the colonel,” the English captain
said with a vigorous nod. “After all, we wouldn’t want to have these two
charged with unauthorised use of Spectrum equipment now, do we?”
“Would we do that?” Ochre asked, twitching his brow. His secret question was, of course, to know
if Scarlet would.
Scarlet put the book back into the box, collected his cap, and
rose to his feet. “Come on, let’s go
and see him now.”
“You mean, right away?”
“That’s what ‘now’ usually means, Rick. Yeah, right away. And if
you present him with the same arguments you just presented to Grey and me, then
maybe – just maybe! – he’ll agree that you can conduct that game – sorry, that
experiment! – of yours! And of course, I’ll be there with you to give you my
entire support.”
Ochre and Magenta
smirked broadly, getting to their feet. They looked down at a brooding
Grey. “And what about you, Brad?”
Magenta asked hopefully. “Are you coming along? You know, the colonel values your judgement very highly. If you’re there to support us as well…”
“Don’t you think
we’ll look like a delegation?” Grey gave a deep sigh, and then got to his feet,
picking up his cap from the table. “All right, I’m coming along… I’m also curious to see what the old man
will think of your idea.”
“What would we do
without you, Brad?” Ochre asked with a
grin.
“You would get in trouble, that’s what you’d do,” Grey mocked
them. “Now, let’s go, and don’t forget
the whole contents of that box, Pat.”
Magenta nodded, and while the others walked to the door, he leaned
down to gather all the objects into the box, before putting the lid on and
hurrying to join the others who were waiting for him at the door.
All four of them
left the Officers’ Lounge to go to the Control Room, to ask for an audience
with Colonel White.
* * *
That was the sensation Captain Blue first felt upon slowly
recovering his senses. Then through the cold, he felt the shooting pain all
over his body, and the heaviness in his head.
Snow and icy winds were lashing at him, filling his ears with an
incessant and unnerving wail. He moved
and groaned, feeling the pain once more; with a supreme effort, he tried to
ignore it and rose to his knees. The
snow already covering him slid down to the ground on which he was lying. He looked around in confusion, his eyes
barely able to focus.
There
was nothing to see but a vast, white-covered area, stretching towards a faraway
wood – he could see the outlines of trees in the distance. It was difficult to know if it was night –
it was dark enough, but then that could just be the effect of the falling
snow…
It
was all so confusing…
Blue
tried to recall his last conscious moments, before waking up in the snow. His head hurt as he reached for the
memories, which seemed to be immersed deep in a very distant, foggy dream.
Cloudbase…
The SPJ was approaching Cloudbase…
We had started the landing manoeuvre…
What happened?
Did we miss the runway?
That
didn’t make sense… They couldn’t
possibly have missed the runway and fallen to crash to the ground. They wouldn’t have survived… Besides, Cloudbase was over the Pacific
Ocean… Nowhere near any place with this
kind of weather, this much snow…
Where the HELL are we?
he repeated inwardly.
He literally sprang to his feet at the thought of the young
woman. “RHAPSODY!” he called loudly.
The all-too-prompt movement and the desperate shout sent a wave of
nausea through him and pain reverberated inside his skull. His vision blurred
and he fell to his knees again, groaning.
His hand reached for his throbbing head and his fingers delicately felt
a huge bump he had on his temple. He
grunted and brought his hand forward to see blood covering his fingers…
… And at the same time, he noticed the large, finely chased,
golden bracelet encircling his wrist.
He
stared at it in puzzlement, and when he reached with his other hand to touch
it, he saw that his other wrist had the same kind of bracelet. The sleeves weren’t of his uniform, but made
out of a thick, brownish wool; he stroked the rough fabric, going up his arm to
his shoulder, and then looked down at himself with astonishment. He wasn’t wearing his blue uniform tunic
anymore, but some kind of leather overall, laced up in front, and worn over the
warm woolly vest. The fabric was thick
and hard, giving the impression of a solid, protective cuirass, and was adorned
with white fur around the waist and shoulders, and pieces of metal hanging in
front of his chest.
What the Hell…
“What is going on here?” he mumbled, his teeth chattering because
of the cold. He could no more explain
why he was dressed like that than his presence in this place. He didn’t remember getting here… he didn’t
remember having changed into these… outlandish… garments.
He looked around, with uncertainty. No SPJ in view… no wreckage
of any kind… Only darkness, snow… winds
lashing furiously into him. The woods
in the distance… Nothing else. He
shivered anew. His mind couldn’t
conceive how he could have got there.
A faint moan from nearby nearly made him jump and he looked in the
direction it seemed to come from. About
two metres from him, he could see a hump in the snow, from which emerged a
slender, naked arm. A woman’s arm. And the new groan he heard was a woman’s groan. His eyes opened wide. He could see her move…
“Rhapsody…” With a
pounding heart, Blue paddled on his hands and knees into the thick snow towards
the arm, towards the young woman he knew was lying there, under the snow. When he reached her, he hurriedly brushed
away the snow covering her. Her face
appeared, and he lifted her to cradle her in his arms. She let out a louder groan of pain.
Blue noticed her pale face and the large bruise on her
forehead. Her eyes were closed and she
muttered something when he tried to wake her up. He looked down with puzzlement at her attire – as bizarre as his
own, made out of fur, leather and wool… Except that her clothing seemed to be
of more expensive quality than his own.
The wide belt she was wearing was obviously covered with gold, and
hanging from her neck was a large, richly decorated medallion. There was a very large white pelt around her
shoulders, and Blue quickly wrapped it round both of them, in order to protect them from the lashing
winds. He held the young woman close to
him, to share warmth. In doing so, he uncovered something big that was
previously hidden by the fur, and that Rhapsody had been lying on – and nearly
gave a double take when he saw the head of a grey horse lying in the snow.
The animal was obviously dead, not moving at all, its tongue
sticking out from its mouth through the bit between its teeth. It had a bridle, and a full harness,
completed by a fur saddle that was hanging loosely on its back. Blue could see large, deep lacerations on
the horse’s rump and side. As if the
mount had been attacked by vicious predators.
Just as Blue came to that conclusion, he heard howls in the
distance. Deep and sorrowful, that sent
shivers down his spine, almost despite himself.
At the same instant, he felt a violent headache assaulting
him. Images flashed in his mind in
furious sequence. He almost lost hold
of Rhapsody, before bringing her closer to him, groaning.
He was riding the
horse… with Rhapsody. There was the
feeling of impending danger… Wolves, coming from the blizzard, attacking
them. The horse went down… Trying to
protect the young woman, he slashed through the wolves with…
…His sword?!
He
was wielding a sword?
That
didn’t make any sense! Those… memories…
they couldn’t be real! They were as absurd as these clothes they were wearing…
and this place they were stuck in.
We were approaching Cloudbase…Rhapsody and
me. We were coming back from Los
Angeles. I was piloting the SPJ… We contacted the Control Tower and we
received the green light. We were
making our approach… All was going well… And suddenly, we experienced trouble…
We made an emergency landing…
That’s
what had happened. Blue remembered
that, but couldn’t recall the actual
images in his head. But beyond that, he
didn’t know anything at all. What could
have necessitated that emergency landing, what happened afterwards, how they
had survived… Nothing. There was a
total blank in his head.
We must have been shaken up pretty badly during
the landing. We were hurt…
“Rhapsody…
can you hear me? Please, wake up… I
think I’m going mad…”
He
heard her whimper faintly and her eyelids fluttered. She was obviously making an effort to answer his call. When her blue eyes finally opened and she
looked groggily up at him, he offered a relieved and hopeful smile.
“Thank
God, you’re alive…”
“A-Adam?”
she slurred tiredly. “W-what happened?
C-cold…” Her brow creased and she
looked around in confusion. “Snow…?”
She winced and shivered violently, and Blue brought her closer to him,
wrapping the white pelt tighter around them.
“Shhh… Don’t try to move. I think you have a concussion…”
He glanced about, suspiciously.
“…And I may have one myself…”
“W-what’s
going on? Where are we…?” Her voice slurred into nothingness and Blue
saw her close her eyes. By the sigh he
heard coming from the young woman, Blue realised she had lost
consciousness. He made sure she was all
right by checking the pulse in her neck.
It was beating strongly, if a little erratically.
“I
wish I knew,” he murmured in answer to her question, even though she might not
hear him. “None of this makes any sense
at all. If I wasn’t so cold and hurt, I
would say I’m dreaming all this… Or
that I am going mad. Of course, the
fact that you’re seeing it all as well proves that I’m not crazy,
fortunately…”
Howling
interrupted the course of his thoughts and he raised his head in the direction
from which it was coming. It seemed to
be closer than previously, and to Blue, that sounded ominous. He looked down at the horrible wounds on the
horse's rump and shivered. He did hope
it was all a dream, that this howling was nothing but a figment of his confused
imagination, but it seemed far too realistic for him to dismiss it. Just like the rest of what was going
on. If there were wolves around –
wolves hungry enough to attack a horse and to kill it – it was far too
dangerous for both himself and Rhapsody to stay here in the open.
"We’ve
got to find a shelter," he breathed, looking around desperately, as if his
wish would make one appear out of thin air.
Of course, nothing of the kind happened, and his hopes stayed
unanswered. On the contrary, he heard a
deep throaty growl coming from his left and his head snapped that way, tensely.
At
first, through the heavy falling snow, he could see nothing at all. Narrowing his eyes, he looked attentively –
and finally came to distinguish a number of red, bright dots seemingly burning
into the darkness…
He suddenly realised those were intense red
eyes, looking directly at him…
His
heart nearly missed a beat when he saw the red eyes approaching so very slowly
– and five big wolves, their dark backs covered with snow, barely visible a few
seconds before, appeared before his horrified eyes, with their lips curled on
their bared yellow fangs, staring at him and the young woman he was holding, in
such a way that obviously meant they fully intended to make them their next
meal.
Blue
kept his eyes fixed on them, as they trotted around him, making a large circle
that was slowly shrinking… One of them snapped
furiously. Blue had made a supreme
effort not to move – but it was hard trying to ignore the danger those fierce
beasts represented.
“Easy
now,” Blue murmured in a soothing tone.
“I guess you want the horse, fellows…
Plenty of meat for you all… You
don’t need either the lady or me…”
In
answer, one of the wolves snapped at him and made a daring step towards its
prey. It stopped just short of reaching
them and stepped back. Blue had
flinched this time and pushed himself away from the approaching fangs, holding
the unconscious Rhapsody closer to him, his free hand nervously groping along
the surface of the thick snow behind him.
His fingers encountered something solid and cold. He surreptitiously looked over his
shoulder. Through the snow, he perceived
the flash of metal. The handle of a sword...
Oh God, so I didn’t dream these memories?
He
didn’t have time to elaborate on this, as suddenly, the closest of the wolves
charged at them. Instinctively, Blue’s
fingers wrapped around the sword handle and he raised it. He winced under the unexpected weight of the
weapon as he slashed it in the general direction of the attacking beast. It was pure dumb luck that he actually
succeeded in striking it in mid-jump.
The razor-sharp blade cut right through the wolf’s breast, causing a
geyser of blood that spilled over Blue and Rhapsody. The beast gave only one brief yelp of pain as it fell to the
ground.
Stunned
by the rapidity of what just happened, Blue looked down at the dead wolf lying
only inches away from him, turning the snow red with its blood – the same blood
that was covering both Blue and Rhapsody and that seemed to render the other
wolves frenzied with rage. Keeping the
Angel pilot close to him, Blue raised the sword again, threatening the beasts
with it. The first kill was a stroke of
luck, he knew that, but he was determined to defend his and the young woman’s
life dearly.
“Stay
back,” he warned ominously.
He
really didn’t expect the wolves to listen to him, of course. They were stepping closer to their
prey. Blue drew a deep breath when one
of them suddenly leaped forward, causing the others to follow in its
steps. Blue braced himself for the
attack.
As
the first wolf was making its last jump to reach its prey, a whistling sound
was heard through the wind, immediately followed by a high-pitched whine coming
from the beast; it fell on its side in the snow, right in the path of its
brothers who suddenly stopped their assault to sniff in incomprehension at
their fallen comrade. Blue was staring
in wonder at the thing that he could
see protruding from the dead wolf’s side.
A feathered arrow.
As
soon as Blue had made this observation, a swarm of new arrows suddenly seemed
to fall from the sky and hit the other beasts, taking them all by surprise. Amongst a concert of howls, whimpers and
whines, the wolves fell back from their prey, albeit with obvious
reluctance. One of them attempted a new
dash at them, but a wall of arrows fell in front of it, narrowing missing their
target. The wolf snarled angrily and
backed away.
Distant
shouts coming from behind made Blue turn around; through the falling snow and
semi-darkness, he could see a group of human and horse shapes swiftly coming
down the snow-covered hill, yelling and gesticulating wildly. He couldn’t make out what they were
shouting, but they were obviously trying to scare away the wolves. And it was working.
Narrowing
his eyes, Blue watched the rapidly approaching group. Their features became more distinct as they grew nearer. Blue blinked several times, unsure if he was
seeing straight. All of them were
dressed in furs and leather, and were holding ancient weapons – not only the
bows and arrows that they were presently using against the wolves, but swords,
battleaxes and shields – and they were wearing sturdy metal helmets, glittering
against the snow, adorned with high horns or wings.
Like… Vikings?
Blue
didn’t have time to wonder if he were truly going mad or not; with growing
concern, he saw the band of howling men moving towards him and Rhapsody, waving
their weapons in a threatening way.
They were strikingly fearsome, and the alarmed Blue felt his heart miss
a beat at the thought that they might now attack him. The one running in front was coming fast, bellowing his heart
out, his heavy furred cape flapping in the wind, striking the air with the
heavy, short, but terrifying-looking club he was holding in his left hand. He was now so close that Blue could see the
foam dripping on his dark beard, the fierce expression on his face, the glitter
in his dark eyes, which seemed to reflect a madness beyond them. In defence, Blue raised his sword…
And
stopped.
He
frowned in disbelief, as he thought the approaching ‘Viking’ was familiar.
“B-Brad?”
he murmured.
The
Viking didn’t answer – probably he didn’t hear him; he drew level with Blue,
but didn’t stop running, passing by the crouched man and the unconscious woman
to run toward the fleeing wolves, shouting curses and threats in a furious,
throaty tone:
“Come back here, spawns of evil! We have a score to settle and tonight is the
night I am going to make you pay!”
Blue
opened eyes wide with surprise. He barely recognised Captain Grey’s voice, but
he was sure it was his friend’s. Except
– there was a strange, lilting accent to it that wasn’t Grey’s at all.
“Come back, you cowards! And I will cut you open and spread your
innards onto the snow and give them to your hateful sire to eat …”
“Let them go,
Tyr. There will be another day to wage
battle against these beasts.”
The new voice, coming from behind Blue, made him turn in
astonishment. It had the same throaty
accent he had heard from the first man.
Standing over him was another man, with long red hair, emerging from
under a horned helmet, and a long, full moustache falling on each side of his
mouth. Under thick, shaggy eyebrows,
there were two brown, twinkling eyes that were looking down at him with
concern.
It took a few seconds for Blue to recognise the eyes and he gasped
the name, almost in an undertone. “Rick…?”
The man tilted his head to one side, staring at Blue with probing
eyes. “You are safe now, brother… Do
not concern yourself anymore with those blood-thirsty devils.” He crouched near Blue and his hand reached
for the sword the blond man was still warily holding. “You do not need this
anymore. Give it to me.”
The red-haired man had to force Blue’s fingers open, so tightly
were they holding the sword. He gave a comforting, almost contrite
nod. “Do not worry. I will give you
your sword back later on. I mean you no
dishonour.”
The words made little sense to Blue at all, but he could see the
red-haired man wearing his friend’s face only meant to reassure him. As soon as he let go of the handle, all the
tension he was under took its toll on Blue and he fell backward, suddenly
victim of a violent dizzy spell. His
vision was blurred, and his mind was fogging, unable to understand what was
going on. The red-haired warrior gently
held him up with one arm, while passing the sword along to another warrior
behind him.
“Easy now, brother…” he said in a soothing tone that contrasted with the roughness of
his accent. “We will take care of everything now…”
“Rick,” Blue croaked in a
faint voice, trying to focus on the known face looking down at him. “Wha-what’s going on…? Why are you dressed like this?”
Either the man didn’t hear him out or didn’t understand him. He turned toward the men standing
behind. “Relieve him of his precious load.
Gently. She seems hurt…” He looked down at Blue again, as two men
were carrying out his orders by carefully taking Rhapsody from Blue’s
arms. The latter didn’t stop them, as
they obviously didn’t mean her any harm.
But even if he had tried, he was presently too weak to do anything.
“Were you attacked by
the wolves, brother, or were they seeking to finish the job started by someone
else?”
Blue shook his
head in confusion. “I don’t know,
I… Rick, I… I don’t feel so good.”
“Aye.
You are wounded in the head.
That is why you are confused. But do not worry, we will get you to Aesgard
and you will get better.”
“Aesgard…?” murmured Blue,
his eyes drooping with tiredness.
“Home, my brother Hodur, whence you have
been gone too long in the quest for the missing Valkyrie.”
“What…?”
Blue didn’t have
time to ask more of what the man, who looked and sounded so much like Captain
Ochre, meant. The latter was getting
to his feet, and helping him up. Blue
gasped in pain, as a sudden throbbing awoke in his side. He felt as if he was losing consciousness
and would have fallen down again, if the red-haired warrior had not been
holding him up, with the help of another man.
The red-haired Viking raised his head and shouted in the direction of
the still vociferous warrior, who had pursued the wolves.
“You had better come
back here, Tyr, before they REALLY turn around. We are leaving right away.
If you do not come, we are
leaving you behind. You might regret
having to face these devils alone.”
The man called
Tyr – who bore a striking resemblance to Captain Grey - turned around. “THEY might regret having to face ME, if
they were to come back!” he replied
in a furious tone, nevertheless turning on his heels to join the group.
The red-haired
warrior had left the haggard Blue in the care of two other men, who gently took
him toward a make-shift wooden stretcher, covered with furs, that was dragging
behind a horse, attached to the saddle.
Quite unable to resist, and actually thankful that someone should take
care of him, Blue let them lie him down on the travois and cover him with warm
furs. He was by now shivering from head
to toes, and his ribs were hurting like hell when he took too deep a
breath. He noticed that Rhapsody had
been laid on a similar travois, attached to another mount, and that she was
being equally tended to. She was still unconscious,
and Blue wasn’t that far from losing his senses himself.
“Perhaps
you are afraid of these beasts, my lord?”
While desperately trying to decide whether he should fall asleep or
fight to stay conscious and attempt to figure out what was going on, Blue
slowly turned his attention to where the loud voice had made itself heard. The dark-haired, club-carrying warrior was
standing in front of the red-haired man, apparently defying him.
“You know better than
to ask that question,” the red-hair warrior
snapped back with an obvious edge to his tone.
“Be careful, Lord Tyr, or I may
forget how useful you have been to Aesgard’s cause.”
“Is that a threat,
Prince?” the
other man asked in a taunting tone. “Your
sire would not be pleased about this.”
“Your personal war
against Fenrir’s brethren will have to wait.
We have more important things to do. Hodur and the Valkyrie need to be
cared for as soon as possible,” the red-haired warrior replied, still harshly
enough. “And you had better believe, Tyr, that Lord Odin would not be happy if
something were to happen to one of his sons…”
Tyr bowed slightly before him, a smile obviously playing on his
half-concealed lips. “Aye, Lord Thor. That I do believe.”
“Very well, then. Let us go back to Aesgard.”
The red-haired warrior turned again and walked toward
his own mount. Blue followed him with
blurred eyes and incomprehension, and watched as he was climbing into the
saddle. Hanging from it, Blue could see
a heavy hammer, half-hidden behind a rounded shield.
His mind reeled as, with all the men finally saddled
up, the procession start to move forward.
He felt the tug in the stretcher he was lying on, as the horse started
to walk.
Odin. Thor.
Valkyrie…
Aesgard?
My God – this is a
freaky Wagnerian nightmare…
What the Hell is going
here? was Blue’s last but not-so-coherent
thought as he drifted into merciful oblivion.
“Is he coming out of it?”
“No – but he’s drifting in and out. He’s trying to regain control. Like the Angel before him.”
Voices… coming
from the darkness. So far away that
they seemed to echo in the recesses of Captain Blue’s mind. He wasn’t exactly conscious at the moment. It was as if he was in a state between
consciousness and sleep, without the ability to drag himself from this sleep.
The voices were just at the very edge of his awareness, and didn’t bear the
same lilting accent he had heard just before losing his senses completely. They seemed more real.
He tried to focus on them,
hoping to chase away the drowsiness his mind seemed filled with. He realised that he was lying on his back on
a bed, and that he was physically struggling as well. Something was holding him down.
Restraints, obviously, biting into his wrists and ankles. He couldn’t
get free.
A sense of desperation
clutched at him as he became aware that this wasn’t a normal situation.
He struggled even more, straining every nerve, every muscle to free
himself, his efforts causing more pain from the restraints; the fog in his mind
began to disperse slowly, and he tried to force his eyes to open.
“He’s waking up…” The growl of anger was close, but yet almost still out of reach. Almost. It was close enough for Blue to
concentrate even more.
“Don’t worry, that won’t do him any good,” the second voice retorted coldly. “This
sedative will put him back under before he’ll be able to get a good enough
grasp on reality.”
Whether it was those words
and the obvious threat they were conveying or the sudden puncture he felt in
his forearm that gave Blue the boost he needed to finally find the strength to
open his eyes, he would never truly know.
The fact of the matter was that his eyelids flew open suddenly, just as
he felt a warm liquid entering his bloodstream. His vision was a blur of indistinct colours, but he could see
forms leaning over him. Two people, one
of whom was clearly holding what looked like a gun; Blue fought against the
unexpected numbness he could feel spreading through his body. He heard beeping sounds over his head,
coming from what sounded like an electronic medical panel. He could feel
something cold on his temples. Electrodes, his confused mind
registered. Probably plugged into that
panel…
A hand pushed him down as he made an otherwise fruitless effort to
rise.
“Relax, Captain…
There is no need to struggle.
Any resistance is quite futile, believe me.” Even though he tried not to
obey that soothing voice, Blue felt his head fall heavily onto the pillow. His eyelids were becoming increasingly
heavy, and his mind was fogging with each passing second. His breathing slowed, and his throat
tightened as he struggled to speak.
“Who – who are you?” That was all he managed to say
coherently. A curtain seemed to fall
before his eyes, and the image fogged completely, turning into darkness. Despite his bravest effort, his mind shut
down, and total silence surrounded him…
“…Don’t you know who we are?”
It seemed like only seconds
had passed since Blue had lost consciousness when these words reached him once
more. He groaned, concentrating on
them, trying to pull himself out of his darkness.
“Come on, you can do it –
fight! This is what you were born to
do…”
Blue realised with dread that
there was something… awkward… in this
voice calling to him. There was that
lilting accent again, like in that dream where he was lost in a raging
snowstorm, and where Vikings were coming to his rescue… No… their rescue, his and Rhapsody’s. It was becoming clearer now… But it was only a dream, wasn’t it?
“Come on, brother… Wake up!”
Blue’s eyes flew opened and
he found himself staring up at a tall, red-haired warrior, standing over him
and looking down with obvious worry in his eyes… Eyes he instantly recognised,
and where he saw a flash of relief.
“Finally!” the warrior grunted with obvious
satisfaction. “You deign to join us in
the land of the living, brother!”
Captain Blue wasn’t in any
mood to jest; if this was Captain Ochre’s strange idea of a joke, he wasn’t
playing it.
“Rick, what is going
on?” he asked in a slurred, although
quite obviously annoyed, tone. “What
game are you playing?”
“Game?” The red-haired warrior furrowed bushy
eyebrows, looking down in concern at Blue.
“’Tis not the first time you have called me ‘Rick’, my brother. What is this game you are playing?”
Blue did not deem it
necessary to answer; he raised himself on his elbows with some difficulty. His head was still a little woozy, but at
least, he noticed, he was free to move; he also noticed the chased bracelets
encircling both his wrists, as well as the alien clothes he was wearing… and
that he was lying on a wooden bed, covered with thick furs as a mattress. He looked around, with some perplexity. The walls that formed the room he was in
were made of stones, supported on strong, wooden studs that looked like they
had been crudely carved from huge pieces of tree trunks. There was an aperture in the wall next to
him from where he could sense a cool wind entering – and beyond which he could
see a clear blue sky, devoid of clouds.
He couldn’t be on Cloudbase:
Cloudbase didn’t have any windows – only portholes that couldn’t be
opened. Cloudbase didn’t have rooms
that even remotely looked like this one! So the only logical explanation could be…
“I didn’t dream it, then?” he
muttered under his breath, rolling his eyes in disbelief.
The red-haired warrior
grunted again, this time with annoyance.
He turned his attention to another man, who then entered Blue’s line of
vision. The confused Spectrum officer almost
jumped upon recognising, under long, unkempt, greyish hair and beard, another
familiar face – that of Doctor Fawn, who, now standing next to the
impressive-looking warrior, was looking down at Blue with apprehension.
“You did say he would be confused, physician,” the warrior snapped in an
obviously angry tone. “How long do you
think this condition of his will last?”
“I’m not certain, Lord Thor – I can only hope it will not last long…”
Blue’s eyes opened wider
still – was it his imagination or did the ‘physician’ actually speak with that
same slight Australian accent he knew so well, and not the lilting tone he
could still hear in ‘Lord Thor’s’ voice.
He remembered that same accent issuing from the mouth of another warrior
who had borne an astonishing resemblance to Captain Grey.
“Yes, you had better hope!”
snarled ‘Thor’. “We will need the
presence of my brother for the ceremony later.
Lord Odin will not suffer any delay.
This is too important!” He
turned squarely on his heels, glaring ominously at the shorter man, before
walking toward the door. “Make him
better, Master Mimir, or your head will adorn a pike at the front door of my
house!”
At those words, Blue nearly
jumped out of his bed, in complete outrage.
“What is going on here?”
‘Mimir’ was on him before
Blue could actually leave his bed.
‘Thor’ had not turned around – either he didn’t acknowledge Blue’s
outburst or he was totally unaware of it. He left the room, as Blue struggled
to get free, but the other man’s hands were strong and were holding him down
forcefully.
“Let go of me!” Blue demanded
angrily. “I want to get out of here and
find out what is going on. I can’t…”
“Calm yourself,
Captain!” The authoritative voice of
Doctor Fawn, coming from ‘Mimir’, stopped Blue on his tracks. He looked up at the man’s face. He saw the familiar flash in those dark eyes
– and noticed the wink of complicity the man gave him.
“Edward…?” Blue asked, under
his breath.
“Yes, Adam, it’s me,” Doctor
Fawn whispered quickly. “Now, please
calm down, I beg of you! Or you’re
going to make things worse for all of us!”
Almost despite himself, Blue
obeyed, forcing himself to calm down, and sat up in bed, looking up at Fawn
with bewilderment in his eyes. “What is
going on?” he asked, his throat tightening.
“Where are we? What happened to
Rick… what happened to you?”
Fawn put a finger on his
lips, demanding that Blue keep quiet, and went to the door to look out, as if
to make sure that nobody was listening.
Reassured that there was no one about, he came back to his patient,
nodding slowly. “You mean, what
happened to all of us,” he grumbled
under his breath.
“All of us…? Rhapsody, where is Rhapsody? Is she okay?”
“Oh, she’s all right,” Fawn
confirmed to an increasingly worried Blue.
“As confused as you are, undoubtedly… but all right.”
“Where is she? I was with her in the SPJ when we… we
crashed.” Blue’s brow furrowed in a
questioning frown when he looked up into Fawn’s face once more.
“You did crash, as far as I
can say,” Fawn acknowledged. “On
Cloudbase’s runway… That’s about the
last thing I remember clearly from… before.”
“Before… Doctor, what
the hell is going on?”
Fawn shook his head and, with
an open palm, motioned to the window.
“Look outside, Captain Blue.”
Blue only showed a moment’s
hesitation, before getting to his feet; a wave of dizziness hit him instantly,
as he tried too quickly to get up. He
took a deep breath, and then took a slower, almost tentative step toward the
window. Fawn followed behind, as if to
make sure he wouldn’t fall down; but this was a useless precaution – Blue was
growing stronger on his feet by the second.
But his mind was going from
perplexity to complete incredulity over the situation.
Standing at the window – a
carved aperture in a wall almost a foot thick – Blue gazed outside in
wonder. We’re not in Kansas anymore, he thought wryly. In fact, they weren’t on Cloudbase either,
of that he was certain.
He was staring down at a
green narrow valley, wedged between high mountains. There was a high palisade, made out of heavy wood and stones,
guarding the entry of what looked like a fair-sized village. The valley opened
out into a plain which stretched towards what Blue thought was a distant, dark
forest, nestling at the foot of high, threatening peaks. The mountain tops were covered with eternal
snow, and surrounded by an eerie fog.
The sky above the valley was blue, with almost no cloud at all, and the
sun was shining brightly. Over the
side of the palisade, there was a stone bridge, stepping over a narrow cliff,
from the side of which poured a waterfall of pure, white water. The contact of
the rays from the bright sun above upon the millions of water droplets from the
waterfall created a beautiful, complete rainbow under the stony bridge, which
led to what looked like a large, white palace apparently carved from the side
of the mountain.
Strong winds lashed into
Blue’s face and he took a deep breath of the vivid, cold air. This air, this wind, were too real not to be
true.
“Pinch me,” he murmured.
“You think you are dreaming?”
the voice of Fawn asked from behind. Blue turned around to face the bearded man
who was looking grimly at him.
Instinctively, Blue stroked his own face with his hand. It was as smooth as he remembered it should
be. He searched around for something
which he could look into and discovered a shield lying against the wall not far
from him; he took it to stare at his face, with some apprehension.
Unlike the others, he
realised with relief, he didn’t look different. His face was smooth from his last shave, his hair as short as it
should be. He put the shield down, and
sat on the edge of the bed.
“Why?” he whispered
again. He turned to Fawn. “Doctor, am I dreaming?”
“I wish I could tell you
exactly,” Fawn said hesitantly. “If we
are indeed dreaming, then this is a most unnatural dream – as we are all
sharing it.”
“Can you explain to me what
happened?” Blue gestured toward the window.
“And where we are?”
“From what I know, this place
is called ‘Aesgard’.”
“Aesgard… as in Norse
mythology?”
“Exactly as in Norse
mythology. And,” Fawn added quickly
before Blue could utter another word, “we’re stuck in here. All of us on
Cloudbase. And apparently, only you, me – and Rhapsody, as far as I can gather
so far – remember and realise that this is wrong. The others seem to have settled quite nicely into their new
‘persona’ – and don’t seem to remember anything
of their real lives.”
“How did this happen?” Blue
repeated, frowning.
“Well – I’m not sure if you
will believe me…”
“Try me.”
“This all started with a
game…”
“A game?”
“Exactly…” sighed Doctor
Fawn. “And with the use of that
unspeakable Room of Sleep as a FX Room for the purpose of what should have been
a simple experiment…”
* * *
“You mean to tell me a 3D game
was responsible for all this?”
Blue was sceptical of Fawn’s
explanation. The doctor had told him
about the game received by Captains Ochre and Magenta, and that the senior
staff on board Cloudbase at the time had presented it to Colonel White, asking
for his permission to use the Room of Sleep as a FX Room, so it might serve as
a possible exercise. Colonel White had
agreed to the test, obviously more than a little curious about what benefits
such an experiment would actually bring, and certainly very aware that his
officers were eager to try something new – and possibly entertaining at the
same time. He had asked for his officers to give him a full report on this
test. He had allowed Lieutenant
Bromwell to reconfigure the Room of Sleep, to transform it into an FX Room and…
“…Something went wrong,” Fawn
said with a sigh. “I don’t know what
exactly. Colonel White had asked me and
Lieutenant Green to supervise the experiment, and Scarlet had agreed to serve
as guinea pig. ‘Just in case,’ he said,
and considering he was indestructible, he thought he should be the one to make the
first test. And the first part of the
experiment went okay, obviously… It
appeared that Scarlet even seemed to
have a good time, according to what we could witness through the monitors and…”
“What happened?” Blue demanded.
“I don’t quite know.” Fawn
shrugged. “As the test progressed, there
was the emergency caused by your SPJ crashing on the runway and I was called
back urgently to sickbay, while Green, Bromwell and the others were supposed to interrupt the experiment, wake
Scarlet up, and take him out of the FX Room, to tell him what had
happened. The last thing I remember
clearly was when you and Rhapsody were about to be rolled into sickbay. There was a hissing sound, then a sudden
buzz coming from the speakers, and finally, a violent flash of light. I think I passed out. And next thing I knew, I found myself in
this crazy world, chased by warriors on horseback… seemingly wanting to cut my
head off!”
“You’re not serious, are
you?”
“Oh, very serious!” Fawn
sighed. “Well, obviously, they didn’t
kill me and I was brought here. Because
of my – er – understandable confusion, they seemed to think I was crazy and
apparently, they respected that… Or
rather, feared it, I am still unsure, I have to admit.” He cleared his throat. “Anyway, as you can imagine, I was quite
confused – especially when I got to meet with some of our friends who were
decidedly different from what I knew of them.
They didn’t remember anything at all about the ‘real world’, Spectrum,
the rest... This world was the real world for them. They were acting like real barbarians –
Vikings, to be precise – and were mistrustful of me. They didn’t recognise me
as – well – me. It would seem that to them, I am some kind of an enemy… You see, according to them, my name is
‘Mimir’ – and I am apparently part of another clan, called the Vanir – and at
some point during the course of a war, I have been captured by this clan, the
Aesir, who inhabit the land of Aesgard…
And since then, as they recognised my qualities as a physician, I have
been kept as a prisoner here to… take care of their sick and wounded.”
“Wait a minute,” Blue cut in,
“you mean to say that this is a world
created by the 3D game? Doctor, that
doesn’t make sense. I’ve played 3D
games. This place doesn’t look – or
feel – like anything I know of any 3D game – it’s too real!”
“I’m only telling you what I know, Captain,” Fawn retorted. “I never said it made any sense. Believe me, I know it sounds crazy – but
this does look like the world
described in that booklet Captain Magenta showed me. It is the world of
Aesgard, and all the others are playing the part of characters from this world…
and believing every second of it.”
“You’ve said this already,
Doc. All the others…?”
“All of them, Captain. It very well looks like every single person
on Cloudbase has been affected by this. Whatever this could be and however it happened.” Fawn huffed loudly. “I knew that Room of Sleep would eventually
cause us trouble. I just knew it. But I never imagined it would go to these
lengths…” The doctor’s aversion to the
Room of Sleep and its ‘unnatural purpose’ of cramming the benefits of eight
hours’-worth of rest into two or three was well-known throughout Cloudbase, so
Blue barely listened to his complaints.
He was too stunned and trying too hard to concentrate on the problem in
hand to take any real notice, anyway.
“I can’t believe it…” Blue
murmured. “This can’t be a 3D game. I
know how that kind of game works. It’s
all done through the subconscious mind – nothing is real, and you can get out
of it any time you wish…”
“Well, no one ever used a
Room of Sleep to experiment with those games, did they, Captain? It would
appear this time is different. It must be some kind of weird malfunction… How it got all over Cloudbase is a mystery,
but… it’s affecting everyone. We are
all stuck here with no idea how to get out.”
“So… whatever might be affecting the others’ memories, why isn’t
it affecting you… or me?”
“Me, I don’t know,” Fawn
grunted. “Maybe because my mind isn’t
as attuned as the others’ to the Room of Sleep’s procedures?” Blue gave him a doubtful, almost annoyed
look. Fawn shrugged again. “As for you
– well, it might be because you weren’t actually there when this… thing… happened. So you weren’t affected the same way the
others were.”
“So it’s up to us to find out what happened, how it happened and how to reverse it,” Blue murmured.
“If that is possible…
Frankly, I don’t have the faintest idea how it happened to begin with…”
"Doc… Do you recall if there were any strangers on Cloudbase prior to this
incident?"
"No, so far as I can
tell…"
"Are you sure?"
Blue insisted.
Fawn stared at Blue with an
inquiring look. "Why do you ask
that?"
"I'm not quite
sure. Before waking up in this room I…
I had a strange dream. I was on
Cloudbase, in sickbay, I think… and I was trying to wake up, struggling against
restraints that were holding me down on a bed.
There were people standing over me.
Two men, I believe… and they were talking. I'm not sure but… from what I can recall of their conversation,
it seemed it could be related to what is happening to us. They were very apprehensive that I
would…'regain control’."
"Regain control of
what?” Fawn said with a frown.
“Maybe it wasn’t a dream
after all,” Blue mused. "I don't know, Doc… but you’ve got to admit, it is
highly suspicious."
"Highly suspicious
indeed," Fawn murmured. "If
these men weren't part of a dream, and if they do have anything to do with what
happened to us, we'll have to discover who
they are, how they did this… and why."
“We’ll find out, Doctor. We’ll have to try.” Blue marked a pause. “They mentioned an
'Angel trying to regain control' too.
They probably meant Rhapsody?
You said she remembered too?” he pointed out.
“She does – well, for the
short time I saw her, she seemed to, anyway.”
“You still haven’t told me
where she is. Just that she is all
right…” Blue sounded suspicious.
“Oh, she is all right, of
that I’m sure. They wouldn’t dare hurt
her… the Aesir, I mean. Ochre – er – ‘Thor’ and the others… From what I know, they went to great lengths
to have her here.”
“Where is she?”
“Well, she was brought to me
with you, so I could make sure she was all right…” Fawn gave a deep sigh, hesitating to continue. “I do wish I’d had more time to talk to her
and explain to her what I’m telling you.
The poor kid must be confused as hell.
But when I gave confirmation that she wasn’t hurt, Lord Thor had her
sent to the dungeon…”
“The WHAT?!” Blue was outraged.
“Shhh! Not so loud!” Fawn urged. “You want someone to hear you?”
“I don’t care about
that! I don’t care what kind of crazy
fantasy the others think they are living in!
Whatever could possess them to send Rhapsody to a dungeon?”
“She’s not alone there,
that’s where they put all the Valkyries.”
Blue’s jaw dropped. “Valkyries?
Oh no… I’m afraid to ask… That’s not… the Angels?” Fawn’s grim face gave him the answer he was
dreading. “You’re not serious!”
“Calm down, none of them are
in any danger, as far as I can tell.”
“HOW WOULD YOU KNOW?!” Blue protested.
“Blue, please… What I do know
is that they’re all right. All of
them. The Aesir need the Angels –
Valkyries – for some kind of ceremony later tonight, which you should attend
too. I don’t know what it’s all about
but…”
“Wait a minute, that doesn’t
add up,” Blue cut in, looking suddenly pensive. “From what I know of Norse mythology, the Valkyries were
daughters of Odin – and Odin was the ruler of Aesgard… That’s the case here too, right? Why would he put them in a dungeon?”
“I don’t know about Norse
mythology, but this world, although
similar to it, is rather different.
These people are not gods, like in the Viking legends, Blue. They seemed to be… er… warped human
representations of those gods of Norse mythology. The Valkyries are not the ‘daughters of Odin’ – apparently they
are the Vanir’s elite cavalry – the personal guards to their ruler. They have recently been captured during a
long-lasting war between Vanir and Aesir and are to be kept here as – hostages
of some sort, I believe. I don’t know
the full details of it, but the Vanir will be sending representatives tonight,
at this ceremony I was telling you about.
It seems they are going to discuss the terms of their surrender.”
“That seems down to Earth
enough,” Blue grumbled. “And you
believe that the Angels are treated fairly?”
“I would think so – the Aesir
all have an interest in keeping them alive – and well. Odin would not permit it to be any other
way.”
“So… there is an ‘Odin’ in
this mad set up,” Blue groused again.
“I was beginning to wonder. Doc,
I’m almost afraid to ask again… Odin… that’s not…?”
Fawn nodded. “I told you everyone has been affected,” he
answered grimly. “The colonel like the others.”
“I don’t know, I was kind of
hoping that at least he would have
been untouched by this. It seemed so…
unlikely that he would be transformed into a… Viking.”
Fawn raised a brow. “You haven’t seen him yet. I tell you, you’re in for a shock.”
“I guess I am.” Blue took a deep breath. “Edward, you haven’t said anything about
Scarlet – except to tell me that he had agreed to become the ‘guinea pig’ for
this experiment with that 3D game. What
became of him? I guess that… his
retrometabolism has not prevented him from falling under the…‘spell’ too?”
Fawn sighed in turn, and
lowered his eyes. “Oh, Scarlet, well… I
guess he’s a case all by himself in this world. You see, he…”
Fawn’s voice broke off, as he
suddenly became aware of a presence at the open door; he turned to it, and Blue
followed the doctor’s gaze. Casually
leaning against the recess of the door, stood a tall man, staring at them with
intense blue eyes. Blue rose to his
feet, almost out of surprise; it took
him a few seconds to realise that the Viking warrior standing there, a
mean-looking sword at his side, wasn’t a threat at all. The black hair was long on his neck and surrounded
an unshaven, familiar face lit up by a roguish, somewhat bemused smirk.
“I see you are well now,
brother,” the black-haired warrior noted.
Although he fully expected it, following Fawn’s warning, Blue could not keep himself from feeling
frustrated when he heard the man he knew as Captain Scarlet speaking in the
same lilting accent as the others. He
watched as the newcomer now fully entered the room to approach him and take him
into a strong embrace, laughing gaily.
“It is good to see you on your feet again!”
Fawn had shot to his feet in
turn to welcome the newcomer, who, letting go of Blue, now turned to face him.
“Lord Balder…” Fawn bowed slightly, and
caught sight of Blue lifting an inquiring eyebrow at the use of the name, and
in nearly the same manner, Fawn mutely asked him to play along.
“It would seem your patient
is healed now, physician,” ‘Balder’ remarked with an obviously pleased smile,
while his hand rested on Blue’s shoulder.
“He is… not all well, my
lord,” replied Fawn. “Still his… memory
fails him a little. But, in time… he
should make a full recovery.”
“Is it true, brother?” Scarlet/Balder asked, turning a concerned
look on Blue. “Are you feeling better?”
“I’ll be all right… brother,”
Blue said without so much as a second’s hesitation.
“That is good.” Scarlet’s hand squeezed Blue’s shoulder in a
brotherly fashion, smiling at him. “I
do not have to tell how much I am relieved that you have come back to us alive
from the dangerous mission you had undertaken.”
“You don’t have to, indeed,”
Blue agreed.
“In truth, I should have been
the one to go, do you not agree?”
“Should you?” Blue asked with
a lift of his brow.
‘Balder’ nodded slowly. “So I
see that the usual fire of your eyes seems to have given place to
confusion. Still, you will be able to
attend the ceremony, brother?”
“Lord Hodur can attend, my
lord,” Fawn confirmed. “That may even
be… helpful to him.”
“It could be helpful indeed,”
Blue agreed.
“In that case, we will leave
you now, Master Mimir,” Scarlet said.
He moved towards the door, literally dragging Blue along, and the latter
looked over his shoulder at Fawn, unsure of what to do. Fawn gave him an encouraging nod.
“I’ll see you later, Lord
Hodur,” Fawn declared to a less than enthusiastic Blue. “If ever you feel any discomfort, you’ll
know where to find me.”
“There will be no need of
your further assistance, I am sure, physician,” Scarlet declared as they walked
out of the room. “You have taken enough
of his time, my brother. And I waited long enough for
you,” he continued addressing Blue.
They were now in a large hall, at the end of which Blue could see an
open door leading out, with two warriors guarding the entrance. There was a beautiful young woman walking
out through another nearby door, closing it behind her, and adjusting her
clothes as she started to walk past them. Scarlet looked musingly at her. “’Tis true that I found… a suitable way to
pass the time.” Saying that, he grabbed at the passing young woman and brought
her close to him to plant a big, ardent kiss on her lips, right in front of
Blue’s mystified eyes. The woman didn’t
resist much; on the contrary, she gave in to his kiss, giggling like a
schoolgirl, before pulling herself from him, flashing him a big smile.
“Come see me later,” Scarlet
murmured to her with a knowing smile.
“In my chamber… We will continue this… interesting conversation in
private.”
The languorous expression on her face spoke volumes, and she
reluctantly went away.
Oh boy… this is not the Scarlet I know, Blue pondered as he watched the woman leave. He knew her. That was, he thought he knew who she was in ‘real life’. If he wasn’t mistaken, she was one of
sickbay’s nurses. Preston… Anna
Preston. That was it. Blue knew she had a crush on Scarlet, but
the English captain had never given her more than a polite smile and some kind
words.
Apparently, her secret wishes might have come true in this fantasy
world…
But… what about Rhapsody? Doesn’t Scarlet care about her here?
Think logically, Adam… Remember what Fawn told
you. Strictly speaking, this isn’t
really Scarlet… He’s acting the part
here, as if he doesn’t remember the real world. He is Balder, an Aesir warrior.
Rhapsody – is supposed to be a Valkyrie. And according to Fawn, Valkyries are part of the enemy. So I guess he wouldn’t know about
Rhapsody…
And technically, it wasn’t as
if anything had really happened between Scarlet and Preston. If this situation
really was caused by a 3D game and a malfunction in the Room of Sleep, then
this was all only on a subconscious level…
It was all a trick of the mind, after all…
No…?
Right… I don’t know if Rhapsody would be that open to
this particular kind of cybersex… I don’t want to be anywhere near when
everything is back to normal and this comes to her ears…
“I see what you mean when you
said you had found a good way to pass the time,” Blue declared
matter-of-factly.
“She is a nice girl, that
Gerda,” Scarlet declared nonchalantly, as he and Blue walked toward the
exit. “They are all nice girls…”
“All?” Blue was more and
more perplexed. He stared at Scarlet
who sighed heavily, as if filled with regret.
“Too bad… I suppose these carefree days will be gone
soon.”
Blue lifted a brow. “What do
you mean?”
“As if you do not know,”
Scarlet retorted with a shrug. He
looked at Blue with a mocking smile.
“You know, Gerda told me – she has a friend who is quite smitten by
you…”
“No, thank you,” Blue retorted emphatically.
“I might have known you would
say that.” Scarlet chuckled. “You are already taken, after all.”
“Taken?” Blue asked, puzzled.
“I do not think you have
forgotten that too,” Scarlet
laughed. “But still, you continue this
charade of yours, brother Hodur. If it
pleases you so, then… we will continue the pretence.”
Blue didn’t insist. He figured he would have time enough later
on to understand the riddle of Scarlet’s words.
As they walked out into the
open and were welcomed by the bright light of the sun, Blue looked around with
mystification. All the houses around
were made of sturdy wood or stones, and most of the ground was of hardened mud,
on which many people, men and women, all of Viking appearance in clothing and
hairstyle, were going about their personal business. On a corner, there was an argument between a woman and what
appeared to be a vegetable merchant, who seemed to be insisting that the prices
of his merchandise were a bargain. Not
far from there, a peasant was trying to make his stubborn donkey – a donkey?! – walk on with the cart it
was pulling, while a band of warriors were standing by laughing heartily at his
apparently useless efforts. A
blacksmith and his apprentice were busy at their forge, while in front of what
could pass as a tavern, someone was being thrown out into the dirt of the
street, amidst the loud clamouring of voices coming from inside.
Blue had trouble believing
his eyes, and he had to fight hard not to actually rub them. He knew these people – well, some of them he
recognised - hiding under that rough, unsophisticated exterior. They were all Cloudbase personnel; technicians, nurses, security guards,
administrative staff, military and civilian personnel alike. All of
them acting in this setting as naturally as if they had been born into it and
had lived it all their lives. All of them so manifestly and dreadfully
unaware that this was not, by any means, a usual situation for them.
I don’t care what Fawn said – there is NO WAY a simple
3D game and a malfunction of the Room of Sleep could create this. There is more to this, I am sure of that!
He realised Scarlet was now
crossing the street, without waiting for him, so he dashed across to join
him. Just at that moment, the obstinate
donkey finally decided to move and, escaping from his frustrated master’s hand,
started to race down the street. Blue
nearly got run over by both animal and carriage. He probably would have been if Scarlet had not grabbed him by the
arm and pulled him over to his side. As
a result, both men found themselves surrounded by a cloud of dust raised by the
hurried departure.
Blue coughed, more than a
little astonished that the dust would feel so uncomfortably real. From his memory of 3D games, that certainly
wouldn't be the case. He brushed
himself free of the dirt, while looking at Scarlet who was doing the same with
an obvious look of disgust on his features.
"It is a good thing that
the ceremony does not start for an hour yet," Scarlet remarked, glaring
darkly in the direction of the donkey's unfortunate owner, running after his
possession. "We will have time to
change before presenting ourselves to Odin."
"Where to
now?" Blue asked. He coughed again, finally clearing his
throat of the annoying dust. Scarlet
gave him a curious look.
"Why, to the Walhall, of
course," he answered matter-of-factly.
"The Walhall?" Blue turned around, looking beyond the stony
bridge, and staring in direction of the huge construction which seemed carved
from the mountain. "Odin's
Palace?"
"Aye,” Scarlet
concurred, with a deep frown.
"That is where we live, as Princes of Aesgard. Do you not remember
that?" He grunted, seeing the
obviously lost look upon Blue's face.
"Maybe Mimir was wrong – you might not be well enough to attend the
ceremony. Maybe you should rest
more…"
"Well, he did warn you
my… memory was still failing me," Blue retorted. Seeing Scarlet’s doubtful
expression, he added quickly:
"Come on, I know it's your habit to worry about me, but there is no
need for that, I assure you." Of
course, Blue had no way of knowing if 'Balder' usually worried about 'Hodur',
but he was playing a hunch that it might be the case – if there was anything of
the usual relationship between Scarlet and himself in this fantasy world.
The bluff paid off, and
Scarlet grinned widely, before landing a friendly, but expectedly forceful,
slap on Blue's shoulder. That took the
latter aback, and he was nearly thrown forward. "Spoken like a true prince of Aesgard," Scarlet laughed
heartily.
Blue nearly rolled his
eyes. Whatever else he might be
feeling, he didn't feel 'true' at all, at the moment.
As he followed Scarlet toward
the foot of the bridge, Blue found himself reflecting on this strange world he
found himself in, and what he knew of Norse mythology. The names were obviously the same he
remembered from the ancient legends his grandfather had told him so much about
and that he read in later years. This
'Aesgard', however, and the people living in it, seemed to have little to do
with the home of the Viking gods. For
starters – as Fawn had pointed out – they weren't gods, but apparently ordinary
people, from an ancient and defunct time.
The village had nothing 'godlike' about it, although it was an
extraordinary man-made construction.
Odin's palace - and especially the bridge overstepping the waterfalls
leading to it – was an extraordinary sight.
The Bifrost, Blue reflected inwardly, nodding his head
thoughtfully. This bridge seemed to be
a fair illustration of the legendary ‘Rainbow Bridge’ of Aesgard, from Norse
stories, as he recalled it. It was,
according to myth, the link between the world of Aesgard and the world of men
below. And it was guarded by…
“Heimdall,” Blue murmured out
loud. He had stopped in his tracks as,
right at the entrance of the bridge, he could see a group of guards standing
there, holding spears, one different from the others by his smaller stature,
brilliant armour and the horn hanging by his side. There was also something more distinctive about him as, seeing
the two ‘princes’ approach, he came to them, with long strides, a bright smile
of very white teeth in the middle of his…
… black face.
“Ah!” Scarlet said with a
satisfied grin. “So your memory is not
a total loss then! You remember our
captain of the guards!”
Not quite, a confused Blue reflected, as the newcomer stopped in front of him and
clasped his hand in a welcoming gesture.
That was Lieutenant Green’s face he was seeing under that horned helmet
polished so bright, the sun flashed from it.
“My lord Hodur, it is so good
to see you back amongst our people!”
Blue blinked in surprise. Gone
was the West Indian accent of the young communication officer from Cloudbase;
it had been replaced by the same lilting accent as Scarlet’s – or Ochre’s –
which Blue had heard earlier. This was
getting confusing, and he could do little to properly hide his reaction to it.
“Are you all right, my
prince?” Green asked with a concerned frown.
“You look like you have seen a phantom…
Or maybe one of those dreadful Ice Giants, while you were on your
mission? I heard you had been hurt.”
“Ice giants?” Blue asked. “Er…
no, not exactly…”
“The Valkyrie gave you
trouble when you captured her, then?”
“Actually – I think we were
attacked by wolves… both she and I,” Blue replied, offering a bashful smile.
Green nodded his
understanding. “Aye. I should have realised. You had to cross Fenrir’s woods… So you would run the risk of encountering
his fearsome offspring.”
“At least it was not the
brute Fenrir himself, noble Heimdall,” Scarlet remarked. “Or maybe my brother would not be here to
tell the tale. Though he has not said
much of it so far!” He laughed and
thumped Blue’s back vigorously.
“Or he might have won the
wolf’s hide and wear it as his coat of arms, now,” Green proposed with a wink.
“Nay… that is an honour that
Lord Tyr reserves for himself – or even Lord Thor, whoever first meets with the
fiendish beast. Lord Hodur prefers…
other sports over the wolf hunt.”
Blue raised a brow, but did
not dare ask Scarlet/Balder what kind of ‘sports’ he was referring to. It was obvious by the large mischievous grin
displayed on his face that Balder regarded this as a good joke. Green didn’t seem to notice – or made a show
of ignoring it, Blue couldn’t decide.
The younger man was now turning to point his spear in the direction of
the palace beyond the bridge. “I have
been made aware that our lord Odin has been waiting for the both of you,” he
declared solemnly. “I would suggest, my
lords – respectfully – that you prepare yourself for the upcoming ceremony,
which should be starting in the hour.”
“Will you not come along,
brave Heimdall?” Scarlet asked.
“Nay – someone must keep
guard over the Rainbow Bridge. Keeping
it safe, and that way keeping Aesgard
safe, is my responsibility, as you are well aware, Lord Balder. And my duty.” Green’s smile broadened.
“And your responsibility, my
princes, is to make sure this venture, carefully planned by our lord to ensure
the safety of our land, will succeed – by doing your duty.”
“’Tis a price highly paid,”
groused Scarlet. “For me, it means the
end of freedom…”
Green burst out
laughing. “I am sure it is not such a
sacrifice, my lord. I would gladly take
your place. But, alas, this is not
possible. I am not a prince of
Aesgard.”
“Though your heart is a noble
one, Heimdall.” Before Blue’s puzzled
eyes, Scarlet squeezed Green’s armoured shoulder. “We will leave you to your task, then.”
Green nodded his
acknowledgement and watched as the two ‘princes’ left to start crossing the
bridge. Blue found himself looking over
his shoulder, in a curious manner, pondering what the conversation Scarlet and
Green had had was all about. He
couldn’t even begin to fathom what was going on and the more he ‘advanced’ into
this business, the more confusing it was becoming. He caught sight of Scarlet glancing at him.
“Not too nervous, are you, my
brother?” Scarlet asked matter-of-factly.
“Nervous?” Blue retorted, trying to compose himself
into a casual attitude. “No… Why should
I be nervous?”
“I supposed you would not
be. After all, all you have been
fighting for these last months, all your efforts, will finally bear fruit.”
Blue frowned at the remark
and looked straight at Scarlet as they were approaching the large open door of
the Walhall palace, guarded by warriors.
Scarlet shrugged dismissively.
“’Twas your idea, after all…”
“My idea?”
“Aye… Yours and Lord Tyr’s, to be precise.” Blue could hear a certain animosity in
Scarlet’s voice and at first thought it was directed at him; but as they
entered the palace, he could see that Scarlet’s eyes were looking straight
ahead. Turning his eyes in the same
direction, Blue discovered that there was a black-bearded man standing in the
hall, his arms crossed on his chest and looking at them as they
approached. Blue frowned, recognising
Captain Grey – who had assumed the identity of Lord Tyr in this strange
reality. He offered a tiger-like smirk
as the two stopped in front of him, and addressed a nod to Blue.
“So, I see you are on your
feet already, Lord Hodur,” he said, in that lilting accent that was beginning
to grate on Blue’s nerves. “It is
good. We will be able to proceed
according to plan.”
“Your obvious lack of
sympathy is bordering on insolence, Lord Tyr,” Scarlet growled, eyes flashing
with anger as he faced Grey. “You are
speaking to a prince of Aesgard. Do not
forget it.”
Grey raised a brow. His voice
was still calm when next he spoke. “And
I, Lord Balder, am a prince of
Vanaheim. I am only within these walls
and in Odin’s service, because it serves a good greater than either my own land
or Aesgard. I am not here for my own
pleasure. Do you not forget it.” His
eyes moved from Scarlet to Blue. “As
for my ‘lack of sympathy’ – I do not see any lasting wound on your
brother. So it would seem he would not
have any use of it.”
A dull rumble escaped
Scarlet’s throat, as he gritted his teeth.
“Beware,
Lord Tyr...”
“That is quite all right,”
Blue interrupted.
He didn’t wish for this
conversation to end up into a fight.
Both Scarlet and Grey were carrying heavy and mean-looking swords. If he was to believe Fawn that this was a 3D game gone wrong – about which he was
starting to have considerable doubts –
he had to admit any fight in this ‘world’ would not have any wounding
impact on the participants.
But if Fawn should be wrong
in his assumption – there would be no telling what could happen. Blue didn’t want to take any risks with the
lives of his friends and colleagues. He
addressed a diplomatic smile to Grey and presented his hand.
“I have no quarrel with you,
Lord Tyr. Let’s not fight. Are we not all working toward the same goal
– which will soon be achieved?”
Grey stared down at the
extended hand without answering; the up until now detached expression on his
features had changed suddenly to one of total coldness and he had tensed. He then looked straight at Blue, who suddenly
felt as if he were frozen into place, so icy was his look.
“Is this some kind of a
jest?” Grey asked slowly. There was restrained anger in his tone, and
Blue could not imagine what could be wrong this time. He saw Grey raise his right hand at eye level, presenting it to Blue
who could only stare at it without any reaction.
Instead of a flesh and blood
hand, Blue saw an artificial metal hand, wrought in the shape of a fist,
shimmering in the sunrays entering through the door. Beyond that stunning sight, the coldness in Grey’s eyes grew so
intense that Blue found himself shivering inwardly.
“I do not shake hands with anyone,” Grey seethed between his
teeth. “And that, Lord Hodur, you very
well know.”
Unable to detach his eyes
from the iron hand, Blue continued to stare at it. He wished to God this was really a fantasy world. He didn’t dare think that something that bad
might have happened to Bradley Holden...
He didn’t have time to answer
Grey’s remark; as suddenly as the coldness had appeared in Grey’s eyes, it disappeared,
and he turned his back on the two princes.
“I will see you in an hour, at the ceremony,” he announced, in a voice
which was calm again. “Despite our past
differences, be assured of my entire support, princes of Aesgard. This scheme must be allowed to run its
course. Our security, for all of us,
depends on it.” He walked away briskly,
without even turning around. Blue
followed his departure, until he disappeared through a door, and then let out a
deep sigh. Scarlet’s hand landed
heavily on his shoulder.
“That was a careless gesture,
Hodur,” he said quietly.
How was I supposed to know he was missing a hand? Blue asked himself himself, almost angrily.
“He’s an intense man, isn’t he?” he murmured, trying hard to hide
his discomfort.
“I suppose he is at that,
since he lost his hand to the Fenrir Wolf, during a hunt,” Scarlet said with a
nod.
Wait – that’s it… I should have known… In Norse mythology, Tyr, the god of War, had had his hand bitten off by
the Fenrir Wolf, when the gods of Aesgard had tried to tie up the beast with
chains that couldn’t be broken. Blue
now recalled that legend, as it rushed into his mind. Fawn might be right – this
world is following the pattern set by the Norse legends; except, it’s been
transposed into a more ‘human’ setting.
His colleagues really seemed to be living warped versions of the
true legends’ lives. Blue stared at
Scarlet. I wonder what HIS story is, he pondered. He’s supposed to be Balder
in this fantasy. But who and what is
Balder exactly? Fawn said earlier that he was a case all by himself here. What did he mean? Blue only knew that Balder was a son of Odin, but he couldn’t
recall what the legend attached to him was.
He recalled the name, of course – but it wasn’t as familiar as Odin,
Thor, or the Valkyries.
And he had to admit, his mind
was still a little confused… It was all
coming back to him, but so slowly, it was frustrating.
He had to remember more of
those stories and characters. Fast.
“Tyr is not such a bad man,”
Scarlet continued. “Once you get to
know him.”
“You mean – for a Vanir
warrior,” Blue said with a forced grin.
Scarlet laughed, as he
dragged Blue toward another open door and into a new room. “Aye!
That is true. For a Vanir
warrior. But then again, I still prefer
to have a Vane such as Tyr as an ally than some others who are claiming to be
allies – but are not.”
Blue’s brow furrowed in
confusion. “What are you talking
about?”
Footsteps coming from behind
made him stop in his tracks and turn around, and Scarlet did the same. From the shadow cast by the recess of the
door, the outlines of a man appeared; standing tall, dressed all in black, the
sun was behind his back and Blue had to narrow his eyes to see his features.
His eyes opened wide with
horror as he finally made out the pale features of the newcomer, glaring at him
with aloof and very dark eyes.
“I’m talking about him, of
course,” Scarlet said gloomily, the loathing very obvious in his tone. “The wretched Loki.”
But to Captain Blue’s eyes,
the man Scarlet was talking about, standing there looking coldly at him, had
the appearance of Spectrum’s worst enemy.
Mysteron agent Captain Black.
* * *
She couldn’t imagine what could be going wrong; but
she was getting more worried by the minute.
First, she had witnessed the crash of the SPJ that had
brought Captain Blue and Rhapsody Angel from Los Angeles. From her vantage point of view inside the
cockpit of Angel One, she had seen everything: the craft going out of control as
it was making its approach, the bumpy landing, the landing gear breaking, and
the SPJ sliding on its belly across the lower runway, with a trail of flashes
as metal scraped against metal. A fire
broke out, but was quickly smothered by the automatic foam extinguisher
cannons. Then security had come over
with pressurised suits and lines, and the SPJ had quickly been brought down
into the hanger, where a sickbay emergency crew was waiting.
Worried for Captain Blue and Rhapsody, she had
contacted the Control Tower, inquiring what was going on, what was the status
of her colleagues. She was told that
they were both doing, that the rough landing had shaken them a bit and that
they were unconscious, but that they hadn’t received any serious wounds. For that, she had been grateful.
But then, her radio went dead. She was unable to make contact with Control
any more, no matter how many times she tried.
She waited, fully expecting that this would be looked at and that she would
be recalled.
It didn’t happen.
On the contrary, other systems in her Angel craft started failing too,
one after another, until there was barely anything left working. Nothing responded to any of her commands.
Not even the emergency controls that would permit her to open the hatch below
the seat – and give her access to the lift that would bring her to the Amber
Room, if ever there should be need of it.
She felt lucky that life-support and oxygen were on independent
controls, and were still operational – at least for a limited amount of time.
Or she might be in worse trouble still.
But aside from that, everything else was dead.
Or rather, as it appeared to be, everything had been
remotely disconnected, so she would be isolated and a prisoner inside her own
cockpit. And that could only
be done from one place on Cloudbase.
The Central Control Room.
She didn’t want to even think this could be right,
that the suspicion growing inside of her was true. Yet, when she saw the new craft arrive – a civilian plane – and
land on Cloudbase’s main runway, before being lowered down into the hangar, out
of her view, and when nearly an hour
passed from the moment one of the Angel
pilots failed to relieve her at the scheduled time, this suspicion became a
dreadful reality.
She was through with waiting; she had to do something.
In any case, she could not afford to waste time much longer, before her oxygen
ran out. If it had been one of the
other girls, she might have been utterly trapped in here, until someone came to
free her. But she knew how the craft
worked; her curious mind wanting to learn as much as possible about the
sophisticated piece of equipment she was operating, she had assisted
technicians when they were taking it apart and rebuilding it. She was there when they made security
inspections of the craft, as well as the Amber Room chute, the lift, the many
hatches securing its access, the elevator seat. She knew how each circuit operated, and she knew what to do to
manually change them, in order to gain control for herself.
She might also be able to free the whole craft, and
take off – but not knowing what was going on in the Control Room, she
dreaded that whoever was there at the moment would press the remote command
which would order her craft to self-destruct in flight.
No – she would rather use her knowledge to flee this
too narrow prison and go down the chute to access Cloudbase… And see what was happening.
She had a feeling something weird was going on…
Less than an hour later, when Captain Blue, refreshed and wearing clean
clothing, entered the Hall where the ceremony was to be held, he had the
surprise of finding it already crowded with people.
It was a vast, stone-built
room, with many apertures on the two longer walls, and torches
lighting the Hall, so there was barely a dark corner. There were two huge wooden tables, covered with food of all
kinds, on each side of the room. The centre of the paved floor was left
completely empty, like a large aisle, leading to a dais at the far end of the
room where stood a rustic throne adorned with white furs, and set between two
shorter tables.
Everyone present was laughing
and shouting, eating and drinking and having a good time. Most of them were
warriors, wearing their most attractive clothes and sporting beautiful weapons,
clearly exchanging bad jokes and telling their war-like exploits to each other,
if Blue was to believe the snatches of conversation he picked up as he entered
the Hall and walked toward the dais.
There were also many servant girls, who seemed to be enjoying themselves
as much as the men they were keeping company.
There was little inhibition displayed as the rowdy warriors pulled the
women onto their knees and kissed them – while the girls barely resisted, and
then only in a playful way. Such scenes left Blue with a certain sense of
bewilderment, as he knew many of these people as reserved and disciplined
individuals – he would never have imagined them, even given the opportunity,
acting like real barbarians of another age.
Already on the dais, he could
see Captain Ochre, casually leaning on a huge hammer, and talking with
animation to Captain Grey and two other Viking warriors, before bursting into
laughter. Just next to him, seated on a
bench, Captain Scarlet was eating a whole roast chicken with his hands, without
a care in the world. He drank from a
large wooden goblet, letting its contents drip on his chin before wiping it off
with the back of his hand, and biting into the chicken once more. Hundreds
of years of sophistication down the drain, the perplexed Blue reflected, as
he stepped onto the dais, staring with curiosity at his friend, whose ‘stiff
upper lip’ and detached attitude had often irritated or disconcerted him. He
watched as Scarlet, letting go of his chicken, caught a passing servant girl
and pulled her close to him to kiss her cheek and whisper something in her
ear. She laughed gaily before pouring
ale into his vessel, while he wiped his hands on her already dirty skirt; she
quickly ran away from his grip, before he could catch her again.
Yep. I will never look at Paul Metcalfe in the same
way from now on… Earlier,
after leaving Blue at his chamber where he had fortunately escorted him – for which the American captain was
secretly thankful, because he would never have found it alone – Scarlet had
walked to his own place, which was down the same corridor, and Blue, following
him with his eyes, had seen Anna Preston – the servant girl Gerda in Scarlet’s
mind – waiting for him by the door. They had disappeared behind it after
exchanging a fierce kiss. Blue couldn't help but wonder how easy it had been
for his friend to let go of the well-bred veneer created by civilisation…
Seeing Scarlet, as well as all the other people surrounding him now, and how
they were behaving, Blue began to consider that some sayings were true, and
that there really was a sleeping beast inside each man – just waiting to wake
up.
It was a fascinating
observation.
As people started to notice
his presence, Blue received many greetings; goblets and jugs were raised in
salutation, and congratulations came from all round. His broad shoulders became the target of much vigorous thumping,
and he didn't have enough hands to accept all the drinking vessels warriors
were offering him. He wished he knew
exactly why they were so pleased with
him. He imagined it had something to do with 'capturing a Valkyrie'; it made
him feel rather embarrassed to think he was being congratulated for something
he didn't think he had really done – and it was uncomfortable to think that Rhapsody was viewed as the 'fierce
Valkyrie' they were talking about. He
hoped she was all right, and that he would be able to see her soon, to actually
make sure of that. He couldn't wait for
this ceremony to begin, to learn what it was all about.
But 'Odin' was still absent,
and Blue imagined that the ceremony wouldn't start before he arrived. To be truthful, Blue had to admit he was
curious to see this incarnation of Odin.
He didn't quite know what to expect, but Fawn had warned him that he
would be surprised.
Blue couldn't imagine Colonel
White actually settling comfortably into that kind of role – a fierce
war-leader of the Vikings. It just
didn't fit in...
In the meantime, standing
behind the table on the dais not far from Ochre and Scarlet, where he thought
his place should be, he was waiting impatiently, ignoring the goblet he was
handed, and scanning the Hall with probing eyes.
At the far end of the dais,
standing on his own, and apparently not willing to mix with the rest of the
crowd, he found 'Loki'.
Blue tensed.
Captain Black's presence in
this setting – in the guise of this particular character – had put Blue on edge
earlier, and had opened a new set of possibilities, that might explain the
predicament in which he and everyone else on Cloudbase presently found
themselves. For the Mysterons – the
full scale of whose powers were still unknown and who were even able to control
human minds and bodies, as well as matter, in order to recreate life from death
itself – might conceivably be able to warp reality and perception to the point
of creating this fantasy world. Before
seeing Black, it had not even occurred to Blue that they might be
involved. He was wondering now why he had not thought about this
eventuality. Of course, he had already
been pretty confused up until now – and he was still trying to figure out what
had happened to all of them.
It could also be possible that Black’s presence is
only part of this fantasy as well, he
pondered, turning his eyes in Black’s direction. He could have been dreamt
up by any one of us – not even real at all, just like the rest of what we’re
seeing – and feeling.
Right… But
I’ll stay on my toes, nevertheless… Just in case.
It’s quite fitting that he should have the role of the
malevolent Loki, all things considered… Isn't it because of Loki's many misdemeanours
that most of the Norse gods' problems originated, according to legends? And wasn’t it because of Captain Black's
unreasoned actions that the war between Earth and the Mysterons started?
“Are you suspecting he might
get up to something during the evening?”
The question, addressed to
him and coming from nearby, almost made Blue jump out of his skin. He turned slightly to see Scarlet, still
seated at his place at the table, but comfortably leaning his back against the wall
behind him, looking at him with an intrigued expression. Scarlet gave a brief nod in the direction of
Loki.
“I, too, am suspicious of
him,” he declared in a low voice.
“He gives me the creeps,” Blue murmured. “Seeing him here…”
“Aye. I could see earlier that it was just as if
you had seen a ghost. Well, Loki does
give that impression, I will admit that.
Especially when he lurks in the shadows, as he habitually does.”
“Just give me the word, and I
will crush him like the maggot he is.”
It was Ochre who had now approached to join the conversation, closely
followed by Grey. Blue noted that Ochre’s hands were now holding his hammer as
if he was indeed ready to strike at Black. He was watching him fiercely.
“I never understood why your
sire tolerates his presence in Aesgard,” Grey declared with a shrug of his
broad shoulders.
“We tolerate you, Lord Tyr,” Scarlet remarked with a
mischievous smirk. “Why should Odin not
tolerate him?”
Grey huffed disdainfully. “Do
not compare me with that Ice Giant’s bastard, Lord Balder. I will not be amused.”
“My aim was not to amuse
you.” Scarlet returned his attention to Black, who was now approached by the
smiling servant girl Gerda. She offered him a drinking vessel that he accepted
with a brief nod. “But you are right to wonder, prince of Vanaheim. The truth is, Odin is honour-bound to Loki,
since the day the wretched villain saved his life in the Lands of the Ice
Giants – for a reason only known to him.
If not for Loki, our lord and ruler would be in the land of the dead
right now.”
Blue’s interest was piqued by
this tale. How similar this is to the ‘real story’, he recalled. Conrad Turner had also saved Colonel White’s
life many years ago.
“Since then,” Ochre added
darkly, “we are bound as well to Loki – and cannot do him any harm.”
“But we are well aware that we should not turn our backs on him,”
Scarlet continued. “Though half-Ase
himself, he is also half-Giant, as you said yourself. He is planning Aesgard’s
downfall with the Ice Giants… Our common enemies, Lord Tyr.”
“As he is planning Vanaheim’s
downfall,” Grey agreed.
Scarlet scratched his ear
thoughtfully, still glaring with obvious displeasure in Black’s direction; the
latter briefly exchanged words with 'Gerda' in a low tone, before she nodded in
acknowledgement and left. "I also
suspect that our sire is keeping Loki close by so he is able to keep his eye on
him. Loki's behaviour – and reactions – might be a good indication of what the
Ice Giants are up to."
Grey was watching Scarlet intently; he could not fail to notice
the flash of anger burning in the other man's blue eyes. He smirked, and then adopted a nonchalant
tone: “I suspect, Lord Balder, that
your animosity to the villain runs deeper still.”
“Whatever do you mean?”
Scarlet asked suspiciously, turning a dark eye on Grey.
“Was that not your favourite
servant maid who just gave her brightest smile to Loki? Nay, let me rephrase that… The girl could
certainly not be called a ‘maid’ nowadays.”
Standing behind them, Ochre
permitted himself a chuckle; angered by Grey’s statement, Scarlet thumped
furiously on the table, knocking his goblet over, and jumped to his feet, in
the process throwing the bench he was sitting on crashing loudly to the
floor. Blue jumped in surprise.
“You will take back those
insulting words, Tyr!” Scarlet roared, facing a still calm-looking Grey.
“I will not,” Grey declared
quietly. “Is it an insult to speak the
truth? Beside, considering the events, my prince, you would be better served to
forget about the girl as of now.”
“Give me your hammer, Thor!”
Scarlet barked, addressing the tall man behind him. “Give it to me so I can
split this bastard’s skull open!”
“I will not,” Ochre replied,
as calm as Grey. “You would not be able
to lift it and you will hurt yourself.”
“Give it to me, I say!”
“Nay. Lord Tyr only spoke the truth: you should
forget about the girl, she is nothing to you anymore. If she ever was worth anything at all, as she was probably nothing
more than a distraction for you. Now
sit down, you fool, you are acting like a drunk.”
“I am not drunk!” Scarlet
retorted fiercely, turning to Ochre.
“You know that I cannot get drunk, thanks to the Ice Giants!”
“I never meant you were drunk,” Ochre sighed with
annoyance, “just that you were acting like you were.”
Blue raised his eyebrows,
hearing the surprising exchange between the two men; again, here was a
reflection of the real world: alcohol had little or no effect on Scarlet as
well, since his Mysteronisation. But
what could this new discovery mean exactly? Why should it be similar, and what
else did it hide? Blue didn’t have time to deliberate further, as he saw
Scarlet step menacingly in Ochre’s direction.
“Have it your way,
brother. I will use your thick head,
then, and knock it against his, so hard they will both explode… and they will
hear the explosion from here to the land of Vanaheim.”
“You are welcome to try,”
Ochre answered, rolling his eyes.
An alarmed Blue saw Scarlet
still advancing on Ochre, who was now raising his hammer; he stepped forward,
and put a firm hand on Scarlet’s shoulder, in an attempt to hold him back and
calm him down. “I don’t think fighting amongst ourselves is such a good idea,”
he said tentatively.
“I do agree with that,”
stated Grey.
To Blue’s surprise, that had
the same effect as adding oil to a fire. Scarlet turned around briskly,
literally snapping at Blue, who, faced with the intensity of the anger
reflected in his friend’s blue eyes, let go of him and stepped back, despite
himself.
“I should have realised the two of you would stand together...” Scarlet pointed an accusing finger at Blue.
“It is all your fault, brother!”
“My fault?” a stunned Blue echoed.
“Aye! ’Tis true the servant girl means little to
me, as Thor said, but if you had not supported Tyr, and stood with him on this
mad scheme, I would not be condemned to…”
“ENOUGH!”
The loud, stentorian voice
suddenly booming from the other side of the room stopped everyone on the spot
and every conversation ceased. Not even
a murmur now escaped the crowd. At
first frozen in place, Blue slowly turned around. He had already figured out who
had just arrived, commanding such silence with only his presence and
obtaining obedience with the authority
of just one word.
In the embrasure of the large door leading into the Hall stood a
tall man of fierce and imposing appearance, his face framed by long, unkempt,
white hair and beard, streaked with silvery shades. He was clad in the finest linen and furs, with a large belt
encircling his torso, and bracelets of gold.
In his right hand, he was holding a long spear tipped with three sharp
points, as if it was his symbol of power – his sceptre. From the distance, Blue barely recognised
him; but there was little doubt, just from the sound of his voice – very recognisable,
despite the annoying lilting accent common to all present – who the newcomer
was.
“Is this the way the heirs of
Aesgard behave themselves?” thundered the voice of Odin/Colonel White. He started walking toward the dais, his
steps echoing loudly through the now-silent room. “Is this how you should conduct yourself in the presence of
guests? And in my presence?! You
should be ashamed!”
Blue barely noticed how
everyone was bowing slightly at Odin’s passage; he was intently watching the
man’s approach, and with each step, having a better look at his face. He couldn’t detach his eyes from it – the
expression of his features was implacable, made even more ferocious by the
large scar crossing the entire left side of his face, clearly left by the vicious
strike of a sharp blade. The eye from
that side was obviously gone, and the hollow space it had left was hidden under
a piece of leather that acted as a rustic eye patch. The other eye, however, was very much alive, and burning with a
vibrant intensity.
“Balder, this ‘scheme’ you
are referring was my idea,” ‘Odin’
continued. “Your brother and Lord Tyr
only suggested it, and I decided to
go along with it. If it had not been
for the greater good of our land, I would never have pursued it. You should know better than to discuss my
decisions.”
“Of course, Sire,” Scarlet
said, bowing humbly in the presence of Aesgard’s ruler.
“Thor, despite your much
vaunted strength, remember that I can
still best you in any fight, whether you are armed with that hammer of yours or not!”
“My lord,” Ochre acknowledge
with a bow of his own.
“Lord Tyr, you are a guest
under this roof, but remember that my patience has limits. Do not ever attempt to try it to the breaking
point.”
Grey bowed slightly. “I do
apologise for any offence Lord Balder thinks I may have done to him, Lord
Odin.” His innocent tone caused Scarlet
to stare at him with irritation.
“Hodur…” ‘Odin’ had finally stopped in front of Blue
to look levelly at him. A strong hand
fell on the American captain’s shoulder and squeezed it.
“’Tis good to see you well,
after that dangerous mission in the land of our enemies, my son.”
The tone of his voice had
definitely softened a little while addressing him, and Blue had to fight not to
look too uncomfortable at being called ‘son’ by his commander-in-chief. Imitating the others, he bowed slightly,
breaking eye contact briefly.
“I am at your service… Sire.”
He looked up into the ravaged
face again. For a moment, ‘Odin’ stared at him, and Blue looked back, waiting
with anticipation. The lone, piercing blue eye definitely reflected Colonel
White’s indomitable and fierce spirit, but it didn’t take long for Blue to
realise that this man didn’t recognise him as Captain Blue – as he had vainly
hoped he would. He was looking into the
face of a stranger.
He was profoundly
disappointed.
It was for White now to break
eye contact, as he let go of Blue’s shoulder.
He turned around to walk toward his throne, where he sat down
heavily. Seeing Ochre and Scarlet follow
to stand beside their ruler, Blue followed them. A servant girl approached respectfully to give a filled goblet to
White, who took it and acknowledged her presence with a brief gesture. He watched with a fierce look as Grey came
in front of him and bowed to him once again.
“Has your ruler entered Aesgard’s
gates, Lord Tyr?” White asked brusquely.
“Aye, Lord Odin,” Grey
announced humbly. “Vanaheim’s ruler has
come, answering your call, and is waiting your invitation to be presented to
you.”
“That is well, then.” White
raised his vessel. “People of Aesgard!”
he called loudly. “Today is a
great day for our land! Today is the
day we will see the end of the long-lasting war between Aesgard and
Vanaheim! Hail to Victory, warriors!
Hail to Aesgard!”
To the shout of ‘Hail!’ and
‘Aesgard!’, everyone present saluted and drank deeply from their vessels. Blue
did the same, although the bittersweet ale was much too warm for his taste and
he nearly choked on it. He drank
slowly, noticing over his goblet that Tyr was politely doing the same. Both put down their half-empty vessels only
when the others around loudly lowered their empty ones onto the tables. A
glance on the other side of the dais informed Blue that Black/Loki had barely
touched his goblet, but was now looking very interested in what was going on.
Blue had to admit, he was
curious to know that too.
“Lord Tyr,” White solemnly
announced. “The ruler of Vanaheim is
invited to enter the Hall and be presented to us.”
Grey bowed anew, before
standing tall and half-turning towards the large entrance behind him. He made one gesture of his good hand; a
small commotion rose from the crowd and Blue narrowed his eyes to watch as a
small group of people, dressed in their best attire, finally entered and walked
down the aisle, in a dignified fashion, while the large double doors were
slowly closing behind. Marching in the
middle of the delegation was a tall man with long, neatly brushed, black hair,
and a smooth face looking proudly ahead;
by his side was a young woman, in fine but obviously humbler apparel,
keeping her head down under a hood that barely hid her long blonde hair and
striking beauty.
Blue had no trouble
recognising both Captain Magenta and Destiny Angel, as they approached ‘Odin’s’
throne.
White was silently and
thoughtfully watching the newcomers, apparently gauging them carefully. Grey
came to them as they stopped in front of the dais and took Destiny’s hand to
kiss it with deference. Magenta ignored his presence and stood tall, glaring at
White, when Grey turned to present them.
“Lord Odin, ruler of Aesgard, may I present the ruler of the Vanir
people…”
White acknowledged the
announcement with a brief nod. Destiny
saluted him with a bow, but Magenta didn’t move.
“Insolent dog,” Blue heard
Scarlet mutter behind him.
“Ruler of Vanaheim, I welcome
you amongst my people,” White declared.
“Lord Odin,” Magenta
answered. “I would wish to say that it
is an honour for me and my sister to be in your presence.”
White raised a single brow;
he failed to realise Blue was doing the same. “Your sister?” he said matter of
factly.
“Aye. I am Prince Freyr, of the Vanir people. And this is my sister,
Lady Freyja…”
“Lady Freyja,” White said
with a nod. “The leader of the
Valkyries. I have heard about you, my
lady.”
“Lady Freyja, whose beauty
precedes her wherever she goes,” Scarlet murmured again, in admiration, but
this time a little louder, fully intending to be heard. He was heard indeed, both by White, who
glared warningly at him, and by Magenta, who shot him a look that was nothing
less than murderous.
“I know you,” Ochre suddenly
declared, addressing Magenta before the latter could utter another word. “You are no prince… You are Fricco the
Thief!”
There were new murmurs from
the crowd. Blue tensed, waiting for the follow-up. Magenta stood his ground.
“That was in another life, Lord Thor.
Indeed, I was Fricco the Thief, many years ago. But all that has changed
now.”
“This man cannot be the ruler
of Vanaheim, Sire,” Thor scoffed, turning to the silent White. “He is a cattle thief. He took my livestock, five years ago!”
“I took the two goats which
were pulling your chariot,” Magenta corrected, obligingly. “You should be grateful, Lord Thor. I spared
you the humiliation from showing yourself further in such a peculiar equipage.”
There was laughter all around
and even Scarlet joined in; Ochre, however, didn’t seem to find it amusing at
all. He had grabbed his hammer, and was now descending the dais. “You impudent bastard, I will teach you to
make fun of a prince of Aesgard!”
He stopped in his tracks
suddenly, when Magenta unsheathed his sword and took a step back, pointing it
at his advancing adversary. He
blatantly ignored all the Aesir warriors present in the room, who, at the first
sight of his sword, drew theirs, threateningly.
“One more step, Prince, and I
will run you through!”
“I will break your head
first… thief!” Ochre seethed between
his teeth.
Before Ochre could take one
more step towards Magenta, Destiny walked in front of him and stood between the
two men, extending her hands to them, demanding peace.
“Hold!” White called from his
throne. All the swords were instantly
lowered. “Lord Thor, step back!” White ordered. “Put up your weapon.”
Reluctantly, Ochre obeyed and stepped aside. Magenta held his ground.
White turned his only eye to him. “Master Fricco – or Lord Freyr, whatever your name is now: I suggest you lower your sword. Unless you want to… deprive your ‘sister’ of
her most loyal servant.”
“Lord Odin…” Destiny spoke for the first time; she
gestured to Magenta to sheathe his sword, and as he finally obeyed, she turned
around and removed her hood to face the assembly. A cascade of golden hair
surrounded her beautiful face, and everybody, stunned by her fully revealed
beauty, stared straight at her with baited breath. Even Aesgard’s ruler seemed taken aback for a split second.
“So,” White murmured with an
appreciative nod, “what Lord Balder said earlier was true. Rumours of your
beauty do precede you, Lady Freyja.”
“Lord Odin,” Destiny said,
presenting a dignified façade, “Lord Freyr never presumed within these walls to
be the ruler of Vanaheim. He was
protecting me, as he always does. He is but an emissary for me – a front. As he has been in recent years, thus
protecting the identity of the true ruler of Vanaheim from our enemies.”
“And you are not his sister,
of course,” White said, musingly. “You
are the ruler of Vanaheim.” His
tone didn’t seem to indicate that he was suitably surprised. Destiny glared at Grey.
“Lord Tyr informed you,” she
accused.
“He did not. He kept your secret to this day… Queen
Freyja.” White bowed respectfully to
the younger woman. “And this was a
secret that I kept myself, though I learned it a long time ago. It was not so
difficult to discover, my lady. A ruler
must know his enemies, if he ever wishes to defeat them; as Aesgard has
defeated Vanaheim.”
“You made use of a subterfuge
to defeat us,” Magenta retorted bitterly. “You captured and held our Valkyries
hostage, and called upon us to surrender.”
“All is fair in war,” White
remarked.
“We were winning,” Magenta
declared in turn.
“Then it was all the more
necessary for us to make use of the ‘subterfuge’.” White leaned forward, glaring at Magenta. “I would suggest, Lord Freyr, that you keep
your accusations to yourself. They will
serve you nothing at this point.
Furthermore, you are obviously not aware of all the details of the
arrangements I made with your ruler, through Lord Tyr…”
“Traitor,” growled Magenta,
glaring at Grey.
“At ease, my lord,” Destiny
demanded. “When he put himself under Odin’s
command, Lord Tyr was but following my instructions.”
“My lady?” Magenta seemed genuinely surprised.
“This war between our two
peoples has gone on long enough,” Destiny continued.
“I agree, my lady,” White
said with a nod.
Destiny turned to face a
discomfited-looking Magenta. “We might have won this war with Aesgard…”
“…Or maybe not,” Ochre
grumbled under his breath.
“…But we would never have won
any war, all by ourselves, against the Ice Giants. And that, Freyr, you know as
well as I do. Neither Vanaheim, nor Aesgard, can hope to defeat these fiends
all alone.” She took Magenta’s hand and squeezed it reassuringly. He looked
down, conceding defeat, and apparently acquiescing to her words. Destiny sighed
deeply, before turning to face White again. “So for the good of both Vanaheim
and Aesgard, and so we can face our common enemies, the Ice Giants, and one day
defeat them, I have agreed to surrender to Odin’s rule – and have accepted an
alliance between our two people.”
“Did we have to surrender to achieve
that?” asked Magenta with a frown.
“Odin would never have agreed
to surrender to you, prince of
Vanaheim,” Scarlet said sardonically, with a raised brow.
“It doesn’t matter,” Destiny
said quickly, before Magenta took the remark as an insult. “The deal is now done. The land of Vanaheim falls under the rule of
Odin of Aesgard. Through me, as queen
of the Vanir, all of our land pledges loyalty and obedience to our new ruler.”
“And I pledge protection and
justice to the people of Vanaheim, ruling the land as I rule my own,” White
said in a low tone. “However, Lady
Freyja, the deal is not quite done
yet. Before all this becomes official, there are still… some formalities that
must be attended to.” He leaned even further forward on his throne, fixing his
one eye on Destiny. "Do your Valkyries pledge their loyalty to me as
well?" There was a note of suspicion in his voice, as if he doubted that
fact. Destiny had a short moment of
hesitation.
"Lord Odin, it is
understandable that the Valkyries are wary of this arrangement between our
lands..."
"That much is obvious,
Lady Freyja – considering the amount of fighting they did when my warriors…
'invited' them into Aesgard and within these walls. One of them even fled to
hide herself within the land of the Ice Giants, where one of my sons had to
ride, in order to find her." He
nodded towards Blue, and then addressed Destiny anew: "I trust you have informed them of their part in this
arrangement of ours."
"I have, Sire…"
"I take it they were not
pleased, then."
"Maybe they had good
reasons not to be pleased," Magenta remarked acerbically. "They probably knew they would be held
captive within the Walhall's dungeon."
White raised his brow, before
turning toward the three Aesir princes standing by his side, with an accusing
look; Blue didn't say a word, nor did he move, and Scarlet shrugged
dismissively. As for Ochre, he grunted
loudly.
"The dungeon?" White asked with
curiosity. “Thor, I left you in charge
of this affair. This was your idea?”
"What else could we do,
Lord Odin?" Ochre retorted, turning to the older man. "These girls
are she-devils incarnate – they would have escaped us, if we had not locked
them up."
"That is an arguable
point. But did you have to put them in
the dungeon?"
Ochre scoffed. "It seemed
to me the safest place to imprison them, my lord. After all, until this deal is
done, they are still to be considered as enemies of Aesgard, are they
not?" He smiled mockingly.
"One of them even dared to threaten to gut me with a blunt knife, if ever the chance was to present itself."
“A blunt knife?”
“So it would cause more pain, Sire,” Ochre explained,
laughing.
White gave a half-huff,
half-chuckle hearing that, before he settled down on the throne, slowly, and
turned to Destiny again. “Quite. Maybe it was a wise move, then. Do we have to fear that your Valkyries will
turn against us, Lady Freyja?”
There was a flash in
Destiny’s eyes at this accusation.
“Lord Odin,” she reiterated in defence, “consider what is asked of them
and ask yourself how you would react in their place, if you were forced into
this venture.”
“Well, the same is asked of
me and I have yet to slit my throat…” Scarlet muttered, loud enough to be
understood. Everyone within hearing
distance burst out laughing, and Ochre gave ‘his brother’ a vigorous thumping.
“Much good it will do you,
Balder,” White replied with dry humour.
And the remark made Blue prick up his ears in interest.
“Nevertheless,” Destiny
continued, as if she had not been interrupted at all. “The Valkyries know their duty – and will perform it, whatever
the cost asked of them.”
"What is that cost,
exactly?" Magenta asked suspiciously.
"What is the part they should play in this… charade?"
"This is not a
'charade', Lord Freyr,” White retorted.
"This is an alliance between the land of Aesgard and the land of
Vanaheim. An alliance between our two
clans, rendered official by the joining of our royal houses… And as it goes, in
those circumstances, such joining has to be made through…"
"Marriage," Blue
realised. The sudden understanding left him in shocked disbelief. The fact that
nobody noticed the astonished expression on his features was simply due to the
fact that everyone was watching Magenta's reaction – and the expression of
surprise and dismay was far more obvious on his
face than on Blue's. He turned a
disapproving glance toward Destiny, while White was concurring with Blue's
declaration with a quiet nod.
"Aye. The three heirs of
Aesgard and three Valkyries will be united by matrimony. Thus the alliance between
our two lands will be sanctioned."
"You sold our Valkyries in marriage to these Aesir
savages?" Magenta accused Destiny heatedly.
"Watch your tongue, Lord
Freyr," she answered quickly, before any of the Aesir could react to
Magenta's words. As it was, both
Scarlet and Ochre simply shrugged dismissively, as if the insult had no effect
on them. White kept silent, watching intensely as the 'queen of Vanaheim'
turned to her vassal, and with eyes flashing with anger, scolded him in the
same tone he had used with her. "The three chosen Valkyries are of royal
blood, and therefore should be prepared to make the necessary sacrifice to
ensure the safety of our land. This is their duty, and they will do as they are
required… And I will not suffer you to
dispute my decisions."
Magenta scowled, his eyes
blazing with barely contained anger. He
then obviously calmed down, giving a deep sigh, and then bowed in front of
Destiny, finally acknowledging her ruling.
"As always, I'm at your service, my queen."
"These two are
lovers." Blue heard Scarlet’s lilting whisper in his ear. "Just by
the way they fight, you can feel it…"
Blue didn't care to voice his
opinion on the matter. In 'real life', there were rumours spreading around
Cloudbase about Destiny… Some to the effect that she might be involved with
either Magenta or Grey – or others stating that she might still be in love with
Scarlet, with whom she had been romantically involved, some years ago. There
was nothing certain about that aspect of her life – she was always an extrovert
girl, and very caring, but also could prove very secretive and personal when
she decided to be. Her private life was her own, and she probably figured that
nobody else had any business knowing any of it. Aside from the Angels – and
even there – Scarlet was probably the person who was closest to her, and maybe
he would know about her private life, but it was doubtful she would confide in
him – or that he would repeat whatever he might know. He was far too discreet – and he had too much respect for Destiny
and the friendship they shared to betray her.
But in this present setting,
it was far different. Perhaps Scarlet was unconsciously voicing something he
did know from ‘real life’. In this world, Blue was realising, even if things
were different, he couldn't escape noticing that there were some similarities… uncomfortable similarities that he would
have to investigate further. It made him more and more convinced that the
Mysterons might very well be behind this absurd situation.
"Is this settled
then?" White's booming voice
suddenly enquired, pulling Blue from his reverie. “I wish for this matter to be fully resolved before the night is
over. Lady Freyja, if there are no more protests from your vassal…”
“The last protest, Lord Odin,
comes from me, as well as from Lord Freyr,” Destiny answered. “We would like to see that the Valkyries are
well, if you would not mind.”
“Even if I did mind, you
would insist in this demand of yours,
is it not so, my lady?” White asked with a deep frown. “Nevertheless, I will
grant your demand – for I had already
decided, long before you asked it. By
this, I will show you my good faith.”
He made a grand gesture
toward the closed double doors. All
eyes turned in that direction, as two guards standing there pulled on the
carved wooden handles and opened the doors wide. There was a commotion from the hallway beyond – and a group of
Aesir warriors finally entered, straining on long chains, towing and pushing
inside three shackled and chained women dressed in dirty and torn rags, which
had very recently been rich garments.
If, up to now, Blue had been
amazed by all he had witnessed, this new scene gave him the worst shock yet. He
watched helplessly as the three young women were forced to march towards the
throne, dragged and pushed, struggling furiously to get free, and kept at bay
from their tormentors, whom they were trying to reach. At least – two of them
were struggling with fury, while the third was merely trying to keep up without
falling, her long, and now dishevelled, red hair falling into her face, which
displayed an expression as confused as could be, looking around her in total dismay.
Blue’s heart missed a beat,
as he realised that Rhapsody probably understood far less than he did himself
about the situation, considering that she had not benefited from Doctor Fawn’s
briefing. He also felt a pang of disgust, for the way she was being treated,
along with her two companions – whom he recognised instantly, despite their
unkempt outlook, and the ferocious expressions distorting their beautiful,
dirty faces. They were Melody – and his beloved Symphony. And the way the Aesir
warriors were laughing at their vain efforts to resist was enough to revolt
him.
“Lord Odin,” he called over
the clamouring laughter of those surrounding him, and turning towards White,
who was still seated on his throne, watching the Valkyries approach without a
single emotion apparent on his set face. “This is outrageous! Is this a proper
way to treat those who will be our allies?”
As he said these words, he
could see the look of utmost revulsion displayed on both Magenta and Destiny’s
faces change slightly to one of gratitude as they stared at him. He even caught
sight of Grey bowing his – slight – approbation to his outburst. He stepped down
from the dais, just as the Angels – or Valkyries, as they were in this setting
– were forced to stop in front of the throne.
Rhapsody nearly lost her
footing, and, trying to pull away from the warrior she nearly fell onto, bumped
into someone who was standing right behind her. She felt strong hands grabbing
her arms. When she turned around, it was to gaze right into the pallid face of
the man she knew as Captain Black, staring implacably at her. She gave a gasp
of horror and surprise and, freeing herself from his grip, backed away to
escape him. Her feet entangled themselves in the shackles around her ankles and
she fell backward, nearly onto Blue’s legs. He caught hold of her before she
reached the floor and pulled her up. He could see the lost look in her eyes
and, before she had a chance to push him away, he leaned to whisper discreetly
in her ear:
“Don’t worry, Dianne, I’m here…”
“A-Adam?” she gasped with
relief. She had heard him, despite the surrounding clamour, and he heard her.
She looked in confusion at him. “My God, Adam… that’s Captain Black standing
there…”
“He’s not what he seems,” Blue murmured again. “At least, I don’t think
so…”
“What is going on? Where…”
He frowned a warning as he
felt a presence approaching him from behind and the laughter was dying
down. “Play along,” he
recommended. “I’ll explain later…”
“I don’t understand…” Those were the last words Rhapsody was able
to pronounce as her eyes suddenly grew wide with a new surprise at discovering
who was now standing behind Blue, with such a totally outlandish
appearance.
“The Valkyrie’s reaction is
quite understandable,” Captain Scarlet declared, pulling Blue slightly aside to
stand in front of Rhapsody. “Aye, our friend Loki is certainly not a reassuring
sight…” He narrowed his eyes, looking down with interest at the young woman,
who could do nothing but stare at him, open-mouthed. “Her expression is similar
to the one you had earlier, Hodur… Lost
and confused… What happened to the two of you in those mountains?”
“You savage!” Blue turned around to face the furious
expression of Melody, who was now trying to reach him. “What have you done to our sister?”
“Quiet!” White bellowed from
his throne, as Melody’s vain efforts to attack Blue were drawing another gale
of laughter. Silence followed instantly, and even Melody quietened down. “Both
Lord Hodur and Lady Nanna have been through horrendous experiences, during
their journey back from the Ice Mountains… Of which, all that we know is that
they were attacked by wolves, although we suspect there was more to it.”
“Sire, Lord Hodur does not
remember most of his journey,” Ochre said, by way of explanation.
“And neither, it seems, does
the Valkyrie Nanna,” White interrupted him before he could continue. “But that mystery will have to wait. What I would like to know now is: who is responsible for the disgraceful
display we have just witnessed?”
“You mean to say, Lord Odin,
that you were not aware of this?” Magenta asked with a deep, doubtful
frown. “You did not order the Valkyries
to be brought here in chains?”
“I certainly did not. Now,
whose bright idea was this? Was it
yours, Thor?”
The growl from White was
accusing, and ominous enough, but it didn’t seem to impress the red-haired
warrior that much. “Not me, Sire,” he
retorted with a shrug.
“Balder? Did you give that
order?”
“Nay, my lord,” Scarlet
replied. “But it is not difficult to
imagine from whom this idea comes, since he
was present a second ago… Probably
enjoying his latest trick.”
“Loki,” growled White again, almost spitting. “This would be quite like him… Come forward, Loki!”
Everyone looked around the
room for the culprit; but he seemed to have disappeared, taking advantage of
the confusion. Blue could have kicked
himself. He had let Black get out of
his sight for only a minute or two. He
wondered if he had not caused the commotion exactly
for that reason.
“I should have known,” White
muttered. “As soon as his evil deed was done, the trickster would vanish until
such time as to start again…”
“My lord,” Ochre then said,
taking a step forward, “In Loki’s defence, I must admit that it is an inspired and prudent idea.” He won
a withering look from White as well as from Magenta and Destiny, but didn’t
seem to care. He smiled
mischievously. “Look how fierce these
women are. They would kill any of us if
they had the chance…”
“I would certainly kill you,
bastard prince,” Melody declared suddenly, pulling to get to him. "Just remove these chains and…”
“Now, Lady Sif,” Ochre said
with a mocking grin, walking to stand in front of her. “You already made that promise to me
earlier. Do not worry; you will get all my
attention later on. That is my promise.”
"Why wait so long, my
lord?" Melody replied between clenched teeth. "Come right now, give me a sword – and I will give you what
you so rightly deserve."
Ochre raised a brow in
mocking amusement. "You would cut
my head right off, if I gave you a sword…"
"Aye. And hang it on the saddle of my mare, as a
trophy…" Melody scoffed. "That is MUCH more respect than you
presently offer us Valkyries."
Murmurs and chuckles greeted
her challenge. White, on his throne,
raised an enquiring brow, while Scarlet started laughing out loud. "Why, Thor, it would seem you found a
spirit as boisterous as yours – perhaps too boisterous?" He grinned
wickedly, looking in appreciation at Melody, then down at Rhapsody who was
still staring up at him in shocked silence.
"I wonder if you will be able to handle her – mayhap I should take
her myself. The redhead might be more
suitable for you…"
"Not on your life,
brother,” Ochre answered before either Rhapsody or Melody could utter what
would no doubt sound like an acerbic protest or insult. "And beside, you might learn before
long that redheads are quite a handful – I should know."
"Aye… so you should.
’Tis to be considered…" mused Scarlet.
His smile widened, and he raised a mocking brow while glancing in the
direction of Blue, who had his eyes set on a silent, but fuming, Symphony.
"But I still prefer blondes… The Lady Iduna would be to my liking…"
"What are you all
on?" Rhapsody whispered, opening eyes wide with astonishment. Scarlet simply raise a questioning brow, but
didn't reply. He didn't have time, anyway.
"Try to touch me, you
arrogant son of a swine,” Symphony snapped angrily before Blue could react to
Scarlet's obvious tease, "and I promise you will lose something that you -"
"ENOUGH OF
THIS!" Obviously annoyed by the
increasingly chaotic scene, White jumped onto his feet, and hit the floor
forcefully with the stave end of his spear.
The loud sound echoed throughout the Hall. “I have heard enough nonsense
for one evening! Remember where you
are! This is the Hall of the
Gatherings, not a fighting arena! The
next one who utters such foolishness will be thrown into the wolves’ den! And do
not think that I would not do it!” Silence had already fallen in the Hall and
nobody dared to answer White’s menacing threat. He grunted with satisfaction
and turned to Ochre, Scarlet and Blue now looking at him with attention. “Heirs
of Aesgard, it is not for you to decide which of the Valkyries you will be
betrothed to. The choice rests with Lady Freyja and myself.”
“And we will choose wisely.”
Those were Destiny’s first words since the Valkyries’ arrival a few minutes
earlier. For some reason, she had kept quiet up until now, observing the scene
with considerable interest. The Valkyries turned to her, and both Melody and
Symphony were glaring at her with obvious resentment in their features while
Rhapsody still looked as lost as previously.
The nearby presence of the tall barbarian – who looked so much like
Paul, but who was nothing like him –
was making her feel more uncomfortable than she cared to admit.
Fortunately, Adam was there
as well – the real Adam and not some
strange barbarian look-alike as the others were. And despite the fact that he was dressed like all the others, he
was acting in the same way as the old reliable Adam. That, at least, was reassuring.
“Lady Freyja,” White said, stepping down from the
dais, “may we rely on your Valkyries’ acceptance of the terms of our agreement
– or will they dare to disobey you?”
"They will disregard
their personal feelings and obey my orders." There was a flash of warning in Destiny's eyes as she stared back
at both Melody and Symphony. "I am their queen, and their leader in
battle. They might not like it, but they will perform their duty as it is
demanded of them, for the greater good of Vanaheim." She marked a short
pause, before adding promisingly: “…Or
I, myself, will push them into that wolves’ den.”
There was a short moment of
hesitation from the 'Valkyries' but then, after exchanging glances, they
acknowledged Destiny's words with a slight nod. Defiance was still apparent in
their eyes, but their submission to their queen's decision seemed enough to
satisfy White. He gave a loud guffaw in obvious appreciation of Destiny’s last
words and, pushing his spear into Blue’s hands so he could hold it for him, he
snatched two goblets from the hands of two nearby warriors and walked
meaningfully to the younger woman.
“You are a woman after my own
heart, Lady Freyja.” He offered her one
of the vessels with a poised gesture and a courtesy that almost – almost – reminded Blue of the man’s real
persona. “Let us seal this alliance between our lands with a pledge – and
sanctify it with the joining of our two houses.”
“My Valkyries are now your
Valkyries, Lord Odin,” Destiny answered with a slight bow. “And they will obey you as they obey
me. They are the best mounted warriors
you will ever find in all the combined lands of Aesgard and Vanaheim.”
“Aye, that they are. And
as the spouses of my heirs, they will be considered as my daughters. And all of
your people are now my people, and shall be treated as equal to any Aesir and
given the same protection by my warriors. This I solemnly swear – my
queen.” He raised his own goblet to the
assembly, and declaimed in a loud voice:
“Let it be heard and understood that from this day forward, the lands of
Aesgard and Vanaheim are now to be considered as one land. One people. One force against our
common enemies, the Ice Giants. And
when the day does come, we will crush
those malevolent fiends, once and for all, and drive them away from our lands
and back to the darkness from whence they came! Together!”
There came the potent noise
of the banging of weapons, and shouts of ‘Hail Odin!’, ‘Hail Aesgard!’ and even
‘Hail Vanaheim!’ and ‘Death to the Ice Giants!’ from all around the room. The warriors sprang to their feet, raising
their tankards and swords. Blue looked
around in wonder – and almost dread, as the last lacquer of civilisation seemed
to completely vanish in that short instant.
He could see that Rhapsody was not keen either at finding herself in the
middle of such a furious and frantic company, and she stared at him with a
pleading look. He gave her a brief nod
of encouragement.
But in fact, he didn’t feel
as confident as he would have liked to feel, or as he was trying to appear.
* * *
Barely an hour had passed
since the end of the meeting; Blue was now in his chamber – Hodur’s chamber –
pacing around nervously and rehearsing what he had learned so far. What he knew
wouldn’t fill a book, and that was exasperating; what was more, although the
present state of affairs – within this world – was starting to make a more
comprehensive picture, he was as much in the dark as before as to how and why it even existed.
He wished he could use a pen
and a paper to write down his discoveries so far – that would make it far
easier to concentrate, but true to form, neither of those two simple and very
common objects was on hand here. So
he’d have to make do without them.
Fact: After a malfunction,
all of the personnel on Cloudbase were stuck
in a fantasy world born out of a 3D game that was running in the Room of Sleep
– transformed into an FX Room for the occasion. What had caused it to
malfunction, and why everyone was affected, was still a mystery. Yet, apparently, the incident had caused
everyone to forget their real lives and to embrace this new reality, and
believe it to be the only one they’d ever known. The effects went as far as to
erase everything that they knew before, creating a complete set of memories,
knowledge and behaviour that were previously alien to ‘the victims’ –
A complete brainwash…
Fact: Normal 3D games were
played at the subconscious level, by imposing images, sounds and feelings on
the players so as to give the appearance of reality. From what Blue knew of those games, it was still very tricky to
create suitable and complete realism for some of the human senses. If sight and
hearing were easily tricked, touch was a little dodgy, and it could still
happen that simple contact with a badly configured ‘wall’ would cause the game
to collapse. Additionally, even the
most sophisticated game could not render the sense of smell perfectly, and as
far as Blue knew, there was no way at all to influence taste in these games…
Which was not the case in this particular situation: everything was – or at least seemed
– as real as in real life itself. Dust would make you choke; ale did have a
taste and could even make you feel dizzy.
Those were not normal conditions for any ordinary 3D game.
Which would imply that this is far
more than an ‘ordinary game’…
Fact: This world was
apparently loosely based on Norse mythology – except that it had been brought
to a more ‘realistic’ level – so to speak –
and with some subtle differences.
Blue’s memories of those legends were coming back to him slowly, and he
did recall that in some more obscure myths, there had been a mention of a war
between Aesgard and Vanaheim… A war that had ended up with the two peoples
finally making peace and joining together – but in none of those legends was
there mention of the Valkyries ever being on the side of Vanaheim. Speaking of which…
Observation: Each of the
senior staff members was seemingly ‘assigned’ a key role in this
three-dimensional Nordic play. For the vast majority of them, and as far as
Blue was able to assess, those roles had been given according to each
‘participant’s’ personality – and were reflections of what they were in real
life. The Angels, surely enough, had been transformed into the Valkyries here –
with Destiny, their generally acknowledged leader, becoming Freyja, the first
rider of the Valkyries and ruler of the Vanir. Magenta was ‘her brother’ Freyr
– or at least, her front, if not actually her consort. Blue remembered that the
legends also gave Freyr the name of Fricco – which, oddly enough in this reality, while it was an alien
detail to the myths, had been used for a period of Freyr’s life where he was a
mere cattle thief – thus making Freyr a
‘reformed criminal’, as Magenta was in real life. Ochre had been transformed
into the boisterous Thor – which didn’t seem like an odd choice when you
thought of it; Lieutenant Green, the communications officer on Cloudbase, was
Heimdall, ‘guardian of the entrance of Aesgard’ – the Bifrost, the Rainbow Bridge! and Colonel White, in a
strange but logical twist of fate, had become Odin, ruthless ruler of all of
Aesgard.
As for Captain Scarlet, he
had been turned into Balder. If memory served Blue right, and if what he had
heard so far concerning ‘Balder’ in this world was any indication, then Blue
knew very well why Scarlet had been
given that role…
So it would not be coincidence that all these people
have been given those very specific roles…
I don’t believe in coincidence.
It would be far too convenient…
Which would mean that this whole fantasy world has
been carefully planned all along…by an outside source.
And Blue had strong
suspicions of who that outside source
might be.
Clue: the unexpected presence
of Captain Black, in the also very fitting role of Loki, renowned trickster and
evil-doer of Aesgard legends, could not be
a coincidence either.
Conclusion: this whole situation could very well be the
work of the Mysterons.
The more he thought of it,
the more Blue became convinced that this was indeed the case. It seemed the best and the most plausible
explanation so far.
Well, they probably have the
powers to actually carry out such a crazy scheme, don’t they? But why would
they do that? Why go to such lengths to
recreate such a world, and carefully put each of us into these specific roles?
Blue had no idea so far why he was Hodur in this set up, but
there was certainly a reason. The
Mysterons never did anything without
reason…
Blue didn’t know if Fawn knew
of Black’s presence. That was doubtful
– he felt pretty sure that Fawn would have told him if he had known. This was not information he would have kept
to himself – no matter the amount of interruption
that might have prevented him from warning Blue.
He had to talk to Fawn; to
tell him what he had learned – and to ask him if his suspicions about Scarlet
were true. That was probably what he was trying to tell me, before we were
interrupted by Scarlet himself…
Pretending that he required
the physician Mimir’s help because he still didn’t feel too well, he had asked
a warrior to fetch Fawn. But he was
soon disappointed when the man returned to him, stating that he could not find
him.
“He’s not in his quarters?”
Blue asked with a puzzled tone.
The warrior – whom Blue
remembered as a security guard from Cloudbase’s hangar bay, by the name of
Norris – simply shrugged his shoulders in an indifferent fashion. “I looked everywhere, my lord. It seemed that the physician Mimir has
disappeared.”
“Disappeared…” Blue repeated
pensively, starting to pace around again.
“Maybe he joined the Vanir
party who came to Aesgard?” Norris suggested.
“After all, he is a Vane himself; he might have joined his people. Nothing would prevent him from doing so
now.”
“Maybe,” Blue murmured. Maybe
he’s trying to reach Rhapsody? No, she wouldn’t be with the Vanir party… She’d
be kept with the other ‘Valkyries’ – at least, until they’re all delivered to
their ‘betrotheds’
Blue knew that both ‘Odin’
and ‘Freyja’, following the last victory toast in the Hall, had retired
together in private, in order to discuss that final detail, and were to reach a
quick decision on this matter – tonight. Blue wasn’t comfortable with the
thought that any of the young women would be – quite literally – given to him.
He didn’t quite know what he would do when she arrived. Which
should be soon now, Blue reflected uneasily. No matter who it was,
it would be an embarrassing situation.
He rather thought that it would be best if Rhapsody was… ‘allotted’ to
him. That way he would be able to brief
her on what little he knew. But at the same time, it was driving him crazy to
think that Symphony would be handed
to either ‘Thor’ or ‘Balder’.
There would be no wedding
ceremony – not as such. The agreement between the two rulers was enough to
consider the unions as legitimate – and consummation during the nuptial night
would be the only rite necessary to validate the marriages. There was no place
for fanciness in this harsh world…
Things were kept straight and simple.
Think rationally, Adam, this is only a game. It’s all subconscious. Whatever
might happen, it won’t be real, so you don’t have to worry about a thing.
Right… If I continue telling myself
that, maybe I’ll convince myself…
He shook himself. For now he
had other business to take care of – maybe that would take his mind off these
foolish and pointless concerns. He
turned to Norris.
“Keep searching,” he ordered.
“Get others to help you. I want to know where Mimir is…”
Commotion from the hall
beyond the door interrupted him; Blue turned on his heels, in time to see the
door burst open and two other warriors enter, roughly pulling inside a young
woman who, despite the chains that were restraining her, was struggling to
escape them.
Blue’s face paled instantly.
That woman between these two men was Symphony.
Refreshed, her hair combed and wearing a clean and exquisite, although
old-fashioned, gown, she was still the same combative Valkyrie he had seen
earlier in the Hall.
And still the same strong-willed
Angel I know and love…
Seeing her manhandled by
these two unruly warriors made Blue’s blood boil. He took a step forward. “Release her!” he roared angrily.
“My lord,” one of the
warriors protested, “she is a she-devil! Considering her threats earlier in the
Hall, we were fearful that she might hurt you.”
“Beside, the Lady Iduna would
not come willingly,” the other put in.
“You heard Lord Odin’s order
earlier!” Blue barked, frowning deeply.
“I’m giving you the same order now!
Release her from those chains.
RIGHT NOW!”
His tone did not admit any
debate; even Symphony seemed to calm down at the sound of his voice – at least
enough to permit the two warriors to finally obey Blue’s order, despite obvious
reluctance. One of them picked up a key and unlocked the collar that encircled
the young woman’s neck, and then removed the shackles from her wrists. She kept still…
…Until her hand reached for
the unguarded knife hanging from the belt of the warrior on her right and
swiftly snatched it from its sheath.
Blue saw the three men with him trying to reach for her and, fearful
that they would hurt her in order to disarm her, he moved forward… and stopped
almost instantly in his tracks, when he felt the tip of the unsheathed blade
suddenly resting against his throat.
Everyone froze where they
were.
Keeping his chin up, Blue
squinted down to meet Symphony’s glare, looking up fiercely at him, neither her
eyes nor her hand wavering.
Which is a damn good thing, because one false move and
she could end up killing me…
Do I still dare believe it’s only a 3D-game gone
wrong? Blue asked himself. Of
course I don’t… What if Karen kills me,
even accidentally? For real?
“Now,” he said carefully, trying not to swallow, “I’m sure you
don’t want to do that…”
“Do I not?” Symphony asked in
a cold enough tone. The blade slightly
pricked Blue under the chin. He
grimaced. The minor wound felt uncomfortably real enough. Blue
looked down at Symphony; her whole attitude right now seemed to indicate that
she would not hesitate one second to slit his throat. She was serious.
“Take it easy,” he said,
trying to sound soothing. A glance toward the three warriors told him that they
were watching for the first available occasion to jump on Symphony and restrain
her, without risking his life. There was no telling what lengths they would go
to, to stop the young woman.
She seemed to have read his
mind.
“Tell your men to leave us,”
she hissed between her teeth.
“We will not leave this
room,” Norris replied harshly.
“You will, if you do not want
me to slit the throat of your precious prince!” Symphony snapped.
Blue nearly forgot to mind
the blade when he nodded his agreement.
The sting under his chin reminded him of it. “Do as she says. Leave
us.”
“Lord Hodur…” one of the
other warriors started to protest.
“It’ll be all right,” Blue
answered carefully. “I’ll handle
it. Go. Leave us.”
Symphony watched cagily as,
reluctantly, the three Aesir warriors walked back through the door, while
keeping wary eyes on her, not knowing what she would do. She gave them a stern glance. “Close the
door behind you,” she ordered. “And do not come back before you are ordered to. Or you might regret it.”
“Obey her,” Blue
acknowledged. “I’ll be all right. She
won’t dare to kill me, I’m her only shield.”
She raised a brow at his
statement, but didn’t comment. Slowly, the door closed behind the departing
warriors. Forcing Blue to follow her
steps, by keeping the blade against his throat, Symphony backed away to the
door, and turned the key into the lock, not taking her eyes off her
hostage. He followed the gesture with
some wariness.
“This way, no-one will come
to disturb us,” she announced. She
threw the key to the other side of the room, in a casual enough gesture. “You are my prisoner, now, prince of
Aesgard.”
“What now?” Blue asked
carefully, locking his eyes with hers.
“What are your intentions?
You’re going to kill me?”
“Kill you? Would I really do that?” She scoffed loudly
and came closer, nearly against him. It
seemed to Blue that it would be so easy to seize her and disarm her, but the
blade resting against his throat was still more than enough deterrent. “You said it yourself earlier, my lord, you
are my shield… And shields are meant to
protect.”
“I wouldn’t be much of a
protection if I was dead, would I?”
“Aye, you certainly worth
more to me alive than dead, Lord Hodur… but not only because you are ‘my
shield’.” With that, before Blue could move, she swiftly removed the blade from
his throat, put her arms round his neck, and pressing her body against his,
tiptoed to reach him and planted a vibrant kiss onto his lips. He nearly gasped – out of surprise, out of
breath, and rolled unbelieving eyes as his body responded almost instinctively,
if still a little clumsily, and his hands closed on her hips to bring her
closer still to him.
When their lips parted, he
looked down in total confusion into her eyes, seeing the expression on her
beautiful face grow bright with mischief, as she hung from his neck. He was completely speechless.
She smiled and laughed
gaily. “’Tis good to see you again, my
husband…”
* * *
What’s happening to me? Rhapsody Angel was wondering
as, escorted by a single Viking warrior who was holding her arm tightly as if
to make sure she would not escape, she was marching down a long corridor lit by
numerous torches hanging from stony walls, toward what she knew would be the
chamber of one of the ‘Heirs of Aesgard’.
I’m dreaming.
I was hurt when our SPJ crashed on the Cloudbase runway and I’m in
sickbay. I’m having delusional
dreams. I’ll wake up any moment now.
But it all felt too
real… The fine linen of the gown she
was wearing now, the chill draught piercing her skin, the coldness of the stone
under her feet – the earlier heaviness of those chains she had been restrained
with and that – mercifully – she was now free of. She was completely at a loss about what was happening and could
not think of any logical explanation - for any of it.
She had woken up earlier in a
dungeon – a dungeon! – suffering from
a terrible headache, dressed in rags, already in chains, and in the company of
both Melody and Symphony. At least she thought they were Melody and Symphony –
they looked exactly like her friends, but didn’t act at all like them. They
were talking with a strange, lilting accent, calling her ‘sister’, and although
they checked her with concern, the questions they were asking and the
statements they made didn’t make any
sense at all. They were all
‘Valkyries’ –and they had been captured by Aesir, and they were to suffer an
ignoble fate, worse than death, according to them.
With her head still hurting,
and already as confused as she could be – or so she thought – Rhapsody hadn’t really had the time to get
over her surprise, never mind try to understand her situation. It wasn’t
very long before she saw fierce-looking Viking warriors enter the dark cell to take them to that great
Hall. Melody and Symphony had made a
show of resisting, as ferociously as they were able to; the disbelieving
Rhapsody was merely there for the ride, caught in the action, trying
desperately to make sense of what she was now seeing – and experiencing.
Amongst all the wide assembly
in the Hall, she had seen Cloudbase’s senior staff, barely recognising them in
their ancient garments and hiding behind a rough appearance. Ochre, Grey,
Magenta, Destiny, even the colonel…
Even Paul, who, like the
others, didn’t seem to recognise her… And that had made her heart ache.
And there was also Captain Black…
She shivered despite herself,
remembering his cold touch on her arms when she had stumbled against him. It was as if she had touched a snake.
But was it really
him? she asked herself. Was it
really all of them? She
was beginning to doubt that very much.
Paul would never have stood
idle on seeing her covered with chains and manhandled; he would have done
something – reacted, just like Captain Blue – the only one to remember her, to
actually look like the man she knew – had done.
She was hoping that it was to Blue that she was being taken. Somehow, she trusted that she would be able
to learn from him what this whole insanity was about. He seemed to know a lot more than she did, from what she was able
to gather earlier. He would tell her exactly who these barbarians were.
Rhapsody’s hopes vanished
when, approaching a closed door, she heard half-muffled voices coming from the
other side. An argument, by the sound of it, between a man and a woman. The Viking guiding her stopped in front of
the door and stood there with her, waiting.
Rhapsody glanced up at his face; the man was keeping a neutral
expression, but she could see the uneasiness within him, reflected in his eyes.
He obviously knew better than to intrude on the couple’s squabble.
“How can you say it is finished, my prince? Do you not know the feelings I have for
you? How can you make such a decision?”
Rhapsody’s heart sank when
she then recognised the male voice that answered – so very familiar despite
that alien accent she had heard earlier.
“This was not my decision,” it was saying with patience. “I have to abide by Odin’s
command.”
“This is not ONLY Odin’s command, and you know
it. I saw how you were looking at
her… You want her. Do you love her more
than me?”
“This has nothing to do with love. This is a… political matter.”
There was a loud scoff from
the woman. “Political?! Since when do you
concern yourself with politics, my lord?”
“Be careful, Gerda…
My patience is growing thin. I
will not allow you to mock me.”
“It is you who are mocking yourself, Lord Balder. This… woman… This Valkyrie… She will betray
you. Did you not see anything? Were you
blind?
“I assure you I do not know what you are talking
about.”
“Then you ARE
blind, as well as deaf, Prince. People
have been talking… About the woman… and
your brother…”
“Gerda…” There
was a touch of annoyance, as well as of warning in Balder’s voice now, but the
woman didn’t seem to hear it at all, as she continued her tirade, relentlessly:
“There is talk about the time they passed together in
the mountains of the Ice Giants…
Together, alone, Lord Balder. Do you not wonder why they do not remember
anything at all of that time?”
“I am warning you, woman…” growled Balder.
“…Or is it that they do not want to tell anything of what happened
there? Do you not see now?”
“Still your tongue!”
There was anger now in
Balder’s tone as he barked the order.
The silence that followed was brief, as Gerda finally kept quiet,
suddenly realising that she was threading on dangerous ground. “Still it, before I still it for you,” Balder
growled again. “I did not hear any of those calumnious rumours you are talking about,
except coming from your heinous mouth, right now. Who told you such lies?
WHO put those malicious thoughts in your head? Loki?”
“Those are no lies, Prince Balder. Mark my words: together, they will betray you…”
“SILENCE!” Balder’s tone did not suffer any reply now. He was truly furious. “You
are talking about my betrothed… and my brother. Jealousy is making you lose
your mind, Gerda, and say things that you will live to regret. As of NOW, you are no longer in my service…
You are to return to the Wallhall kitchens - where you were working before,
feeding meals to the warriors, sleeping in the commune… NEVER to appear before
my eyes ever again!”
Gerda gasped loudly. “My lord… You cannot…”
“ONE MORE WORD and you will be assigned to the
stables!”
Silence followed, soon broken
by Gerda’s low and bitter tone. “So this is how it ends between us… And I thought you loved me.”
“I… appreciated you, Gerda. But I CANNOT allow you to
spill your venom on my brother and my betrothed with impunity. You were the instrument of your own
downfall.”
There was another short
silence. “Nay, my lord,” Gerda then
said sourly, “’tis your downfall that you have instigated. That, I promise you.”
Those words sounded more like
a threat than a prediction; the following second, the door was opened wide and
the servant girl walked out with long strides.
She gave a spiteful glance in Rhapsody’s direction but did not say
anything; huffing, she passed by. Rhapsody followed her with her eyes. An icy draught seemed to follow her, and
Rhapsody shivered. She had seen hatred
in the young woman’s eyes – a hatred that seemed aimed at her.
She looks so much like Nurse Preston in sickbay –
could it be her?
“The Valkyrie may
enter.”
The voice coming from the
other side of the open door was now clearer, and calm, as if nothing had
happened. The Viking warrior easily pulled Rhapsody inside the room; she could
see little point in resisting. She felt better now; her head felt lighter, and
she could think a little clearer. She
really felt that she would be better served by knowing the situation before
running away from it, in an unknown direction.
She had no idea where she would end up, anyway.
She was brought into the
middle of a vast room, brightly lit, well-ventilated with a gentle breeze
entering through the large apertures pierced in the wall. There was a small
table in front of her, with plates of fruit, two goblets and a jug filled with
a dark brown liquid. Against the far wall, there was a large rustic bed,
covered with furs. Rhapsody’s eyes were fixed on that bed; she was suddenly
wondering if she would not have been better off taking the chance to flee.
“Well, that certainly looks
much better. Those garments suit you
better than chains, Lady Nanna.”
Rhapsody did her best not to
jump, and turned her head towards the darkest corner of the room. Standing there, right next to one of the
apertures, through which she could see a clear dark sky dotted with bright
stars, Scarlet – or rather Balder –
was looking at her, his piercing blue eyes scrutinising her from head to foot.
There was a mocking smirk on his lips as he approached with a casual step.
“But I still say I prefer
blondes.” If he thought of making her react, one way or another, he was
mistaken. He eyed the guard beside her. “You can go, now,” he told him. “I do
not think she will cause me any trouble.” Stopping to stand in front of
Rhapsody, he barely acknowledged the man as the latter bowed to him and,
releasing the young woman’s arm, left, closing the door behind him. “You will not, will you?” Balder asked,
almost in a murmur.
Rhapsody couldn’t answer; she
was literally transfixed as she looked into the man’s face. So
much like Paul, and yet… it can’t be him.
Can it?
Faced with her silence,
Balder grunted. “’Tis really my luck – to be stuck with the quiet one of the
lot.”
He took one of the goblets on
the table, poured some of the brown stuff into it and offered it to Rhapsody.
She glanced at it and saw the thick yellowish froth that had formed on the
liquid – which smelled terrible. She looked away in disgust, and Balder
laughed.
“Suit yourself, Lady Nanna.”
He drank the contents of the goblet in one large gulp, and then, putting it
down, eyed Rhapsody carefully. “I have seen you with much more fire than this
before… What happened to you in those mountains for you to lose your spirit
this way?” He raised a brow. “Why did you flee to those mountains to begin
with? Is it such an ugly fate to be
wedded to a prince of Aesgard?”
He took an apple from the
table and offered it to her. She barely looked at it. He scoffed.
“Oh, come on, now. You must
be hungry! You cannot have eaten that well in the dungeon?” He bit into the apple. “Speak to me, Lady Nanna. Your silence is weighing on me.”
“What would you have me
say?” Rhapsody said abruptly.
His face lightened with a
smile as he chewed on the apple. “Ah!
At last! Words coming from that pretty mouth of yours. And more:
I can sense in those words
that there is still that old spirit in you.”
“When was that?” Rhapsody
asked with a frown.
“When was what?”
“You said you had seen me
with more fire before… And now, you’re speaking of my ‘old spirit’. When was
that? How did we meet?”
“The first time?” He
shrugged. “Probably on the field of battle, during one of the numerous clashes
between your people and mine. I was probably trying to dodge that spear of
yours… Lest you actually ran me through
with it!” He smiled. “Surely, you must remember this better than me. I probably made quite an impression on you.”
“You would be arrogant enough
to assume that,” she retorted.
“The fire grows brighter
now!” Balder laughed. “There is promise here.” He shook his head. "But I
do not assume anything. I can only
observe… that you can't take your eyes off me." He leaned toward her, eyeing her mischievously. "Do not try
to deny that."
Rhapsody flushed violently,
before looking down. "It's just that… you look very much like… someone I
know."
"An old lover,
mayhap?" Rhapsody raised her eyes anew in time to see Balder shrug
dismissively. "Is that why you
fled to the Ice Mountains? To escape
your fate and still be with him? Well, I say, forget about him. You are mine, now. Legitimately, by the agreement of both our rulers."
"And if I do not agree with that?" she
asked abruptly.
Balder frowned. "You
have no choice. You are a warrior. Honour and duty demand that you obey your
ruler, just as I must obey mine."
"What if I don't
consider… 'Freyja' as my ruler?"
"Well, she is, so it is
a moot point to argue."
"Then I will argue this:
I have a duty to consider that I do not have to obey unreasonable orders. They
can't be imposed on me. This is my first duty, as a person – and as a
soldier." Balder did not answer
that. He was simply looking at her in silence. She raised an inquisitive brow.
“You're thinking that I’m not as quiet as you first assumed… Lord Balder?” she
said tentatively.
“Nay. I did not really think
so!” He became more serious in the space of a second. “I, better than anyone
else, know that an encounter with the Ice Giants can scar you for life. So I am
blaming all of your present, uncharacteristic behaviour on this… The same for
my brother. Because this is what
happened to you, is it not? You encountered those devils?” He offered her what
was left of his apple, but she didn’t even deign to look at it. Instead, she
was staring at him, wondering what he meant exactly. “Still not hungry,
then? That will come…” He took one last bite from the apple and
threw it away onto an empty plate on the table.
“You don’t believe what that
woman said earlier?” Rhapsody remarked.
He grunted. “’Tis unfortunate that you heard those
disgraceful accusations,” he mused.
“She was talking about me, then.”
He shrugged. “Aye. But those were words born out of jealousy.
You should not concern yourself with them. You see that they do not concern me.”
“Why? You trust me that much?”
Balder guffawed loudly, before
turning to the table and serving himself another drink. “Do not give yourself
too much credit, Lady Nanna. I would never trust you entirely… especially with
a knife in your hand!”
“Gee, thanks,” she murmured
in an undertone.
“But I do trust my brother,”
he added quickly, with a slight smile. “And there is not a more trustworthy man
alive.” Draining his goblet in one long draught, he put it down onto the table
and turned to face her again. He took her by the hand. "But enough talk,
now. ’Tis our wedding night. And it is
time for us to seal our union and truly be husband and wife, as it was decreed
by our rulers."
As he was bringing Rhapsody's
hand to his lips, she swiftly removed it, immediately on the defensive.
"Didn't you listen to what I said earlier?" she demanded. "I did
not agree to this!"
"You persist in this
little game of yours?" Laughing,
Balder encircled her waist and brought her close to him, before she could even
react. "I do not mind. I like a little fighting before love…" He
leaned his head to kiss her exposed shoulder. She could feel the roughness of
his cheek on her neck. Pushing him away, she freed herself.
"Don't touch me!"
she demanded.
Rhapsody’s irritated
expression made him laugh – which only infuriated her further. She took a swing
at his face, but misjudged both the distance and the speed of her fist and he
dodged her attack easily. In one fluid movement, he slipped under her arm and
stepped behind her to encircle her with his strong arms, effectively pinning
her arms against her body.
Big mistake, buster… Rhapsody stamped her foot down furiously, bringing her heel down onto
Balder’s foot. The thin suede of his boot wasn’t enough to protect his toes and
he yelped, relaxing his hold on her just a little. Her head went backwards and
hit him squarely on the nose, forcing a loud groan from his lips. This time, he
completely let go.
Seizing her chance, Rhapsody
attempted to dash towards the door, but just as she was getting out of reach,
Balder’s hand closed on her wrist. He pulled her vigorously toward him, then
used the momentum, and flung her in the other direction, letting go at the end
of the arc.
This time, Rhapsody
completely lost her footing and fell down – face first onto the bed. Instantly, she tried to crawl off it, but
already, Balder had leapt to her side, turned her onto her back and was now
sitting astride her, pinning her down. She did try to push him away from her,
hitting him with closed fists, but he effortlessly caught her wrists on the fly
before holding them down against the bed, on each side of her head.
Rhapsody still struggled for
a short time, but her attempts to get free were futile; he was just too strong,
and had the advantage. She finally stopped, her breast rising and falling from
her rapid breathing, and looked up with eyes burning with anger at the man
sitting on top of her. He was smiling
roguishly, as if he was having a great time.
This CAN’T be Paul, Rhapsody told herself anxiously.
Paul would never treat me – or any
woman – that way. This man is only a brutish barbarian who only thinks of
taking his pleasure… He just LOOKS like Paul… That threw me off and now I’m in
trouble.
Balder leaned down on her,
looking attentively into her face; she glared back at him, not lowering her
gaze.
“Are you afraid of me, Lady
Nanna?” he asked in a low voice.
“No…” Although she was trying
to present a brave façade and to render her voice as firm as possible, Rhapsody
was very much aware that this barbarian would see right through her. She was
afraid, but she also was angry, and very upset that she was now at his
mercy.
He will not find me easy prey…
Before her eyes, she saw the
smile on Balder’s face slowly disappear; he rose on his knees, pulling on
Rhapsody’s wrists and forcing her up into a sitting position. She nearly gasped
in surprise and didn’t even resist. Her hands still imprisoned within his
strong grasp, she looked into his eyes with some apprehension. He wasn’t
mocking her anymore; the expression on his face was now more serious.
“You should never be afraid of me, my lady,” he said in a murmur.
“You should know that I would never hurt
you…”
Rhapsody froze at his words.
He sounded genuinely concerned, and suddenly so kind… He sounded just like
Paul.
“What did you call me?” she
whispered, feeling the hold on her hands slowly release.
“My lady. My…” By the frown suddenly appearing on his face,
it was obvious that Balder was having a mental struggle, as if he was trying to
grasp an obscure memory. His hand reached
for Rhapsody’s cheek and she didn’t even attempt to pull back when he grazed
it. “D…”
Rhapsody’s heart missed a
beat, as anticipation grew within her – but the elusive word died on Balder’s
lips.
Suddenly, his look became
hard and he roughly pushed her down; she fell off the bed, entangled in the
furs; startled by Balder’s apparent change of heart, she looked up in
puzzlement – in time to see the servant girl she had encountered earlier
literally jump onto the bed with a wild shriek, holding a dagger, and stabbing
Balder in the abdomen.
Where did she come from? Rhapsody wondered. She realised that the woman – Gerda – must have
slipped into the chamber while she and Balder had been busy fighting each
other. Unnoticed, she had crept up on them, keeping quiet until her opportunity
came to attack. Balder must have seen her
at the last minute – and pushed me out of harm’s way. But that had left the Viking prince unprotected, and he had
now fallen victim to the savage blow of the crazed woman. With a loud grunt, he fell down to the
floor, holding the wound.
“I warned you that you had caused you own downfall, Prince Balder!”
Gerda spat hatefully. “Now you will
die… exactly like the swine you are.”
“Leave him alone!” Rhapsody
jumped to her feet, gripping one end of a fur blanket and standing in front of
the crouching Balder, who was struggling against his pain and attempting to
regain his focus. “I won’t let you kill him.”
“Ah, the Valkyrie now stands
to protect her man,” Gerda sneered mockingly. “Do not worry, woman. You are meant to die as well!”
She lashed forward but
Rhapsody dodged and flapped the fur blanket to wrap the exposed arm of her
adversary. The knife disappeared under the blanket and Rhapsody gave a sharp
jerk, unbalancing Gerda, who stepped forward… right into the trajectory of the
Angel’s fist, which caught her on the chin.
She fell on her back, losing her weapon in the process.
Rhapsody leaned to pick up
the knife, just as the door burst open and four Viking warriors, armed with
very sharp spears, ran in; they stopped in shock upon seeing the scene: their
prince was on his knees, clearly hurt, and the Valkyrie was standing over him
with a bloody knife in her hand. Gerda, lying on the floor, seeing an
unhoped-for possibility to exact her revenge on the hatred Valkyrie, gestured wildly
in her direction, with an accusing finger.
“Kill her! She attacked Lord Balder! She tried to kill him!”
Rhapsody paled; she stepped
back, feeling completely helpless, as the warriors walked menacingly towards
her, spears at the ready.
“HOLD!” With a supreme effort, Balder had pulled
himself to his feet, gritting his teeth against the pain in his abdomen;
holding himself as upright as possible with the help of the table, he glared
warningly at the Viking warriors. “The first man to touch the Valkyrie will
hang tomorrow at dawn!” He gestured
toward Gerda. “THAT woman attacked me.
Seize her!”
Rhapsody blew a sigh of
relief. It didn’t take more than three
seconds before the warriors marched on Gerda and pulled her, struggling, to her
feet. She stopped resisting when she realised that she couldn’t escape. Balder
let go of the table and slowly walked towards her. He stopped by Rhapsody, and took the knife from her hand –
gently, as if he didn’t want to scare her away; she willingly let go of it and
watched him as he stared with attention at the blade tainted with his
blood. His left hand was covering his
wound, the blood oozing between his fingers.
After a last concerned look
at Rhapsody, Balder approached Gerda and stood in front of her, showing her the
knife.
“It is fortunate for you that
the Lady Nanna was not hurt,” he said implacably. He let go of his wound and
presented his blood-covered hand to her.
“This was not your idea, I am sure.
Who put you up to this?” Gerda kept silence and lowered her head. A low growl of complete anger came from
Balder’s throat. “Have it your way,
then. Tomorrow, woman, I will deal with
you. Under the torture, you will talk.
That, I can assure you.” He roughly wiped his bloody hand on the woman’s
tunic. “Take her away!” he ordered to
the warriors.
“My lord, you are hurt,” one
of them remarked. “You should see the physician Mimir. You…”
“I will be all right.” Balder
raised his hand to stifle further protests from the four men. “’Tis but a scratch. Take her away, I said. I can no longer bear the sight of her.”
Keeping himself straight and
dignified, he watched with cold eyes as the warriors, reluctantly obeying his
orders, left the room, escorting the now disheartened Gerda. They closed the door behind them. Rhapsody followed their departure with her
eyes, in a way disappointed that she had not been able to take advantage of the
incident to run off – but at the same time unsure of what she should be doing
now, especially with Balder standing there, wounded. It was more than a scratch he had received. She
could tell just by the look of it; she couldn’t explain to herself why the four
men who had just left had not noticed it too and insisted far more that their
prince needed to see a physician.
She turned to him, in time to
see his knees buckle underneath him; she walked to his side. He had trouble holding himself straight now
and was leaning against the table anew.
“You are hurt,” she told him. “More than you pretended.”
“Aye…” he agreed through
clenched teeth. “The wretched woman missed you but did not miss me.”
Rhapsody was shocked. “You
should see a doctor… a physician…”
“Do not concern yourself with
this. ’Tis not the first time…”
Balder made a few tentative
steps toward his bed and, almost despite herself, Rhapsody helped by supporting
him. He seemed to appreciate this new attitude of hers and nodded his
thanks. He lowered himself on top of
the bed, groaning with pain.
“I only need a little rest,”
he slurred. He grimaced as he turned on his back, his eyes closing.
“You need a doctor,” Rhapsody
insisted with disapproval. “I’m going to get…” She moved to stand up, but
Balder’s hand kept hold of hers and would not let go.
“Stay with me,” he said in an almost inaudible tone. “Please… My lady…”
“Stop calling me that,” she
pleaded.
“D… Dianne…”
She stared at him in shock;
his eyes were closed now, and his breathing was shallow; his brow was covered
with a cold sweat. Instantly, she was
by his side, stroking his damp face and hair, looking at him with distress.
“My God,” she whispered. “Paul…
It is you…”
“Dianne…” he repeated, this
time in a tone so low she had trouble hearing it. “I’m so cold… Can’t feel my
legs… my arms… Can’t think… Trapped…
Help… help me…”
“What is it?” Rhapsody asked
with urgency, feeling he would soon lose his senses. She had noticed that the lilting foreign accent had disappeared
to be replaced by Scarlet's usual voice – slurred, but familiar. “What happened, Paul? What is this place…”
“R… Ragnarok…” Scarlet
moaned. “The Twilight… The Twilight of
the gods… We must… stop…
Ragnarok…”
With those last words, he
finally gave in to pain and mercifully lost consciousness, leaving Rhapsody
with more questions than answers – and a despairing sense of anguish.
“Wait a minute – you’re saying we’re already married!?”
Seated at the foot of the bed, Blue watched as Symphony, standing in
front of the small table, was pouring the contents of a jug into two goblets,
her back turned to him. He saw her give
a brief nod of her blonde head, before turning around, and marching towards
him, with the two drinks.
“We have been for the past three months – are you saying you do not
remember?” There was a look of
scepticism on her beautiful face that turned into dismay when she saw his hesitation. She came to sit right next to him, and put
the two goblets on the floor, to free her hands, and stroked Blue’s face in
concern. “My poor, dearest love…
Whatever happened to you and Nanna in those mountains? Oh, those Ice Giants – now that we are strong
enough, with the union of our two lands, we will make them pay, you will
see!” Her eyes were flashing with
indignity and anger. Blue took her hand
in his, gently stopping her as she moved to embrace him.
“We’ll see about that later,” he said with an uncertain
smile. “But right now – maybe if you’d
bring me up to date, it’ll help me remember?”
She looked at him as if she had not understood what he was saying. Which
is probably the case, he realised suddenly. “Tell me about us,” he said instead. “How did we meet?”
“You do not even remember
that?” she moaned.
“I’m afraid not,” he answered, a little sheepishly. “But I’m sure it will come back to me very
soon,” he added quickly, noticing the obvious disappointment on her face. “If… you can tell me about it?”
“If it will help you…”
Symphony gave a sigh. "I do
not know if you remember the battle at the pass of Svartalf, just on the border
of the Icy Mountains…" Of course,
Blue couldn't remember something he had not been a part of, but he simply
nodded as she pursued the tale: "I
was leading a troop of Vanir warriors, in reconnaissance on the border, and we
clashed with patrolling Aesir soldiers – whom you commanded at the time. It was a glorious battle, and even though
you were superior in number, it seemed like our forces were equal…" Blue raised an eyebrow, hearing the
barely-contained arrogance of her statement, but didn't reply. "A huge force of mercenaries from
Svartalfheim – those servile slaves of the Ice Giants – attacked us," she
said with a loud snort of loathing.
"Those cowards were much greater in number and had estimated that
we were growing weaker, because we had been fighting each other for some time,
and casualties were high on both our sides.
However, they did not count on the fact that we would combine our
strength against our common enemies. We were able to hold our ground – more: we
actually killed a lot of those bastards and were able to repel what was left of
their forces and forced them to flee across their border. The Aesir troop, however, paid the highest
price of this victory: except for you,
none of them survived. But they died a
glorious death." She touched
Blue's chest, right where his heart was.
"You were seriously injured, and you lost your sight, while protecting
me from a treacherous blow from behind – despite the fact that I was an enemy
of your people.”
“I lost my sight?” Blue said in a pensive tone. Okay…
that might be in accordance with the Norse legends. Hodur was a blind god, but no story told how he had lost his
sight.
There was also no existing saga recalling that he did recover his sight, though. To Blue’s knowledge, anyway.
"You were unconscious - we could not leave you behind, at the mercy
of the mercenaries who would surely return,” Symphony continued. “So I decided to take you to Vanaheim. You were not expected to survive, let alone
recover your sight, but our physician treated your injuries and you got better
as the days turned into weeks. I
visited you often, and in the end, even stayed by your side, while you were
healing." She smiled, as she
remembered those fond memories.
"You eventually regained your sight, and your strength. Our Lady Freyja did not quite know what to
make of you. She was torn between
keeping you hostage and demanding a ransom from your sire or sending your head
to him as a warning of what would become of our enemies."
Blue stared at Symphony with unbelieving eyes. They’re all incredibly bloodthirsty in these new roles of theirs! he
reflected. Uncomfortably, he stroked
the back of his neck. "I'm sure
glad she didn't choose the second option!" he noted with an uneasy smile.
"After you had saved my life, her conscience would not
let her do it – and frankly, neither would I.
Not only because I was now honour-bound to you, for you had saved my
life – but because we had fallen in love."
"Now it would seem that was a rather awkward
dilemma?"
"Aye. But it
was you who provided the perfect
solution to it; and to all of the problems of your people and mine, at the same
time."
"By marrying you?"
"Not only that, my love, but you convinced Lady Freyja
that it would be in the best interests of both our lands to form an alliance that would permit us to fight
and eventually defeat the dreaded Ice Giants. The battle at the Svartalf pass
served as a proof that by uniting our forces, we would be powerful enough to
become a fair match for our common enemies.”
"I guess hard times make unexpected allies," Blue
remarked.
“That is what you said at the time,” Symphony said with a brief
smile. “And after all, none of us know
the real reason for this feud between Aesgard and Vanaheim. It happened so long ago, so was it not time
to end this war between our people?”
“Quite right,” murmured Blue, pensively.
“The most difficult part of your task was to convince Lord Odin of the
advantage of your plan. After Lady Freyja celebrated our union, you were sent
back to Aesgard, escorted by Lord Tyr – as a token of our ruler's good faith,
he was to put himself under Odin’s command.
And of course, submit the proposal to your Lord, with your help.”
“Lord Tyr is a very brave man to expose himself to the wrath of
Aesgard’s ruler,” Blue noted. “I’m
guessing Odin wasn’t very happy at discovering I had married a Valkyrie of the
Vanir.”
“So you told me, my love,”
Symphony said, chuckling. “But you and
Lord Tyr were able to show Odin the wisdom of an alliance between our
clans. And, if nothing else, despite
being our enemy, Odin is known as a very wise man and ruler.”
“He insisted that
the Vanir people would officially surrender to Aesgard,” Blue remarked.
“I see the memory is coming back to you, my lord.”
Not
really, Blue reflected inwardly. Just an educated
guess… He stared curiously at the
Valkyrie.
“But if you knew all that,” he pointed out, “if this was already all
planned in advance… What was the point
of that elaborate scene – why the show during the meeting earlier?”
“T’was part of the deal, my love,” Symphony answered. “Freyja accepted Odin’s demand that Vanaheim
surrender to Aesgard – but we have our pride, do we not? We were not going to let it appear that we
submitted willingly.”
Blue raised an inquiring brow.
“That’s why Rhaps… I mean Nanna…
flew to the Icy Mountains?”
“She was on a mission there, but nothing had been seen or
heard from her since she left. You
volunteered to find her – as a demonstration of Aesgard’s good faith in this
agreement between our people.” Symphony
smiled thinly. “As I understand, Balder
also volunteered, considering Nanna was his betrothed, but Freyja did not trust
him entirely. As you are the only Aesir
she could truly trust, she agreed that you
should go.”
“So it was already decided who would be betrothed to whom,” Blue mused. “Again, it was part of the charade.”
“Of course, my love.
Would you have run the risk of me ending up in the bed of one of your
brothers?” She laughed, seeing Blue’s
response in the form of an awkward look.
“I have to admit that neither Nanna nor Sif were pleased with the
situation.”
“I bet,” Blue murmured, more to himself than to Symphony.
“You did bring
your knowledge of your Aesir brethren to the matching, though,” Symphony
continued. “You were confident that
Balder and Nanna were perfect for each other…
And that Sif’s fiery temper would be a perfect match for Thor’s rowdy manners.”
“Oh, sure, if they don’t kill each other first,” muttered
Blue. If they were anything at all like
Captain Ochre and Melody Angel, he had no trouble imagining the sparks flying
in Thor’s chamber at the moment. Those
two were playing a strange game of cat and mouse together – and nobody really
knew who was the cat and who the
mouse. They stopped just short of
getting at each other’s throats. If
they had not yet ended up in bed together – and nobody could say for sure if that
had already happened – it was
certainly bound to happen sooner or later.
“I have told you all that I know so far, and I can see, by the lost look
in your eyes, that you are still confused," Symphony declared after
scrutinizing him closely. She leaned
down and lifted the two goblets she had previously put aside, offering one to
Blue. "Enough talk, then. Here is something that might help you regain
your memory… or at least, cheer you."
Blue guardedly sniffed the contents of the goblet,
remembering how the ale he had drunk earlier in the Hall – even in such a small
quantity – had tasted so terrible. The
smell of this new drink wasn't disagreeable at all. He tasted it cautiously.
"Cider," he proclaimed in surprise.
Symphony nodded her head.
"Made with the golden apples of my own garden in Vanaheim,"
she answered proudly. "My family
have tended them for generations – and the cider we make from them is a nectar
from the gods. It is said to have
healing abilities."
"Is that so?" Blue said, raising an eyebrow. "How much truth is there in that
claim?"
"At least as much truth as there is in Lord Thor's
assertion that the touch of his hammer can heal mortal wounds?" That didn't sound like a positive answer to
Blue, who was taking another sip of his drink. Symphony laughed. "When you tasted it in Vanaheim, you
told me it was probably what healed you."
Blue took a larger gulp of the cider. He had never tasted anything like this
before. It was truly delicious. Which is really strange. This drink is a
part of a 3D game. It shouldn’t even have any taste in the
first place. And yet…
"This
will be very popular in Aesgard," he noted, looking thoughtfully at the
nearly empty goblet.
"Aye, I reckon it will…" Sipping at the contents of her vessel, Symphony watched as Blue
drained the last of his. Then, she took
it from his hand, and put both back down on the floor. "…And enough drinking, now," she
said, leaning toward him and putting her arms around his neck. "I want you to keep a clear head, my
love. We might be already married, but
that does not mean we cannot be like the others and consummate this 'wedding
night'…" She started nibbling at his neck, playfully. At first, Blue didn't react; he was feeling
rather hot and slow, and he thought it might be fatigue starting to set in –
that, combined with the effect of the cider…
He gently tried to disentangle himself from her arms.
"I don't think it's…"
He stopped, noticing his slurred voice.
His vision was starting to lose its focus and the room was
spinning. He blinked several
times. "I don't feel too well…”
“I will make you feel better, my love,” she said, in a purring tone,
that reminded him very much of Symphony at her most impish. She had no trouble pushing him down onto the
bed, as he was quite unable to offer any resistance now. At another time, and in different
circumstances, he would have enjoyed himself; but at the moment, considering
the awkwardness of the situation, he wasn't sure if it was too wise to pursue
this… venture.
And he really
didn't feel too well. He tried to fight
off the drowsiness that was threatening to overcome him – and a terrible
suspicion suddenly formed in his mind.
My God…
was the cider drugged?! He
didn't think that Symphony – 'Iduna' – would knowingly do him any harm – not
after what she had just told him about herself and ‘Hodur’. She truly believed this ‘background story’
to be the truth. She had narrated it,
as if she had truly participated in it.
Besides, if she had wanted to, she could easily have slit
his throat earlier…
That was logical, wasn’t it?
Snap out of it, Adam… you don’t really expect this whole
situation to make any logical sense, do you?
No… there
was definitely something wrong here.
“The cider…” he said, almost in a whisper.
“…Is just making you relaxed,” the voice of Symphony told
him. It sounded as if it was coming
from afar, and he could barely see her face, now hovering in front of his
eyes. He screwed up his eyes, grunting
with the effort of desperately trying to stay awake.
“Karen…” he moaned, trying to raise his hand to his aching
brow. “My… head…”
“Just relax, my love…” he heard the voice of Symphony tell
him again, echoing from even further away. “Relax…”
Darkness engulfed him completely and he felt as if he was
falling from a vertiginous height as he finally lost his battle to keep awake,
the voice still reverberating through his mind…
* * *
“This is the Voice of the Mysterons… We will be avenged for your
unprovoked attack on our Martian Complex…
Nothing will stop the events leading to Ragnarok. Hear us, Earthmen… Your nightmare is not finished.
Ragnarok is coming…”
In the darkness surrounding him, as he was trying to draw himself from a
very deep sleep, Captain Blue tensed.
The ominous words had made their way into his drowsy mind. This was an abrupt wake-up call to reality,
if ever he had heard one. He
desperately clung to it, and physically and mentally struggled to wake up.
“Relax, Captain… You’re back
with us, now. Just take it easy.”
Blue blinked his eyes and he regained his sight. There was an unnatural brightness
surrounding him, now… electric light, he
observed, as his eyes became accustomed to it, and he found himself staring up
at a high ceiling. He was lying on his
back, on a bed – a modern bed, with a
mattress – his head elevated on a pillow, and with bleeping sounds coming from
a panel embedded in the wall just over his head. An electrode was applied to his brow, and he could feel others on
his bare chest. His brow furrowed as
his mind cleared and he considered his new situation.
I'm in
sickbay, he realised. This is Cloudbase. I'm back…
Next to a powered-down projector, set just above him, he
could see a male face, hovering, looking down at him. “Doc,” he sighed, recognising Fawn. When he tried to push himself up from the mattress, it was to discover
that his wrists and ankles were held down by security restraints. He looked up with concern into Fawn's
face. Fear suddenly crept into his
mind.
Oh no… not
Edward…
"Do not worry, Captain," a voice told him. "Your doctor isn't an agent of the
Mysterons." Blue could see that
Fawn's expression was troubled – even upset. The physician looked up in the
direction from which the voice had come. A man came to stand next to him, and
Blue's eyes hardened upon recognising him.
"But you are, aren’t you, Bromwell?"
Technician Bromwell didn't answer the accusation; he didn't
even flinch. Blue struggled against
his restraints.
“You’re behind this crazy situation, aren’t you?”
“How perceptive,” Bromwell retorted coldly. He shook his
head. "I will free you, Captain…
if you give your word that you will behave yourself."
"And why would I do you that favour, exactly?"
Blue asked sharply.
"Because if you don't, Sergeant Rochester will kill
your friends?” Bromwell made a gesture,
and a second man, wearing a Spectrum security uniform, appeared, holding a gun
in his right hand. Blue became alert,
and stopped struggling. “Starting with the good doctor,” Bromwell added in an
ominous tone. As he heard those words,
Blue saw the gun being aimed at Fawn who looked down at it with anger in his
eyes. Bromwell casually addressed Blue
again: "Is that a good enough
reason, Captain Blue?"
Blue swallowed hard and nodded briefly. "I think it is, yes."
"So do I have your word?"
"You have it.
Free me. I won't try anything against you."
"Good. I knew
you were a reasonable man. Doctor Fawn, if you would, please…?"
Under the threat of the gun, Fawn approached and leaned down
to first remove the three electrodes attached to Blue’s chest, and the one on
his brow. Then he unfastened the restraints on Blue's ankles, and then
his wrists. The Spectrum captain
carefully kept still, mindful of the gun now trained on them both, until Fawn
had finished and stepped back. Only
then did Blue finally sit up in bed and swing his feet to the side. He grunted, rubbing his neck. His body felt stiff, as if he had slept a
long time – much too long.
Well, of
course… That's exactly what’s happened,
actually…
Blue looked down at himself. His blue vest was gone, and his shirt had been torn open halfway
down to expose his chest, where the electrodes had been attached – he could
still see the marks on his flesh. As he
raised his head, Blue noticed the bunk next to his. Rhapsody Angel was lying on it, her eyes closed, and her breast
rising and falling quietly – obviously deep in sleep. She was restrained as he had been, and, through the discreetly
opened cleavage of her uniform, he could see electrodes on her as well, linked
to the electronic panel over her head.
Just above her face, there was a projector, sending waves of multicoloured
lights onto her features, in a gentle, quiet motion. Blue felt anger rising inside him again, and he turned to face
Fawn, with an inquiring look. The
latter shook his head and offered a faint, but reassuring smile.
"Rhapsody is quite all right, Blue," he informed
him. "Just asleep… and, I suspect,
deeply involved in this idiotic 3D game…"
Blue thanked him with a brief nod. "How are you, Doc?"
he asked in concern.
"Frustrated," Fawn answered, with a frown. "And I also feel quite useless, to tell
the truth. One minute, I was falling
asleep in… ‘Aesgard’ – and the next, I wake up here, staring up at the business
end of a gun. I reckon they figured I’d
already told you too much of what was going on."
"On the contrary, Doctor," Bromwell retorted
quietly. "You actually served your
purpose quite nicely… by giving Captain Blue the first information he needed,
so he would be able to play our little game."
"You’re telling me you wanted him to be informed?" Fawn replied with a doubtful
glance.
"You are behind
this, then," Blue murmured. He
nodded thoughtfully, seeing the smug expression on Bromwell's face. "I heard the Mysterons' Voice as I woke
up… I'm sure it was not my imagination."
"It wasn't,"
Fawn said gloomily. "You did hear them."
"So I was right," Blue added, still staring at Bromwell. "You are a Mysteron."
Bromwell
smiled faintly. “There’s little point
in me answering that question, is there?”
“It was not a question; it was an affirmative
statement.” Blue’s tone was as hard as
his features, as he stared straight at Bromwell. He glanced briefly in Rochester’s direction; the gun the security
guard was holding was aimed straight at him, and his face was implacable. Another
Mysteron, Blue thought with loathing.
He quickly evaluated his chance of actually taking on the two of them
all by himself, without endangering Doctor Fawn. He was interrupted in his reflection by Bromwell’s loud scoffing,
which compelled him to turn in his direction.
“Don’t try anything foolish, Captain Blue. Do you really want to see all your friends
and colleagues, all the people living on Cloudbase, die? Because if you attack us, if you even
succeeded in subduing or killing us, you will sign their death warrant, I can
guarantee this. Besides," he added
in a mocking tone, "you did give
me your word, didn't you?"
“You mean to tell me that all these people are in your
power?” Blue asked. He squinted
doubtfully at the man.
Bromwell’s glare was icy.
“That’s exactly what I mean, Captain,” he said in an ominous tone. “Every single one of them. They’re all in our power.”
“I don’t believe you,” Blue retorted, deeply furrowing his
brow. Fawn had a similar expression of
doubt on his face.
“Oh, ye men of little faith…" Bromwell declaimed. "So typical of Earthmen…” Sighing, he turned to a nearby TV monitor set
on a desk and, with a gesture, invited both Blue and Fawn to approach. It was only two or three steps, and, with
Rochester in tow, keeping at a careful distance, with his gun trained on them,
the two Spectrum agents came to stand in front of the monitor and watched the
image displayed on it.
“This screen is linked to the various security cameras
onboard Cloudbase,” Bromwell explained.
“I’m sure you’ll recognise most, if not all, of the locations…”
The screen was divided into four sections, showing different
areas of Cloudbase. The engine room,
the main hangar, the nurses’ station in sickbay and the radar room were first
displayed. Bromwell pushed a button
repeatedly, and the images flicked through other portions of the base… The cafeterias, the sports centre, the
galley, the officers’ lounge, the technicians’ stations, and so on… Blue and Fawn opened their eyes wide with
disbelief; all of those places were displaying the same, incredible images…
People were lying on the floor, or sprawled on seats, or at
their stations, seemingly unconscious; there was a mist in every room,
ominously floating in the air, and the ambient lighting, in all the rooms, was
flashing in a strange motion, that reminded Blue very much of the hypnotic
lighting system in the Room of Sleep – and of the lights he had seen flashing
over Rhapsody’s face.
As far as Blue and Fawn could tell, by the flickering of the
many lights from different electronic panels, all the computerised and
electrical systems they could see seemed to be operational and working in
perfect order. Whatever had hit the
personnel didn’t seem to have any effect on the material. That reminded Blue uncomfortably of what had
happened at several bases of the Frost Line Defence system, more than a year
ago… Everyone working in those bases had died, at that time.
This was so very similar –
down to that ominous mist.
Except for those dancing lights…
“Don’t worry, they’re all alive.” The voice of Bromwell made his way through Blue’s brain,
seemingly reading his mind. The
Mysteron agent flicked through the images one last time, until the screen
finally displayed its last four images:
the Control Room, which, at the moment, was completely empty; the Amber
Room, where he could see three of the Angel pilots slumped on the two sofas,
apparently deep in sleep; the sickbay Room of Sleep, fully operational, where
colour-coded officers could be seen lying on beds. Closest to the camera, Blue could recognise Colonel White and
Captain Ochre. Blue counted three other
officers, but the rapid and irritating flickering of the hypnotic lights made
it difficult for him to see who they were or what the colour of their uniforms
was. The last image was that of
Rhapsody, lying on her bed right next to them, looking so peaceful.
Blue turned furiously toward Bromwell. "What evidence do we have that they are
indeed alive?" he asked.
Bromwell smirked.
"I could give you my word that they are, but I think you would not
find it sufficient. You already know
that Rhapsody is alive. And I can show
you the readings from the beds in the Room of Sleep…" He gestured to the third image on the
screen. "Look closely. You can see that your colonel is in good
condition. As well as Captains Ochre,
Magenta and Grey – and Lieutenant Green."
Blue pricked his ear, noticing that Bromwell didn't mention
Scarlet. He said nothing for now. He was watching the screen intently.
“What is this… mist… that seems to be all over Cloudbase?”
he asked suspiciously.
“Actually, it is all over the base, except for sickbay,”
Bromwell corrected. “We sealed all
airlocks leading here, you see, so we’ll be perfectly safe. This is gas, as you might have guessed. A very strong, narcotic gas.”
“And this is what you used to knock everyone out.”
“Correct, Captain. It is true that we could have killed them
all. Quite easily. By using lethal gas, instead of this one, for example. We had the opportunity. But we didn’t do it.”
"Why didn't you?"
"It would not serve the purpose of the Mysterons."
He marked a short pause. "At this
point, anyway.”
“How did you get that gas in here?”
Bromwell chuckled.
“Ah… Captain, you would have me tell you all of my little secrets?” Blue simply frowned in answer. Bromwell looked thoughtful for a minute,
before giving his answer: “Creating the
gas onboard was a little matter, when you have access to all the components
necessary. Some of them, you would
find in sickbay, others in the hangar bay – the rest, down in weaponry.”
Blue narrowed his eyes. "How did you succeed in getting
it all over Cloudbase?” he asked. “And
how did you put everyone into such a state?
How did you achieve that?”
“How did I trap all of them in this fake reality, you mean?”
Seeing Blue nodding to the affirmative, Bromwell shook his head. "Oh…
through a simple rewiring job within Cloudbase’s various life-support and
environmental systems, and computers… addition of special software and
programming… Easy enough when you have
the natural ability to do it...”
“Easy my foot!” Fawn scoffed loudly. “You had the help of the Mysterons! And there is nothing ‘natural’ about this 3D game… The Mysterons simply used its setting and literally ‘created’
that world the others are trapped in…”
Bromwell grinned faintly.
“The Mysterons have powers you can’t even dream of possessing… Let alone start to understand. ”
“I hate it when you Mysterons get melodramatic like that,”
Fawn muttered.
But Blue was shaking his head dismissively. “You couldn’t
have had access to all those components like that, Bromwell,” he said harshly.
“It’s impossible that you would have been able to do so without your efforts being
discovered by security or Cloudbase’s automatic safety features.” He nodded abruptly in Rochester’s direction.
“Neither you nor this guy could gain all the necessary access codes to all the
safety locks you would have run up against, looking for those components – let
alone to access the life-support controls systems, breach them and send your
crap through the vents. That, before being able to ‘rewire’ – as you said it –
the environment systems?” Blue stared directly at Bromwell. “You had help, all
right… But not only from the
Mysterons.”
“Bromwell smiled again.
“You are a clever man… Not much
gets by you, does it, Captain?”
“I have my moments,” Blue growled.
“Yes,” Bromwell acknowledged then, with a shrug. “I will admit it… I had some help to breach
the security systems. Some very useful
help.”
“How?” Fawn asked
suddenly. “To breach that kind of
security, you needed to gain access to…”
“The Control Room, of course,” Bromwell confirmed.
“Someone from the Control Room helped you?” Fawn repeated, opening eyes wide with
astonishment. He could see that Blue
had already figured that out, by the grimness displayed on his features. But Fawn was still sceptical. “Who…?”
“Who else but the Control Room duty officer at the time?”
Blue paled.
“Green…?”
“Green was at the sickbay Room of Sleep when it all started.
Helping to transform it into an FX Room.”
The new voice coming from the door made Blue and Fawn turn in that
direction. There was a newcomer
standing in front of the closing doorway.
He was dressed in a dark red uniform and was looking at them from under
his cap visor, with cold, unconcerned eyes.
“Lieutenant Burgundy?” Blue said with a frown, recognising
one of Lieutenant Green’s usual replacements at the central computer. “So you’re in it too?”
“Correct, Earthman,”
Burgundy said, approaching with a quiet step.
Blue tensed. He’s a Mysteron, like the others, he
realised. Of course. There could be
no other way to explain how faithful Spectrum personnel – like these three men
were supposed to be – would turn against their colleagues.
“It was easy for Sergeant Rochester to kill Lieutenant
Burgundy, before he could start his duty stint at the main computer,” Bromwell
explained. “Aside from the opportunity,
he was perfect. Burgundy has been part
of Lieutenant Green’s team of auxiliaries almost since the beginning. His knowledge of Cloudbase Control is second
to no-one’s on base – except maybe Green himself.”
“… And Captain Magenta,” Blue corrected.
“… And Colonel White,” Fawn added obligingly.
Bromwell nodded his acknowledgement. “So now you understand how easy it was for
us to disable the security failsafes and gain access to wherever we wanted to
go within any of Cloudbase’s systems. We were able to imprison everyone,
without anyone noticing it before it was too late. We even blocked Angel One on deck, so she won’t be able to take
off and escape.”
“You think you’ve
thought of everything, don’t you?” Blue
said roughly. A thought suddenly hit
him. Angel One… The craft was to be manned constantly, so that meant
that someone was in it when the attack began. The pilot might have realised
that something was wrong, and would have been safe from the gas, in the cockpit
of her craft. He turned to the screen.
There were three Angels there… Destiny, Melody, Symphony… Of course, he realised. Those
who were playing the Valkyries in that fantasy world… Harmony was probably the one in Angel One, then… She had not been included in the fantasy.
“Don’t get your hopes up too high, Captain,” Bromwell then
said. His eyes were fixed on Blue and he probably suspected the Spectrum
captain was preparing a plan of action. ”We disabled all communications
systems. No distress messages were sent.
No one is even aware of what has happened to Cloudbase, so don’t expect
any outside help.”
“Before long, someone is bound to suspect something’s
happened,” Blue warned. “Cloudbase will
fail to report, as it regularly should – or to answer calls. And then they will investigate…”
“By then, it might be far too late for you or your
colleagues, Captain.”
Blue was still staring at the screen. “What
have you done with the pilot of Angel One?” he finally asked. “And with Captain Scarlet? I can’t see them anywhere.”
“Don’t worry; they’ve been taken care of.”
That sounded terribly ominous to Blue’s and Fawn’s
ears. “What have you done with
them?” Blue repeated with insistence.
There was a short pause, and Bromwell apparently considered
his answer. “As I told you, Lieutenant Burgundy blocked Angel One on deck,” he
said finally. “The systems are all
down. That means that the pilot is trapped inside, unable to do anything.”
“So she’s no threat to you.”
“She certainly is not,” Burgundy answered nonchalantly. He checked his watch. “…And especially since about half an hour
ago, now.”
Blue frowned, not quite understanding what Burgundy
meant. “What happened, a half hour
ago?” he asked, almost dreading to learn the answer.
“The oxygen in her cockpit ran out, I’m afraid…”
The carelessness with which Burgundy had made this statement
left Captain Blue and Doctor Fawn completely horrified.
“Oh God, Harmony…”
Fawn whispered, blanching.
Blue had also turned pale; but his horror was mixed with a
good dose of anger. And guilt. He couldn’t believe that he had neglected
worrying about the quiet and gentle Chinese pilot up until just a few minutes
ago. She had probably died a hideous
death, choking until she couldn’t breathe anymore, not understanding what was
happening to her, why it was
happening. Blue exchanged a glance with
Fawn and could see the shock and grief in the doctor’s features.
As for himself, he was truly repulsed.
“You murderer…” he
growled, eyes flashing, and stepped toward Burgundy.
Rochester just needed to raise his gun to stop him in his
tracks. Blue stayed where he was,
glaring furiously, first at Burgundy, then at each of the other two Mysteron
agents. “Don’t think you’ll get away
with this,” he said between his teeth.
“I didn’t think that proffering empty threats was your
style, Captain,” Bromwell remarked with cynicism. “How disappointing of you.”
“Where is Captain Scarlet?” Blue asked suddenly. There was still the matter of his friend’s
and colleague’s fate to consider. And
none of the Mysterons had told him so far what had happened to him. What they had learned just now concerning
Harmony wasn’t really that reassuring for Scarlet…
Bromwell slowly walked away from the monitor. The
bastard is taking his time, Blue reflected. He doesn’t look like he
wants to tell us…
“We had to take… special measures with Captain Scarlet,” the
Mysteron finally announced.
“Meaning exactly…?” Blue was now very suspicious.
“If you’re wondering if your friend is alive or not, I’ll
reassure you, Captain Blue: he is very
much alive.”
“I want to see him.”
“Unfortunately, Captain – that isn’t possible. You’ll have to content yourself with my word
that he is alive.”
Blue tensed, feeling more apprehensive than ever. Why
don’t they want to show us Scarlet?
What have they done to him?
Fawn grunted. “How
can we believe you?” he snapped, in answer to Bromwell’s statement, “Scarlet has been a pain in the Mysterons’
side since day one of this ‘war of nerves’ they declared against us. You’re telling us you’d pass up the chance
of getting definitely rid of him?!”
“Do you want proof of what I’m saying?” Bromwell retorted. “You have both seen him, in that fantasy world. Playing a role, like the others.” He smirked.
“…And believing every minute of it.”
“Just like everyone else,” Burgundy remarked.
"Your friend’s survival – all of your colleagues’
survival – rests in your hands, Captain Blue,” Bromwell continued. “They will die, if you do not play our
game. Your colleagues are trapped
within the fake reality that was created for them – totally unaware of who and
what they are…” He tilted his head to
the side. “… And of the danger hanging
over their heads.”
“What kind of danger?” Blue asked. “What do your Mysteron masters have in mind, this time?”
"You heard the content of their threat when you woke up
earlier, no?"
Blue frowned, trying to recall the exact words he had
heard. "Something about
'Ragnarok'…" he muttered.
"That's the end of the world, according to Viking
legends, isn't it?" Fawn asked in
concern.
Bromwell ignored his interruption. "If you want to save your friends, it will be your task to
try and stop Ragnarok from coming to the Aesgard world," he told
Blue. "If you should
fail…" He let the rest hang.
"That world will die?" Blue finished, with a
deepening frown.
"And your
colleagues will die," Bromwell continued. “I mean… not only in the
Aesgard world. But truly die.”
Fawn scoffed.
"This is just a silly 3D game," he retorted curtly. "Whatever happens in that fake world is
purely on a subconscious level. It
can't harm anyone…"
"You mean, it can't harm anyone physically? Are you so certain of that?" Fawn hesitated. Bromwell grinned maliciously, looking at the two Spectrum
officers one after the other. "Anyone who dies in this 'fake world' –
will die for real,” he repeated with self-confidence. “For any participant of this ‘silly 3D game’, Doctor – it will
truly be 'game over' – once and for all.”
"You can't be serious," growled Fawn. “And we truly are to believe you on
this?"
"So far, Doctor, I haven’t lied to you. They will
die, believe me." Bromwell
marked a dramatic pause, before adding, in a tone of ominous promise: “Even your oh-so-reliable Captain Scarlet… His relative invulnerability will be of no
help in this matter. When his subconscious
mind dies in Aesgard, he will also die
in reality. With no hope of ever returning.”
He smiled wickedly. “Or do you
prefer to believe I am bluffing? In
that case you are condemning everyone on Cloudbase.”
Fawn was about to protest loudly, when Blue put a calming
hand on his shoulder to stop him saying something he might regret. It wasn’t
really wise to anger their captors, at this point. Not when they were learning much of what was going on.
"Let's not forget this world was created by the Mysterons," Blue
reminded the physician.
Fawn marked a pause.
"Quite," he conceded, “which is an aberration in itself. Why did they create this world in the first
place, and trap everyone in it, instead of killing us all, while we are at
their mercy?" He addressed a
murderous look to Bromwell. "And
now they’re giving us a chance to get out of this trap of theirs? Why?"
"Isn't it obvious, Earthmen?"
Bromwell said ominously.
“It might be obvious to you,” Fawn rumbled. “But it’s not bloody well obvious to me!”
Bromwell sighed and rolled his eyes, like a teacher would
when facing a very stubborn pupil.
"By making all the personnel on Cloudbase believe themselves to be
part of this world, the Mysterons want, before striking the fatal blow, to
demonstrate that your much-vaunted 'advanced civilisation' has not changed much
since the beginning of your race. Deep
inside, you are still the same savage barbarians of centuries past – your life
still very much guided by your most basic instincts..."
"That is a matter of opinion," Blue growled.
"Try to deny, Captain, that you didn't feel any surprise by seeing how easily your
colleagues – even your so composed
colonel – settled into their new roles of brutal and uncivilised Viking
warriors," Bromwell said with a wicked smile. "It must have been quite a shock to you. Especially
considering your own lineage…”
"I will not deny nor admit anything," Blue
retorted. “And was my ‘lineage’ the
reason why you chose me to take up this… ‘challenge’ of yours? Because this is what we’re talking about,
isn’t it?”
“Call it what you will, Captain… This ‘challenge’ could very well be the end of all the people
living in Spectrum. You stop Ragnarok
from happening – and they’ll live. But
quite frankly, I doubt very much that you’ll be able to succeed.”
“How much time do I have to ‘stop Ragnarok’?” Blue asked
with annoyance, not willing to answer the Mysteron’s obvious gloat.
Bromwell raised a brow.
“How long do you think your friends are likely to survive in this
unconscious state, without sustenance, before their health becomes
endangered? That is – if Ragnarok doesn’t kill them
first.”
“You always like to put pressure on, don’t you?” Fawn
mumbled in an undertone.
“Assuming that I’ll accept this challenge,” Blue
continued, “What will happen if I stop
Ragnarok from happening?”
“If you were to
succeed… everybody will simply wake up from their induced sleep. Alive and well. Those who haven’t died, that is.”
“As simple as that?” a suspicious Fawn asked. “What about the gas?”
“The gas is starting to dissipate, as we speak, Doctor. Not that it is of any use right now. No one will be able to wake up before the
end of this experiment, but, if they don’t die before you succeed – if you succeed – they will wake. Not that that is a very likely outcome.”
“You’re full of
optimism, aren’t you, Bromwell?” Fawn remarked with disdain. “And we are to take your word for it, that
you will let all of these people go free if Captain Blue succeeds in his
mission?”
“You have my word.”
“Well, I don’t trust you,” Fawn snorted.
“You don’t count, Doctor.
The decision is Captain Blue’s alone.”
Bromwell looked in Blue’s direction.
Blue kept silent, glaring at the three Mysterons, weighing his
options. “So are you up to the…
‘challenge’, Captain Blue? Are you
ready to go back to Aesgard world and try to stop this new threat from the
Mysterons?”
“It’s not like you’re leaving me much choice, is it?” Blue
grumbled.
“Quite frankly, knowing your dedication to Spectrum, it
would surprise me if you refused the challenge, Captain.”
“Mmm… Am I to act
alone?” He was looking in Fawn’s
direction.
“The only other person who still remembers about the real
world and who she really is, is Rhapsody Angel. I’m sure she’ll feel duty-bound
to help you.” Bromwell shrugged
dismissively. “You can always try to convince the others… But I doubt you’ll succeed in making them
see the truth. In their present state
of mind, it would be a difficult concept to grasp… They will think you are mad.” He glanced at Fawn. “The
good doctor will not join you in this… adventure. He’ll be staying with us.
In the real world.”
“I’m to be a hostage then, to make sure Captain Blue
behaves?” Fawn demanded matter-of-factly.
“You might think that if you wish, Doctor. But I thought you’d like to monitor the
health of all your ‘patients’ – while the captain and the Angel are away
performing their… mission.”
“You’re just planning to play with me – like a cat with a
mouse,” Fawn groused. “Watching me
squirm, as I watch them all die one by one…”
“Unfortunately for you, Doctor,” Bromwell said ominously,
“that’s an eventuality that just might happen.”
“I’d like to discuss this with Doctor Fawn,” Blue suddenly
demanded, in a firm voice. “Alone.
Without any of you watching over us.”
Bromwell stared at Blue with curiosity. Then he exchanged
looks with both Burgundy and Rochester, as if asking for their opinion on the
subject. Both of the other Mysteron
agents shrugged, as if they didn’t care about the seriousness of Blue’s demand.
“I don’t see how it could cause any problems,” Bromwell
finally said. “In any case, your
mission is doomed to fail. Consider
this the last request of a condemned man.”
“Because when Ragnarok comes to Aesgard, I will die too,
like all the others, right?” Blue asked
casually. “Somehow, coming from the
Mysterons, that doesn’t surprise me.”
Bromwell simply stared at him coldly, not deigning to answer
the remark. “Take them to Doctor Fawn’s
office,” he ordered the other Mysterons, his eyes still not leaving Blue. He addressed the Spectrum agents again: “I give you five minutes, gentlemen.”
Docilely, under the threat of two guns trained on them, both Blue and Fawn let themselves be
taken to Fawn’s personal office nearby.
They were pushed inside, and the door was closed behind them. They heard the lock being pulled and could
see, though the frosted window, the shadow of the Mysteronised men as they
stood guard in front of their new prison.
Fawn immediately went to his desk and pressed the command button of his
comm.link… only to discover that it was dead.
He then turned to his computer and tried to access the communication
programs. The message ‘Access denied’
flashed on his screen.
“Damn,” he murmured.
“Still not working.”
“Still?” Blue asked, raising a curious eyebrow.
“From the moment I woke up until about half an hour before you woke up, they kept me locked in
here,” Fawn explained. “I’ve already
tried using the comm. and the computer, without any success. Those Mysterons thought of everything…”
“Did they?” Blue picked
up a sharp letter-opener lying on Fawn’s desk and showed it to the
physician. The latter grunted with bad
humour, while approaching his colleague.
“I doubt this would be much of a weapon to stop three
Mysteron agents, armed with guns,” he noted, tapping the blade with his
forefinger.
“Oh, I don’t know…
There’s a lot you can do with a blade like this one.”
Blue’s hand suddenly took hold of Fawn’s extended wrist,
imprisoning it in a strong grip. A
surprised Fawn opened his eyes wide with surprise, when he saw Blue pull the
hand towards himself, and then bring the blade to the open palm.
“What are you doing?!”
he snapped in alarm. “Blue, are
you crazy? Stop!” He struggled, but was unable to stop Blue
from stoically cutting his hand. Fawn
let out a yelp, more of surprise than pain, as blood started pouring through
the fresh wound. He pulled hard to free
himself, but Blue simply released him.
Fawn grabbed a paper tissue from the box on his desk and started to wipe
his wounded hand.
“You are out of your mind!” he snapped again, raising angry
eyes at Blue. “What did you hope to
achieve?”
“Prove that you weren’t a Mysteron,” Blue replied, shaking
his head quietly. “Admit it; it was
suspicious that they would allow me to talk to you in private… without any
surveillance. Unless you were working
for them. I had to make sure you were
on the level.”
“Oh, right! By
cutting one of my fingers off and putting my surgical career in jeopardy?”
Blue rolled his eyes. “Don’t panic, Doc… I hardly wanted to cut off one of your
fingers. It’s just a little cut.”
“A little cut that can get infected. I will have to clean that up…” Fawn examined the wound, grimacing. Blue looked at it too, a smile starting to
form on his lips. It was still
bleeding. Fawn noticed his expression.
“Well, I hope you’re satisfied,” he growled.
“I am…”
“You’re a maniac, Blue.
Beside, this little experiment of yours was useless… You know as well as I do that not all
Mysteron agents are retrometabolic.
This wound might bleed, but it doesn’t mean I’m not a Mysteron.”
“Maybe not. But your
attitude sure means it.” Blue’s smile
was faint but genuine. He pointed to
the injured hand, that Fawn was wrapping in the handkerchief. “If you had been a Mysteron, you would have
used this bleeding wound as proof, and claimed that you were not one. Instead of being your usual self and
pointing out that it wasn’t really proof… as you just did.”
Fawn glared at him.
“Somehow, somewhere in that thick skull of yours, I’m sure that argument
makes a lot of sense,” he grumbled.
Blue shook his head and handed the letter-opener to
Fawn. “Here. You were right; it isn’t much of a weapon… But keep it anyway. It might save your life, if it comes to it.”
Fawn nodded briefly, and, taking the blade, put it inside
his vest, where it would be inconspicuous.
“How do you reckon these Mysterons came onboard?” he said, quickly changing the subject, and
looking up at Blue again.
Blue shrugged. “The
explanation might be very simple.
Consider that one of them died accidentally or naturally – he could have
killed the others, to make them his accomplices.”
“Then they put their plan into motion,” Fawn said,
pensively. “Yes… that must be how it went. We did learn that it was Rochester
who killed Burgundy… That’s about all
we know on that subject.”
“We only have five minutes, Doc,” Blue reminded him. “So we’d better not lose any more time, or
someone else might die. We already lost
too many – amongst them, Harmony.” Blue
marked a silent pause, looking sombre at the thought of the deceased
Angel. Fawn put his good hand on his
broad shoulder and squeezed it with empathy.
“They won’t get away with this,” the physician
promised. “They’ll pay for her death.”
“I do intend to make them pay for all they’ve done,” growled
Blue. He shook himself. They didn’t have much time. They couldn’t allow themselves to be
distracted by their feelings, he reminded himself. There would be time later
to mourn… “What do you make of it, Doc? Do you think what Bromwell said is
true? If someone dies in Aesgard – will
he also die… in the real world?”
“You said it
yourself: this world is the work of the
Mysterons. We don’t know a thing about
many aspects of their powers.” Fawn
shook his head. “Do we dare take the risk and assume they’re
lying?”
“So they might be able to make Ragnarok happen – and then
everyone will die?”
“What does ‘Ragnarok’ mean, exactly?”
“It’s the ‘Twilight of the gods’, Edward. When Aesgard is destroyed and everyone dies,
in a final battle against the Forces of Evil. In effect – for the Vikings – it
meant the end of the World.”
Fawn became sombre. “I hate it when I’m right,” he
whispered. “And how does this
‘Ragnarok’ happen? You said – a ‘battle against the Forces of Evil?’ ”
“I’m not sure – my memories of those legends are rather
vague. It’s been a long time since I
read about them. I was only a child.
There was a catalyst, though… It has something
to do with Balder, if I’m not mistaken.”
“Balder? You mean…
Scarlet?”
Blue nodded slowly.
“Why do you think Bromwell didn’t want to show us Scarlet? Or to tell us what they actually did to
him? Don’t you find it suspicious?”
“I found it damned worrying, if you want me to tell you the
truth. I just hope he is alive – and well. Wherever he might be.”
Blue sighed. “He has
to be. For the time being. I think the Mysterons might need him –
somehow. To carry out this new threat
of theirs.”
“Blue, how can you say that?” Fawn protested. “You know
Scarlet would never…”
“I don’t mean willingly, Doc,” Blue interrupted. “I mean:
he might be the catalyst they need.”
He shook his head pensively.
“Like Balder was the catalyst for the Ragnarok…” He frowned, as if something had hit him, as
an after-thought. “… Or was it Loki?”
“Loki?”
“The evildoer of Aesgard…
Doc, you won’t believe it. In
this fantasy world – it’s Captain Black.”
Fawn stared at Blue in deep silence, with a blank expression
on his face, obviously stunned by the news; he finally reacted, by taking a
deep intake of breath.
“So he’s involved
in this too, then. We should have
known.”
“I’m positive it was Black himself,” Blue insisted. “Not some kind of… ‘creation’ of this silly
game.”
“Which would mean he’s somewhere on board Cloudbase,” Fawn
noted.
“I think the same… if he was subjected to the same treatment
as all of us.” Blue went pensive. “That would mean he’s probably unconscious
like the others… defenceless. Imagine: that would be an ideal occasion to finally
capture him.”
“Blue, your dedication is certainly admirable… but I
honestly think our priority should be to free ourselves first,” Fawn
commented. “Then we might consider what we’ll do with Captain Black. If he
is indeed here and if we can find
him.”
“I’m sure he is,” Blue retorted with conviction.
Fawn shook his head.
“We didn’t see him on any of the cameras. If he’s here, they’re hiding him.”
“Like they’re hiding Scarlet.”
“The last time I saw Scarlet, he was in the auxiliary Room
of Sleep, in sickbay,” Fawn said thoughtfully.
“Where the colonel, Ochre, Magenta, Grey and Green are at the moment.”
“Those Mysteron agents must have moved him, then,” Blue
noted.
“So you might be right in thinking either Scarlet or Black
might be the catalyst to this… Ragnarok
thing.” Fawn paused. “Or, in the case of Scarlet… could he be the
solution?”
Blue offered a faint smile.
“Like he so often is, Doc? I wish it was that simple…”
“Well, maybe it is a possibility to consider, don’t you
think? You can try to get through to
him in the fantasy world – no matter what these Mysterons say, they might have
lied. Maybe you’ll be able to get him
to see reason.”
“I can try… At least
I’ll be able to count on Rhapsody’s help as well. Together, we might be able to decipher this… insane riddle.”
“And I’ll be stuck here, a hostage, unable to do anything,”
Fawn grunted. “They’ll probably lock me
in here, like before. If I was free to
move about… I could try to find where Scarlet – and Black – are hidden.” He looked regretfully at his computer
screen. “I wonder if I would be able to
access the surveillance cameras from here?
That would make the search easier.
And also – if I’m able to gain access to Worldnet too, I would do some
research; to find out all I can on ‘Aesgard’ and ‘Ragnarok’ – and then pass the
info on to you…”
“I doubt you’d be able to do that, Doc,” Blue retorted. “The Mysterons won’t leave you without
surveillance. Or – they will restrict
all your access to the computer databanks.”
“I think these Mysterons don’t consider me a real threat,
Captain,” Fawn snorted derisively.
“They left me pretty much by myself earlier. And – I might be able to crack the security code they used to
lock the accesses. I may not be Magenta
or Green, but… I know a thing or two about computers. And I imagine that their lock won’t be as secure on the cameras
and the Worldnet as it is on communications.
Their main concern, more than anything else, would be that we don’t
contact anyone.”
Blue raised a doubtful brow. “Assuming you can do that… how would you be able to contact me,
while I’m in that fantasy world?
Frankly, I don’t…”
He stopped suddenly, interrupted by sounds behind the
door. Someone was unlocking it; their
five minutes were obviously up.
Quickly, Fawn leaned over his desk and opened the first drawer, removing
a small gleaming object from inside, that he swiftly put into his vest
pocket. Blue couldn’t see what it was
and didn’t have time to ask. The door
was now sliding open, and Burgundy and Rochester appeared in the opening, their
guns trained on them.
“It is time,” Burgundy announced icily. “You must come with us, both of you.”
Both Spectrum agents left the office, and under the threat
of the two guns, returned to the room they were previously in. Bromwell was waiting for them, standing next
to the empty bed, waiting.
“Did you change your mind then?” Fawn demanded as they both
approached. “Am I to go too?”
Bromwell smiled thinly.
“No, Doctor Fawn. I know you
never were too keen on the ‘Room of Sleep’ technology… And this… experiment
we’re pursuing, as you know, uses some of the same processes. So I’m putting your mind at rest.” He paused for a short second. “As a doctor, you will make sure your friend
is safe, while we put him under and send him back into the Aesgard world. Then you will know the Mysterons are true to
their word, contrary to what you might believe.”
“There isn’t much you can say that would make me change my
mind about the Mysterons,” retorted Fawn coldly.
Bromwell ignored the remark. He gestured toward the monitors set over Rhapsody’s bed, where
she was still sleeping; they were beeping steadily. “As you can see, the Angel pilot is still in good health. There seems to be a little nervousness, as
indicated by some of the lines, but then… considering the situation, I think it
is normal, don’t you think?”
“The kid must be thinking she’s going crazy,” Fawn said with
a scowl.
“Captain Blue…”
Bromwell motioned to the empty bed, and Blue felt the muzzle of a gun
pressing against his back. “If you
would take your place now…”
Blue didn’t really need any incentive; nor did he hesitate
further. His decision was made. He sat
down on the bed, and willingly laid himself on it, stretching his long body to
get into a comfortable position. He
only started feeling a little uneasy when he felt the restraints being put back
on him.
I feel
like I’m putting my head into the lion’s mouth, he
reflected. But what other choice do I have but to agree to go?
Following
Bromwell’s invitation, Fawn himself prepared the electrodes and expertly
applied them on Blue’s body. Their cold
touch against his bare skin made Blue quiver, but he didn’t say anything. He was mentally preparing himself for the
upcoming experiment.
While
Fawn was busying himself, under the watchful eyes of Rochester and Burgundy,
Bromwell was preparing a syringe, taking a blue liquid from a small bottle on a
nearby table. As Fawn finished placing
the last electrode on Blue’s forehead, Bromwell handed him the needle. He took note of the worried look on the
doctor’s face.
“Don’t
worry, Doctor. This will only put your
friend to sleep… and will permit him to smoothly enter the realm of Aesgard.”
“Go
ahead, Doc,” Blue said in an assured tone.
“I’m ready.”
Fawn
nodded, with still a little uncertainty, and leaned over Blue’s forearm. Blue’s eyes were looking upward, and as he felt
the puncture on his arm and felt the drug enter his bloodstream, he could see
Bromwell pushing buttons on the monitor.
Multicoloured lights from the projectors above his head started dancing.
The
injection was barely finished before Fawn’s hand took his, and Blue felt
something cold and metallic that discreetly slid around his middle finger. A ring, he realised. He wondered what it was about, but kept
silent, and Fawn encouragingly squeezed his hand, and he squeezed back, making
the gesture appear as natural as possible.
“Good
luck,” Fawn told him in a near-whisper.
“You will need it.”
Blue
briefly nodded, as he could see the projector being lowered, and he now could
only see the hypnotic lights. His mind
was already fogging.
“See
you later, Doc…” he slurred.
Then
he fell deeply asleep.
At
first, Blue had the impression that he was falling; but it was very brief, and
he suddenly felt something solid underneath his feet, as if he had literally
landed somewhere. A spell of vertigo
hit him, at the realisation that he wasn’t lying down anymore but standing,
and he swayed a little; his vision was
still a blur, and he had to steady himself against a nearby wall so he would
not fall. The wall was cold to the
touch and rough – like a stone.
His
eyes cleared and he found himself staring down into one of the stony corridors
inside the Walhall Palace, crudely lit by torches, the flames casting shadows
against the walls on which they were hanging.
He still felt a little dazed, even strangely euphoric, but otherwise, he
was fine. At least physically. He looked himself over; he was back in the
garments he’d been wearing as a Viking prince.
Strange… why have I ended up standing here instead of Hodur’s chamber? he
reflected inwardly.
And
what was he to do now, with the knowledge he had recently acquired?
Before he could even decide
on his next move, he heard animated voices, coming from behind, and footsteps
approaching. He turned on his heels and
saw, at the far end of the corridor, a group of warriors walking in his
direction. They were talking in a
lively manner, although in hushed tones.
Amongst them, Blue recognised Green – in his persona of Heimdall, the
captain of the guard – who suddenly noticed him and increased his pace. Blue went to him.
“My Lord Hodur…” Stopping in front of Blue, Green bowed
slightly to him, before looking up in concern into his blue eyes. “So you have heard the news too?”
“What
news?” Blue asked, with an inquiring
frown.
“There
has been an attack in Lord Balder’s room,” Green announced.
“An
attack?” Blue automatically tensed. The
thought that something might have
happened with Rhapsody quickly went through his mind. “Who…? The Lady Nanna…?”
“Nay.
The guards who arrived there first
found the Lady Nanna and the servant maid Gerda in the room – with Lord
Balder injured. They thought at first
the Valkyrie was responsible, as she
was holding a dagger – and Gerda accused her.
But ’twould seem that it was the servant maid herself that attacked your
brother – and Lady Nanna as well.”
“Balder
was injured? Is he all right?” Blue asked in concern.
“He is, of course, and like
his usual self, he asked to be left alone.”
Green grunted, not noticing the questioning look on Blue’s
features. “The servant girl has been
apprehended, and taken to the dungeon,”
he continued with obvious disgust in his tone.
“Lord Balder wants her to be interrogated tomorrow. He seems to think that this idea to assault
him and the Lady Nanna was not her own.”
“She might have been pushed
to do this?” a perplexed Blue said pensively.
“That is what Lord Balder
seems to think. But it was probably a
fit of jealously on her part, my Lord.
You know she was a favourite of your brother… She might not have taken kindly to being replaced by the Valkyrie.”
“Maybe…” Blue murmured. “And maybe not. In the
meantime, see that she is not harmed.”
Green tilted his head to the
side with perplexity. “Aye, my prince.
It will be done. The servant maid has
to be able to answer the interrogation tomorrow. She has a lot to answer for.”
Blue
didn’t comment. He just didn’t want for
any harm to come to ‘Gerda’ – and not only for the reasons ‘Heimdall’ seemed to
imply. Then he would have to see what
this new development was all about. If
indeed she had been pushed to attack Scarlet, then he would have to discover by
whom…
He
had a good idea of his suspect, though.
“Is
Balder still in his room?” he asked of Green.
“Aye
– alone, aside from the Lady Nanna who stayed with him.” Green sighed deeply, shaking his head. “Your
brother takes his gift far too much for granted, my prince. He might come to regret it, one day…”
“Yes…
he might,” Blue agreed with a nod, his earlier suspicions about ‘Balder’ slowly
turning into certainty in view of what Green was now telling him. “I shall go see if he’s all right then.”
“You
know he will be, my Lord.” Green
thumped Blue’s shoulder in a friendly manner.
“But I am sure he will appreciate your visit.”
After
a brief smile acknowledging Green’s comment, Blue left, walking with long
strides in the direction of Balder’s chamber.
*
* *
Seated on the side of the
bed, watching over the unconscious warrior prince lying on top of it, and
wiping away the beads of sweat forming on his pale brow, Rhapsody Angel
couldn’t help the uncertainty and worry growing inside her, and she was
pondering on what was happening around her.
She wasn’t even sure of the identity of that man lying there, wounded,
looking so much like the man she loved.
He had called to her with Paul’s voice, said her name, and appealed for
her help… Still, he had been acting so
uncharacteristically unlike himself up until the moment he had fallen onto the
bed, that she had trouble even conceiving it could be him.
She had no logical
explanation for what was going on – aside from thinking she might be going
thoroughly mad.
Rhapsody suddenly tensed when
she heard a faint knock at the door.
She was on her feet instantly, her hand reaching for the first weapon
she could find at her disposal – the dagger from Balder’s belt, which he had
left on a table nearby. She cautiously
approached the door.
“Who
is it?”
“Don’t
worry, Rhapsody. It’s me, Blue.”
She
blew a sigh of relief. Blue, he had said. Not ‘Hodur’, as the
others were calling him. He was still,
apparently, the man she knew him to be.
And apparently, he also knew her for who she truly was.
She
hurriedly pulled back the bolt and let the newcomer in, closing the door as
soon as he cleared it. She locked it again, watching Blue as he turned to
her. He was still dressed in the
ancient, fur-like clothing, like all the others were, but his face and hair
were as they were supposed to be. He
gave her a concerned look, and took her by the shoulders, reassuringly.
“Are
you okay?”
“I’m
fine, thanks,” she said, presenting a brave façade.
“How
about him?” Blue continued, walking toward the bed, to look down at
Scarlet. “How is he?”
“Unconscious. Or sleeping, I couldn’t tell,” Rhapsody
answered, following close behind Blue.
“He’s been – we’ve been attacked.
And he was stabbed – ”
“I
know. I heard. Green told me.”
“Green?”
“Heimdall,
actually,” Blue corrected. “He’s the
captain of the palace guard…”
“Adam…
I don’t understand what…”
“Has he been like this for
long?” Blue interrupted. He knelt
beside the sleeping Scarlet and took his hand, checking his pulse. It was beating steadily, if a little too
fast.
“Two
– three hours, I think,” Rhapsody answered.
She watched him, as Blue gently examined the wound on the Viking’s
torso. Blue grunted and nodded with some satisfaction. To Rhapsody’s eyes, he didn’t seem very
surprised to find what he did. And what she already knew.
“He’s
healing,” she said, stating the obvious.
“So
I see,” Blue agreed.
“Like
Paul would,” Rhapsody added, insistently.
“Yes.”
Blue’s
answer was punctuated with a brief nod.
Rhapsody stared at him with perplexity.
“Aren’t you in the least bit surprised?” she asked, almost suspicious.
“No… to tell you the truth, I am not really
surprised,” Blue admitted. “I already
suspected it would be the case, after what I’ve heard so far… and what I knew
of ‘Balder’. The one of legend, I mean.”
Rhapsody
sighed again and approached, leaning down to his level.
“Adam,
what’s going on?” she asked with
urgency, for the second time freely using Blue’s first name. “This strange place… These clothes… All these people who look like members of Spectrum but don’t act like them… This ‘Balder’… At first,
I thought he wasn’t Paul, but…”
“You
saw he shares the same regenerative powers,” Blue remarked. “The dagger wound is almost closed…”
“Yes,
I saw that,” Rhapsody admitted. “And
then something else… Adam… He is Paul, isn’t he?”
Blue
nodded carefully. “Yes,” he murmured. “Yes, he is.”
“I thought as much.
He called my name earlier…”
“He
what?”
“I
thought it was delirium – when he was struggling against the fever from his
wound. He called for help… using my name.
He called me Dianne. His voice
was Paul’s… so I knew then he was Paul.
My Paul. Not that… barbarous Viking prince. So I imagine it means that all the others are the people we know
too…”
“So
subconsciously he remembers?” Blue reflected.
“So the Mysterons were wrong, then?”
“The Mysterons?” Rhapsody almost shrieked, turning pale all
of a sudden.
“It
might be because of his unique metabolism,” Blue continued, barely hearing her.
“This is almost un-hoped for. Did he
say anything else?”
“Yes… He was trapped, he couldn’t move… He said something about ‘Ragnarok’…”
“Ragnarok?” Blue repeated with obvious surprise. “He mentioned Ragnarok?”
“He said we had to stop it… Adam, what does it mean –”
“He
knows about Ragnarok,” Blue pondered, stroking his chin. “I wonder –”
“Adam,
would you please tell me what’s going
on?” Rhapsody demanded jerkily. “What happened to Spectrum? To Paul, the colonel, the Angels and…”
“All
of Cloudbase,” Blue corrected suddenly.
“Excuse
me?”
“Dianne – all of Cloudbase
has been affected. Except, apparently, you and me. It’s the work of the Mysterons…”
Rhapsody
grew tense, when Blue turned to her; her face became hard, realising he knew
something he wasn’t telling her yet.
“Captain Blue,” she said, a note of warning in her voice, “if you happen
to have any idea of what’s going on, you’d better say it right away or – ”
“Please,
Dianne.” Sensing she was about to lose
her cool, Blue took her hands, wanting to calm her down. It did the trick, and
he could see in her eyes that she was relaxing – if only a little. “Yes, I know what’s going on,” he
confirmed. “I just found out. From the
mouth of the one who is behind this…”
“Captain Black?”
she offered tentatively. She shook her
head, grunting. “Or ‘Loki’ – as he is
called here, I believe…”
“No… It wasn’t Captain Black – either the real
one or under his persona of Loki, in this world.” Blue sighed. “I’ve been
to Cloudbase. I’ve talked with Technician Bromwell…”
“The
man in charge of the Room of Sleep electronic maintenance?” Rhapsody said with perplexity. “But…”
“He’s
a Mysteron agent now. He’s behind all
this. He’s the one who did this to us.”
“Wait
a minute, Adam…” Rhapsody shook her
head in confusion. “You’ve been to
Cloudbase… But you just said that Cloudbase –”
“I
know what I said.” Giving Scarlet a
last probing look, Blue got up, compelling Rhapsody to do the same. He looked deep into her concerned eyes. “Now I’ll explain it all to you,” he said,
trying to keep his voice as calm as he could.
“I might not have the time to explain all the details before Scarlet
wakes up – although he looks as if he’ll be out for a good amount of time
yet. I don’t know all of it, in any
case, so I want you to listen carefully…
The fate of everyone onboard Cloudbase may depend on our actions – yours
and mine…” He gave a deep sigh. “You’ll have trouble believing all this, I
assure you…”
*
* *
“I
can’t believe any of this.”
It took Blue almost an hour
to tell Rhapsody about his meeting with Bromwell on Cloudbase and what he knew
of their present situation. The young
woman had shown her incredulity – almost thinking her companion was going
mad. Yet, she couldn’t think of any
better explanation for what was going on.
Her mind almost refusing to
absorb and accept the truth, she had a need to sit down at the end of the bed –
and had done so heavily, like someone who was so terribly tired; which she was
in any case. When Blue had finished his
tale completely, he found the Angel holding her head pensively, trying to take
it in. He gave her a few minutes, while
walking around the room. He checked on
Scarlet again, still lying on the bed.
He was apparently sleeping very soundly now, his breathing deep and
regular, the colour back in his face.
The wounds had disappeared completely by now, leaving only unblemished
flesh, stained with dried blood.
Satisfied that Scarlet would be okay, Blue went to stand next to the
window. The wind coming down from the
valley was cool and refreshing.
“I need a very stiff
drink.” The voice behind made him
turn. Rhapsody had let out a deep sigh,
and was rubbing her brow. “But I guess
getting completely drunk would not improve anything, would it?”
He offered a bashful, very
thin smile. “It would certainly be
comforting,” he admitted good-naturedly. “If nothing else… I’d advise against the ale, though. It’s positively awful.”
“The smell certainly
is.” Rhapsody looked around in
wonder. “So all of this – it’s only an
illusion? How can this be possible?”
“I don’t know if it’s an
illusion, in the sense we give to the
word,” Blue muttered. “Or a dream. Or a subconscious world. Or another plane of existence - it’s real,
as real as the Mysterons were able to make it.” He breathed deeply. “Even
the air that we breathe. So pure. So vivid. Even these walls,” he said,
slapping his hand on the stony surface of the window frame and turning to walk
towards Rhapsody. “This furniture, these clothes we’re wearing… Even the meals – and the drinks…” he added
with a new smile. He nodded towards
Scarlet. “- And those thoughts they
forced into the minds of our friends.
They really believe who they
are to be real.” He looked grimly at
Rhapsody. “And that ‘reality’ could be
as deadly as the one we know. We could
all die here if we don’t do something about it.”
“I’m still not sure I can
accept this, Adam,” Rhapsody replied.
“You have to believe it,
Dianne.” He knelt in front of her. “You know as well as I do that the Mysterons
have powers we can’t begin to understand.
Surely, if it is possible to trap a whole group in a fantasy world like
this one, then they can do it.” He lowered his voice. “And we have no other choice but to play
along with their sick game. And we have
to do this together, if we are to
succeed.”
“I know, Adam. But it still
seems so unbelievable…” Rhapsody’s hesitation only lasted one more second. She breathed out deeply. “But you know you can count on me to do my
very best.”
“I never doubted it for a
second,” he said with a faint smile.
“So – all we have to do to
beat the Mysterons this time and come back to our own reality is to stop this ‘Ragnarok’
thing?” she asked.
Blue gave an approving
nod. “The ‘Twilight of the Gods’,
according to the Vikings.
Armageddon. The end of all
things.” He stood up and gestured
toward the sleeping ‘Balder’. “The end
of their world, where all of them are
going to die.”
“And if their fantasy
identities die in this world, their real bodies will die on Cloudbase,”
Rhapsody said, remembering Blue’s earlier explanation.
“Even Paul,” Blue agreed. “If his subconscious dies I suppose even his
indestructible body would have to follow, wouldn’t it?”
“Or so the Mysterons would
hope,” Rhapsody reflected.
“I don’t think Bromwell was
bluffing, Rhapsody. Or, at the very
least, I don’t want to assume he was.”
“That’s understandable,”
Rhapsody agreed. “I don’t want to either,
it would be far too risky. Explain
something to me though: if ‘Balder’ is
as indestructible as Paul is – how could he be a victim of the Ragnarok too?”
Blue nodded, walking around
pensively. “All this is based on Norse
mythology,” he said, rubbing his chin.
“Balder, Odin, Aesgard, the Valkyries…
Ragnarok. This is all part of an
enormous farce mounted by the Mysterons…
They’ve created this world for the sole purpose of this threat…”
“I know a little of Viking
legends from my classical studies,” Rhapsody remarked. “But I admit I can’t
really call them to mind at the moment – and this is getting a little too
complicated. This is not accurate, is it?”
“You might have noticed, this world is more or less like an
‘Earthly version’ of Aesgard,” Blue answered. “My grandfather told me a few of those sagas, when I was very
young. And I read about them
afterwards, so I did recognise the settings – and the ‘characters’ of this
play. Although I don’t remember that
the Valkyries had ever been enemies of Odin…
The war between Vanir and Aesir is also part of more obscure myths… So I don’t know that subject very well…”
“You seem to know a little
bit more than I do, though,” Rhapsody retorted with a faint smile.
Blue sighed, and came to sit
right next to her, on the side of the bed.
“Yeah, now I remember. But when I woke up earlier, it was all
pretty confused… My mind wasn’t working
properly. Probably because I was
concussed during our… forced landing on Cloudbase. But everything is clearer now, thankfully. So I’ll be able to follow our situation more
easily – and relate it to what happened in the sagas of the Norse gods.”
“Speaking of which… none of them seem to be ‘gods’,” Rhapsody
remarked.
“They’re all obviously normal
humans – except for Balder’s exceptional powers of recovery.”
“Which were part of the
legend too, weren’t they?” Rhapsody noted.
“Yes, you’re right. For some reason, Balder was supposed to be
invulnerable,” Blue agreed. “He was the
only one of the Aesgard gods with that condition…”
Rhapsody nodded her
understanding. “…Which would be why
Paul found himself in that role.”
“Yes, he would be the obvious
choice, wouldn’t he?” Blue scratched his head.
“And I’m afraid there’s more. I
think that Balder’s relative invulnerability plays an important part in the
myth of Ragnarok itself…”
“In what way?” Rhapsody
asked.
Blue grunted his
frustration. “I’m not sure you’ll like
to hear it… But according to the Norse
legends, it might very well be Balder’s death that will bring about Ragnarok.”
Rhapsody stared blankly at him.
“But if he’s invulnerable…”
“Practically invulnerable,” Blue interrupted her. “That’s my answer to your earlier question,
Rhapsody: there is something – one
weakness that can kill him.”
“It’s certainly not electricity,”
Rhapsody remarked with dry humour.
Blue shook his head. “No – it’s yew – or mistletoe, depending on
the versions of the story. Balder was
killed with a weapon carved from it – quite accidentally, as it turned out. During a very silly game created by the gods
– who were throwing all kind of objects at him, just to test his
invulnerability.” He rubbed his chin,
thoughtfully, while Rhapsody turned a
concerned look on the still-sleeping Scarlet.
“From then on, the Aesir gods realised their mortality… If the most invincible amongst them had been
killed by something as simple and insignificant as mistletoe, then what chance
did they have against Death? The forces of evil – led by the Ice Giants –
also realised then that the Aesir were vulnerable… and started making plans to
attack and destroy them.”
“…And then came Ragnarok,”
Rhapsody realised.
“Yeah, in a nutshell, that’s
what happened.”
“Do you reckon it might also happen in this version?” Rhapsody
asked in a worried tone.
Blue shook his head. “I would think unlikely that these very mortal Aesir would be silly enough to take
the risk of playing that stupid game with Balder…”
“I don’t know,” Rhapsody
retorted doubtfully. “You have seen how
they behave, haven’t you? They do seem a little… reckless, at times.”
“They do indeed,” Blue
agreed, pensively. “But I don’t think I am.”
Rhapsody raised a brow. “What do you mean exactly?”
Blue hesitated a second. “According to legend,” he said finally,
looking directly at Rhapsody, “the one who accidentally killed Balder with that
fatal blow… was his own brother, Hodur.”
Rhapsody kept silent, letting
the information sink in. Blue was
observing her reaction; it was one of complete and unreserved denial. “Surely, the Mysterons don’t really expect that you would actually do that!”
“I don’t know what they
expect,” Blue muttered darkly. “I do
suspect that they sent me here with an ulterior motive – and that this motive…
could very well be that they’re counting on me
to recreate the events of the Norse legends, leading to the coming of
Ragnarok.”
“Well, I believe they are
deeply mistaken!” Rhapsody scoffed
loudly.
“Well, I would say the same,”
Blue answered with a thin smile. “I
would not play that part of their game willingly, of that you can be sure. In fact, I will do everything in my power to
avoid being put in the situation where they would expect me to actually kill
Paul – or rather ‘Balder’. But I will
have to be wary of Loki.”
“Captain Black,” Rhapsody
uttered, with a brief nod. “Yes,
well… This seems to be a very sensible precaution.”
“Especially when you know
that, according to legends, Hodur was tricked by Loki into killing Balder,”
Blue specified.
“Oh.” Rhapsody reflected upon that new
revelation. “Even without taking that
into consideration, I wouldn’t turn my back on him at any time,” she remarked
coldly. “And I suspect that he might
already have started causing trouble in order to bring Ragnarok forward.”
“Meaning?”
“The ‘servant girl’ Gerda,
who attacked us?”
“Anna Preston,” Blue informed
her.
“Yes, well… I thought I
recognised her…” Rhapsody muttered in a
bleak tone, thinking back to what the woman had been to ‘Balder’ in this
fantasy world. She shook herself. Now was not the time to let herself be
distracted by embittered thoughts. She
nodded in Scarlet’s direction. “Anyway…
he seemed to think that someone put
her up to it.”
“Loki?” Blue asked, raising a
brow.
“Well, he didn’t name him in
that particular instance – but he did mention
his name when he clashed with the woman earlier – and chased her away. I heard it all through the door.”
“Mmm…” Blue shook his head, pensively scrutinising
the young woman. “This can’t be a very
agreeable experience for you, can it, Dianne?”
“Because he’s acting like a
boor?” Rhapsody said. “Well, I do realise
now that he’s not really behaving like himself – nor is anybody else, for that
matter.” She paused a few seconds. “But it is still a very unpleasant
situation, I have to admit.”
“I thought as much,” Blue
said, gently stroking her cheek. “You
are acting very bravely, Rhapsody Angel.
We’ll get through this. And
every last one of them will come back to his normal self, you’ll see.”
Rhapsody acknowledged the
encouraging words with a nod, before giving another scrutinising look towards
Scarlet, over her shoulder. “Maybe he can help us?” she suggested.
Blue hesitated. “Bromwell told me that none of them would
remember the real world as it is,” he noted.
“And try as I might, none of them would believe me if I attempted to explain
the truth. Yet,” he added in a more buoyant tone, ”you told me that after being
injured, Paul called your name… that he seemed to be himself during his
delirium…”
“Just before passing out,
yes,” Rhapsody confirmed. “He also seemed to be aware of his
situation… He said he was trapped…”
“And that he couldn’t move,”
Blue said, repeating what Rhapsody had already told him.
“Is it possible that he might
be impervious to – whatever the
Mysterons’ve done to the others?” Rhapsody asked in a hopeful tone. “Or more specifically, that he’s coming out
of it?”
They heard a groan coming
from the object of their mutual attention;
turning fully around, they saw Scarlet move. They exchanged an expectant glance, before getting to their feet
and coming to stand beside the waking man.
“Maybe we’re about to find
out,” Blue said wishfully.
They stood over Scarlet for a
moment, watching as he slowly recovered his senses. He drew a deep breath, then opened his eyes, looking around with
some confusion. Then he looked up to
the two people he could see hovering above him. He frowned deeply.
“What are you doing here,
brother?”
Blue just had the time to
repress a frustrated sigh. Scarlet
still had the same lilting, deep-throated accent he had shared with all the
others since their conversion into ‘Viking warriors’ - he didn’t have that English-accented voice
that Blue knew so very well.
He was still ‘Balder’.
“I heard what happened to
you,” Blue answered, in a noncommittal tone.
“Are you all right?”
“You should know the answer,”
Scarlet replied, trying to push himself into a seated position. “As always, the same.” Blue gave him a hand,
and pulled him up. Scarlet grimaced and reached for his belly.
“Still a little stiff, I
see,” Blue commented.
“Please, Hodur, you can save
the brotherly concern,” Scarlet grumbled.
“You know it will be completely healed before long.” He looked down at the stained and torn shirt
with disgust. “Still, another ruined
tunic,” he muttered.
That made Blue smile despite
himself. Now that was a typical Paul reaction.
“Since you look on your way
to recovery, I’d better leave, then.”
“Aye. Do that,” Scarlet replied, raising a hand in
dismissal. “Do you not have a wife
waiting for you in your chamber? You have been waiting months to be reunited
with her… You should not waste your time with me, and go to her instead.”
Blue nodded slowly, looking
on as Scarlet supported himself on one
elbow, rubbing his injured belly with his free hand. So, it appeared that ‘Balder’ knew about this previous union
between Hodur and Iduna. Not that Blue
was that surprised – he had suspected
that he would know as much, from the hints he had already dropped earlier…
Blue turned around, motioning
to Rhapsody to follow him to the door.
She unlocked and opened it, and he went out, stopping just after the
doorway to address her. “I think you’d
better stay with him,” he whispered.
“Keep your eye on him – he doesn’t
seem quite all right…”
“No, he doesn’t,” Rhapsody
agreed with a brief nod. She offered a
faint smile. “I think I’ll be able to
fight off his advances too.” He smiled
back in answer, before her face took on a more serious expression. “And I’ll try to learn more about… him… and
this Ragnarok that we should stop.”
“Any information we might
find would be useful,” Blue agreed.
“I’ll find out what I can from Karen…. Excuse me, Iduna.” He sighed. “That’ll take some getting used to. We’ll meet again later.”
“Tomorrow, more than
likely,” Rhapsody observed.
“Right. Tomorrow.
If you ever need any kind of help…
Call for me.”
She shook her head. “It is quite late at night now – I don’t
expect there will be any more ‘action’ tonight.”
“Wishful thinking,” Blue
muttered. “I can do with a little
rest. Tomorrow then.” He nodded his goodbyes, and Rhapsody nodded
back in answer, before closing the door, and
taking good care to lock it.
Despite what she had just said to Blue, she didn’t want to run the risk
of another attempted attack that night.
Behind him, she heard Scarlet stir.
“You do not have to do what
he asked of you.”
She turned on her heels. Scarlet had changed his position to a more
comfortable one, and with a brusque gesture, was tearing the soiled shirt
before pulling it over his head and throwing it onto the floor. He then grimaced, holding his aching belly. He tiredly waved towards the door. “My brother, Hodur… He told you to stay here, did he not? To make sure that I will be all right…” She slowly walked back to the bed, curiosity
plain on her face, as he continued, quietly:
“But you do not have to stay if you do not want to. Know that I am
already grateful that you did defend me when I was down… and that you watched
over me while I was unconscious. You
are free to go if you choose to. We
can… talk about us later.”
“I don’t want to leave, Lord
Balder,” Rhapsody answered evenly.
“I’ll be staying, if you don’t mind.”
He raised an inquiring
brow. “And why should I mind?”
She watched as he raised his
hand for the mug of water on the low table nearby, but found himself unable to
reach it. She handed it to him. He gave a grateful nod, and drank greedily.
“He’s not really your brother, is he?” Rhapsody
asked curiously.
“So now you are interested in me,” Scarlet noted in a mocking tone. “While a few hours ago you wanted nothing to
do with me…”
“Don’t confuse curiosity
with… ‘interest’, Lord Balder,” Rhapsody replied, raising a brow. “It’s not the same thing.”
“Aye. Just curiosity it is, then, Lady
Nanna.” He nodded toward the closed
door. “You have guessed well. But then again, you must have noticed that
there is little resemblance between us, nay?
We are not real brothers. We are
blood brothers – Hodur, Thor and me. We
have been chosen by Lord Odin as his heirs – we are the champion princes of
Aesgard. But surely, you must already know that?”
“Doesn’t that cause any kind
of conflict between you?”
“Conflict?” Scarlet repeated,
frowning. “Nay… We are as close as brothers can be –
although sometimes we fight, and argue, and we might feel like we would want to
kill each other – we would give our life
for the others. When the time does come
– and may Hymir grant that it will be a long time from now – after Odin’s
passing, the three of us will share the duties of the Throne of Aesgard.”
“How do you know Lord Hodur
asked me to make sure you’ll be all right?” Rhapsody asked, watching him
closely as he drank the rest of the water to the last drop.
Scarlet put down the
beaker. “I know how he is – he is
constantly watching out for me…
Although it is not always necessary… for obvious reasons.” He scoffed loudly, but there was a fondness
in his words that didn’t escape Rhapsody. She knelt next to the recuperating
warrior. He frowned at her. “Why are you still here?” he muttered. “Are you not afraid of me anymore?”
“I never was afraid of you,”
Rhapsody defended herself. “And as I
said, Lord Balder, I am curious…” She
looked down at his bare chest. There
was no sign of injury on his flesh. “I
heard about your… healing capacities.”
“You have never witnessed
anything like this before, is that it?”
That would be a far stretch of the truth, Rhapsody mused inwardly, thinking back to the
frequent times when she had actually observed Paul’s retrometabolism. Even when he was shaving in the morning, and
nicked himself, it was always astounding to see the cut disappear in mere
seconds.
This Paul would certainly need a shave, she added to herself.
“How did this happen to you?”
He grunted. “Do you not know the tale?”
She shook her head. “No.
The… stories I heard about that aren’t clear.”
Scarlet sighed, rising to his
feet. “It was… a gift from the Ice
Giants.” There was derision in his tone when he said that, Rhapsody
noticed. He gave a sigh and added, more
evenly: “That much I know. I wish I could tell you more about it…” He went to the table, picked up the jug of
ale, and drank from it heartily, before putting it down loudly. “That is better,” he gasped. “I was
thirsty…” He looked over to Rhapsody,
who was watching him with attention, waiting for the rest of his story. He wiped his mouth with the back of his
hand. “One day, I went hunting in the mountains with Loki, and… we encountered
the Ice Giants.” He frowned. “I cannot
recall most of what happened,” he admitted, taking a few steps towards
Rhapsody, the jug in his hand. “I do
remember losing track of Loki, and I went searching for him. Then a huge blizzard surrounded me,
apparently coming from nowhere. Surely
the work of the Ice Giants… You know
they do evil magic, and use it to torment us ‘poor mortals’.” His tone was again bitter, but it was very
brief, before it returned to normal, and he continued. “I was struggling against the wind and snow,
trying to find my way back to Aesgard.
But I was lost. And then I
fell… a great distance… into a ravine,
maybe, I could not say. That is the last
thing I remember. I must have had a
bad fall, because from then, it’s a total blank. When I came to, the blizzard was finished. I was lying on my back, in pain and unable
to move, and Hodur was leaning over me.
He took me back to Aesgard and then we discovered… this new ability of
mine.” He grunted. “My back was broken. I should have died of my many wounds… but I
did not. And I recovered. Completely.
And ever since that day – I have been able to recover from any wound
that befalls me.”
“And you say it was because
of the Ice Giants that you now have that gift?” Rhapsody said in puzzlement.
“But… you didn’t really see them?”
Scarlet laughed. “Lady Nanna, no-one can claim he has ever
seen the Ice Giants – and if I ever did
see them, I cannot recall any of it.
They have caused my memory to fail me, obviously.” He paused a second, looking at her, and
seeing the doubt on her features. “Who
else could perform such a miracle?” he questioned, as if it was an obvious
observation. “Loki and I were on their
land. We must have encountered
them. A raging blizzard, suddenly
rising from nowhere, is the sign that they are walking the Earth; you should
know that, Lady Nanna. And we were
right in the middle of that terrible storm.
We must have crossed their direct path.”
Rhapsody nodded slowly, not
committing herself with a spoken answer.
“So you say you encountered the Ice Giants…” she said pensively.
“Aye. Loki and I,” Scarlet answered, standing only
a few feet from her. “We may be the
only humans alive to have done so and live to talk about it. Although we can hardly say we are actually
talking about it,” he added in an undertone. “So all there is to know about the
Ice Giants still remains a mystery.”
So similar to what happened in real life, Rhapsody mused.
Those Ice Giants – they might be
the representation of the Mysterons in this fantasy world. Ever-present in these people’s lives,
threatening – and yet of an unknown nature…
And the way they interacted with Balder’s life, ‘giving’ him these
healing capacities… He didn’t remember
anything of his encounter with them.
Much like Captain Scarlet with the Mysterons. She wondered about the
fact that they might have forced his body – and mind – to do something he might
not be aware of, like the Mysterons had done with Paul. Perhaps
Hodur would know. But as Blue was his old self, and not really Hodur, there was little chance he
would actually know what it was that Hodur experienced when he found Balder
after his encounter with the Ice Giants.
And then there was Loki, who
had the face of Conrad Turner – Captain Black – in this fantasy
world. He must know what had happened, even if ‘Balder’ didn’t have a
clue. But something in what Scarlet had
just said made Rhapsody wonder if ‘Loki’ would indeed say anything on the
subject.
“You mean Loki doesn’t talk
about this experience you both had?”
Scarlet shrugged. “He claims that, like me, he does not
remember anything about it.”
“ ‘Claims’… you don’t believe
him.”
“A word of advice, Lady Nanna
– if you are wise and cautious, you will
not always believe what Loki says. Or rather: you will never believe
what he tells you. Odin keeps him
around for reasons of his own – but we have learned, to our cost, that Loki is
not to be trusted.”
Rhapsody narrowed her eyes,
pensively. Here again was a similarity
with the real world – just like those Adam had already told her about
earlier. But this one had a twist,
however: while Conrad Turner had been a
trusted man in the past – before becoming the unwilling agent of the Mysterons
in recent years – it appeared that it wasn't quite that way with Loki. Although he still lived amongst the Aesir,
they had always regarded him with suspicion and mistrust, and it was highly possible
that, just like the Loki of the Norse legends, he was plotting their downfall,
a pawn of the Ice Giants, just as Black was for the Mysterons.
Or perhaps he was their
accomplice…
“So since that fateful day,
you can survive anything,” Rhapsody pondered, addressing Scarlet.
“So far I have,” Scarlet
replied thoughtfully. “Though why the
Ice Giants would give me that wonderful gift is a mystery. That surely was not what they intended. According to Lord Odin – it could only be an
accident.”
“An accident, right,”
Rhapsody mused, watching as he took another gulp from the jug. When he
finished, he looked curiously at her.
“You mean to say, Lady Nanna,
that you REALLY never heard this story before this night?”
“No, Lord Balder, I didn’t know about it.” Not THIS version, anyway, she added inwardly.
“How odd. I would have thought it would have travelled
to the land of Vanaheim. Do you Vanir not know the enemies you meet on the
field of battle?”
Rhapsody simply shrugged, and
raised a brow, watching as he emptied the last of the ale, and then wiped his
mouth again, grunting with obvious satisfaction. Not really as sophisticated as Paul…
She wondered if he had gained the same resistance to alcohol as Paul
had. It certainly looked as if that
horrible drink he had swallowed was not having any effect on him right now…
“Your thirst too seems to
have benefited from your encounter with the Ice Giants,” she remarked,
narrowing her eyes.
He laughed with good
humour. “Even Thor whose drinking
capacity is renowned all over Aesgard cannot now defeat me,” he declared with
no concealed pride. “As for my
appetite…”
“I bet,” Rhapsody said in an
aloof tone. “Your appetite for women too, I reckon…”
Scarlet looked closely at
her. “Do I detect jealousy in the Lady
Nanna’s fierce words?” he asked
mockingly.
“The Lady Nanna isn’t keen on
men who have the habit of forcing themselves upon women,” Rhapsody replied in
an even colder tone.
He scoffed derisively and
shrugged. “Why would Balder do that
when he can have all the women he wants in Aesgard? I just have to choose amongst those waiting in line in front of
my door, each hoping that she will be the lucky one.”
She took a sharp intake of
breath. Now that was a remark she would
never had expected from Paul; but coming from Balder – well she had to admit
she wasn't really that surprised. “I
am not of Aesgard, Lord Balder,” she
remarked dryly enough.
“Nay. You are a fierce Valkyrie of the
Vanir…"
No, I'm not, she answered inwardly. But she kept herself from saying it out loud.
"… But the agreement, my
lady…"
“…Was not of my doing,”
Rhapsody cut abruptly. “I didn’t agree to be your…” She searched for the
right word to describe what he was thinking her to be, but found it a little
too harsh for her liking. “…
betrothed,” she finally said, instead choosing the expression himself had used
earlier. “Neither Odin nor Freyja
consulted with me when they came to this agreement.”
She kept on her guard when he
approached more closely. He seemed to
notice her edginess and carefully sat down at the foot of the bed, at some distance,
looking at her.
“Vanaheim was vanquished,
Lady Nanna,” he replied. “It is the
spoil of the victor to choose the better part of the accord…” He gave an understanding nod. “As I said earlier, you were ordered by the duty tying you to your ruler. ’Tis the same for me, fair lady.” He reached
to delicately stroke her forearm with the tips of his fingers, but this simple
light touch was enough to make her shiver.
Or was it what he had just
said?
“Indeed, the ‘spoil of the
victor’ as you said, Lord Balder,” Rhapsody answered, shooting to her
feet, and standing in front of him.
“And you so… ‘enthusiastically’ leapt into this duty of yours... And that would
make it right in your eyes? One would
think that the noble Balder would not stoop so low as to…” She was interrupted
by his loud laughing and stared down at him with a murderous look. “What are you laughing at?” she asked
furiously.
“You, Lady Nanna,” he
answered, repressing his laugh. “Or
rather, I am laughing at what you just said.
’Tis quite amusing. ‘The noble Balder’? Where did you hear that from?
Does it come from my brother Hodur, while he was trying to plead my
cause to you, as I imagine he tried when he brought you back to Aesgard?” He chuckled, seeing her discomfited, yet
still angry, face. “I have been called
many things, my lady, but I do not
recall ever having been called ‘noble’.”
Rhapsody lowered her eyes, a
little embarrassed. “Please, stop
calling me that.”
“Why ever not? You are what
you are, Lady Nanna.” Taking advantage of
the fact that she had lowered her defences, he grabbed her by the hand and
pulled her down to him. Taken by
surprise, she nearly lost her footing, but he caught her in his arms. “Does it make you feel uncomfortable? If so,
then I will call you ‘my lady’ for the rest of my life, fair Nanna, if you
would but let me…” He smirked at his
own joke. “… If that would give me some
advantage over you.”
Rhapsody was keeping him at a distance, as he looked
into her face; almost despite her best judgment, she lost herself in those blue eyes gazing deep into her. She was
fighting hard not to quiver, as she felt herself softening. “The only thing that’s making me
uncomfortable,” she said, trying to render her tone as firm as she could, “is
the way you are now holding me.”
He raised an amused
brow. “Is that so? Then maybe I should always keep you like
that… my lady.”
She could feel the strength
in his arms, as if they wouldn’t let her go.
But strangely, she also had the impression that it would now take only
one word from her for them to open up and free her – despite what he had just
said.
How easy it would be to just
let go and abandon herself to his embrace. It was Paul, after all, even though
he didn’t remember.
Maybe if she could make him remember…
“Lord Balder,” Rhapsody said
tentatively, “do you recall… anything that you said to me earlier? After you had been injured and you lay in
your bed?"
"If I told you you were
the most beautiful woman on Earth, then I meant every word of it," he answered, leaning to kiss her neck.
She had to fight hard not to
giggle, and pushed him back, keeping him at bay again. She didn't try to escape
from his arms, though. "Can't you
be serious for one minute?" she asked with a falsely irritated frown.
"But I am serious, my
lady," he replied with a twinkle in his eyes and a mocking smirk on his
lips.
Rhapsody nearly rolled her
eyes. Now he’s sweet-talking me… Just
like Paul would, only he would be more subtle than that…
"Does the name ‘Dianne’
mean anything to you?” she tried again.
He gave a frown,
thinking. “That is a Roman name, is it
not? A woman’s name?” She nodded in
agreement. “I do not recall anyone by
that name,” he said, with a shake of his dark hair. “As I do not recall any other woman I may have known during my
life…”
“You’re going to say it is only me that is important to
you now?” she asked doubtfully.
"Aye,
woman… That is the absolute truth…" And he leaned for another attempt to
kiss her. His lips did succeed in
reaching her neck this time.
He really has a one-track mind, Rhapsody reflected.
She kept back a frustrated sigh.
Clearly, he didn't remember anything at all, and at the moment, didn't
even seem to want to listen to anything she was telling him. "Stop that, please," she said in
annoyance, trying to push him back again.
"You are worse than a vampire!"
"You do not like
it?" she heard him ask with an obvious hint of amusement in his tone. "I only seek to give you pleasure, Lady
Nanna…"
"Maybe it would be more…
pleasant for me, if you would concentrate a little," she growled.
"I am
concentrating…" was the answer the struggling and annoyed Rhapsody heard
through what sounded like a mouthful.
"Not on that!" With a boost of strength, she shoved him away again and found
herself, panting, looking straight into his smiling blue eyes. She had the definite feeling that she would
not have been able to push him off, if he had not decided to let her. He was still keeping his hands around her,
holding her almost at arm’s length. She
raised her index finger. "Now try
to keep up with me," she demanded,
trying to sound patient.
"Why is this habit of
asking so many questions so important to you?" he asked with a frown. "Do you not find it boring? Especially at such a time of night?"
"What do you dream about
when you heal, Lord Balder?" she asked instead, ignoring his remark.
Scarlet grunted. "And yet again another
question…" He shrugged
dismissively. "I do not remember
much of my dreams, fair lady… Most of the time."
"And this time?" she insisted.
"I dreamt of you."
Rhapsody sighed, more than a
little annoyed. "You are just
saying that because you're trying to seduce me into bed," she noted.
He smirked. "Aye.
And as hard as I try, my lady, you deny me - but this is the absolute
truth."
"Is it, really?"
she said, raising a doubting brow.
"Aye. ’Tis true," he repeated with a brief
nod. "I saw you in my dreams. All dressed in white garments… gold trimming upon them… Your beautiful red hair against the
background of the Bifrost…"
“The Rainbow Bridge?” Rhapsody said, more as a reflection then a
question.
“Aye… the symbol of Aesgard’s power… Except it was adorned with another arcane
emblem…” Scarlet frowned deeply, as if
trying to recall an elusive memory. “A
scythe… of two golden blades – with no
handle…”
Rhapsody froze. “And… did you see anything else – in your
dream?”
Scarlet sighed, giving in to
the young woman’s inquisitiveness.
“Behind the Bifrost were the mountains of the Ice Giants – with the
highest peak, Jotunheim, touching the
clouds above…” He frowned. “I remember seeing the outline of a huge
tree at the top… its highest branches forming a palace in the sky…”
Rhapsody was stunned by his
words. Unbeknown to him, Scarlet had described the Spectrum
emblem. And that palace in the clouds –
could it be an elusive memory of Cloudbase?!
To Rhapsody, it looked like
an indication that, deep in the recesses of Scarlet’s mind, was the memory of Spectrum – of the real
world. She was convinced of it.
He DOES remember – unconsciously, maybe, but the
memory is there. It is not completely
drowned by those pictures, and false memories of ‘Aesgard’ forced into his
mind. It’s simply hidden – waiting to
be uncovered..
And if she had to believe
what she had witnessed earlier when he was lying on his bed, healing from his
wound, Captain Scarlet’s psyche was desperately fighting to get free – and to
regain control over his own mind.
I have to find a way to get through to him – to fight
off this ‘Balder’ persona, and help him be himself once more.
“Is there anything else you
saw?”
Scarlet could see the trouble
in the young woman’s eyes, and probably thought it was an indication of her
inner confusion. She was confused,
indeed, but he was far from imagining what his words had stirred in her. He shook
his head over the new question.
“Nay… Not a thing more,” he
answered. “All was quickly engulfed in
a blizzard. A deep blizzard, which concealed everything from my eyes.” He looked deep into Rhapsody’s eyes, as if
searching for a clue to what she could be thinking of. He was only able to see
the disappointment in her features.
“Does this mean anything to you?” he asked her with obvious
consideration in his tone. “Because to
me, my lady, ’tis but a dream. A
strange dream, I will grant you, but a dream nevertheless…”
“Do you believe that dreams are the door to other realities,
Balder?” Rhapsody asked. “To other
truths, that are trying desperately to reveal themselves to us?”
“Aye. Dreams may hold the key to the future.”
“Or to the past… Lord Balder.”
“You are speaking in riddles,
woman,” Scarlet grumbled. “I do not
understand what you are saying.”
“And if I were to tell you
that we’ve known each other before, Balder?” Rhapsody asked tentatively,
looking carefully at his features, for any positive reaction he might have to
her words. “That we have already met –
in another reality?”
“Are you saying that we met
in our dreams?” Laughing, he suddenly
threw himself back, unbalancing her and bringing her with him. Before she could react, she found herself
stretched on her back on the bed, with Scarlet lying by her side, almost on top
of her, leaning on one elbow and his other arm surrounding her. He was smiling mischievously. “Now, ’tis a language I understand, Nanna…
and like very much...” he said in a low tone, leaning down to kiss her.
Oh no… we’re back at this again! Rhapsody rested her hand against his chest, stopping him in
mid-movement.
“Release me this instant,”
she ordered briskly.
“I am not holding you,” he
answered, his voice very calm, and pushed himself up slightly, as if to
demonstrate she would be able to escape him easily. “You are free to go whenever you want, fair lady. The question now would be… Do you really
want to go?”
“You are still being
presumptuous… Why doesn’t it surprise
me?” Yet, despite the harshness of her
words, Rhapsody’s voice was less sharp
than she wanted it to appear. Scarlet
seemed to notice it, as he tilted his head to the side, looking at her
probingly.
“Just one kiss, then, Nanna…”
he gently asked of her, in an almost begging tone. “One willing kiss. This,
at least, you could offer me – will you
not?”
Rhapsody hesitated. Even if she tried to tell him about this
‘other reality’ she had mentioned, would he believe her? It was doubtful. He would think her a madwoman – and maybe would turn away from
her. Thus annihilating her chances of
ever getting through to him and making him see the truth.
On the other hand, if she
were to let him know about the two of them, about what they were to each other…
Tentatively, she reached for
his rugged, stubbly face. He was Paul,
after all – and she was in love with Paul; no matter how she would try to deny
it, she would be drawn to him, whatever his appearance.
His hair may be too long, he might be in desperate
need of a shave, and his manners may be
those of Conan the Barbarian – but there’s definitely a charm within him that I
can’t deny...
In fairy tales, a simple kiss would often work to free
the hero from the spell he is under. What harm could there be in trying?
When he leaned down to kiss
her again, this time she didn’t stop him.
The kiss was surprisingly gentle, very tender at the beginning at least,
and became more demanding as her lips – and body – willingly responded to
it. Probably, Scarlet was feeling her
mellowing to him; she was aware of that, but there was little she could do to
resist this stirring feeling inside of her.
When he finally broke the
kiss, very slowly and with obvious
reluctance, he looked down into her face, his blue eyes scrutinising her soft
features, trying to decipher the emotions they were hiding. He grunted with regret, as he was unable to
perceive what her emotions were, and shook his head. “If it would make any difference, Lady Nanna, I would beg for
your forgiveness for my earlier behaviour towards you. For I believe I cannot content myself with
only one kiss from you now…”
Scarlet had barely finished
his sentence when Rhapsody’s head shot upwards and her lips met his in a fierce
kiss, just as her arms surrounded him in a strong embrace and brought him close
to her. If at first the impetuosity of
her gesture surprised him, he quickly got over it, and almost instantly
responded to both kiss and embrace with an intensity that matched those of the
woman he was now holding so tenderly in his arms.
As for Rhapsody, the thought
that only one kiss would not be enough to break the spell had just entered her
mind.
It might just take much more than that…
* * *
Blue felt so very tired when
he pushed the door leading to his room –
Hodur’s room, to be precise, he mused inwardly. Even though it had been some hours now since he had ‘taken up the
role’, he still had considerable trouble considering himself as this Viking
prince, heir of Odin, that everyone around him thought he was. Well, of course, everyone else also thought they were someone else… And he knew he would have very little chance
of getting help from them in this mission.
He would have to rely only on himself and on Rhapsody if they were to
have an even chance to succeed. Hoping
they wouldn’t get themselves killed in the process – before Ragnarok
happened. Somehow, and it was the voice
of experience telling him this, he wasn’t counting on the Mysterons playing a
fair game.
Maybe Rhapsody will be able to get through to Scarlet?
he pondered. Maybe
he’ll see the truth? And maybe I can do
the same with Karen?
He didn’t hold out much hope
of that, though. Not after what he had
witnessed so far, of how the people he knew so very well were now acting in
this fake reality.
Right now, after what he had
just learnt from Bromwell, and all the events of the preceding day, he thought
he needed a good night’s sleep – at least
what remains of the night, he recalled.
He had no way of knowing exactly what hour it might be. He thought it was probably the middle of the
night – around two or three in the
morning. It was no wonder he felt so
tired.
Must be close to twenty-four hours since I was
‘introduced’ into this crazy game, he thought with bad humour. We will need to act fast now, before we
start losing people… But we won’t be
much good if we can’t get a few hours of sleep.
It was surprising to consider
that sleep deprivation, like all other feelings, felt so terribly ‘real’ in
this world…
He entered the chamber,
taking great care not to make a sound. There was still some light in the
room. He fully expected Symphony
– ‘Iduna’ – to have been asleep for
several hours. He didn’t know in what circumstances exactly he had left her,
when he had been recalled to the reality of Cloudbase. But if he didn’t miss
his guess, and if he had any knowledge of
how 3D games worked, judging from those he already played in the past –
they had a FX-Room at the family home in Boston – he had been but a ‘player’ temporarily removed from the game,
while the program continued running. So
he was willing to bet Symphony had probably never noticed his
disappearance.
And it was probably better
that way.
It was only when he closed
the heavy door behind him and locked it – not wanting to become a possible
victim of an assassination attempt like Scarlet had been – that he
instinctively became aware of an impending danger. He ducked. Just in time
to avoid a flying earthenware jug that came crashing against the door, just
where his head had previously been.
Okay… I made a mistake, then…
“Traitor!” came a furious
imprecation. Blue looked up. Symphony
was standing next to the bed, holding in one hand a large metal plate, and with
the other reaching for a goblet of water that was standing on the table. Her golden eyes were blazing with fury as
she threw the plate in Blue’s direction.
It missed its target when he sidestepped, and the plate made a loud
crashing sound when it hit the wall behind.
“Iduna, wait!”
“You, lying, traitorous
lecher!” she yelled at him. “Where were
you, at this hour of the night? Out to
see another woman?!”
“W-what?” the stunned Blue replied. “Are you crazy?”
“Who is it?” Symphony
continued, this time throwing the goblet.
The projectile missed again, but Blue was splashed with the water it
contained. “How could you do this to
me, leave me after we had made love, and go to see another?!”
“Made love…?” Well,
the Mysterons sure picked a Hell of a time to pull me out of the game earlier…
“I will kill that wench!”
Symphony shouted again, staring at him with a murderous look. “Tell me who she is!”
“Oh, for pity’s sake, calm
yourself!” Blue shouted back. “I didn’t go to see another woman!”
“Liar! Where else would you
go, in the middle of the night?” A
distraught Blue saw the young woman grab the small, narrow dagger lying on the
table – the one she had threatened him with earlier. She moved forward, her
furious eyes on the man she was approaching menacingly. “You reek
of a woman’s perfume,” she said between her teeth. “You betrayed me when you said you would
not!”
“Iduna, please, hear me out…”
It was all Blue could do to
evade her expert throws at him, and avoid being gutted by the sharp blade -
even using the metal plate he had picked up as a makeshift shield to protect himself. Somehow, he found himself absurdly wondering
if his Karen was as adept in the use of a knife as this enraged Valkyrie seemed
to be. He reckoned that ‘Iduna’ could
even give some pointers to the skilled Captain Scarlet in that particular
field. She was liable to either hurt
him or hurt herself, if he didn’t stop her soon.
Sure enough, the sharp blade
got closer to the point of nicking his bare forearm. “That’s enough!” Blue growled, his hard-tried patience now
completely disappearing. It was time to
put an end to this ridiculous fight. He
threw away the plate, grabbed both Symphony’s wrists in a strong grip and
pushed her back. They tumbled over the
bed and to the other side of it and they fell heavily onto the floor. Blue was pinning the still struggling
Valkyrie with his full weight; she was still holding the knife. He had little choice but to twist her wrist
to force her to let go. She gave an
outraged cry.
“You Ase dog! I will kill you for this!”
“Will you calm down!” he
barked into her face. “I have not betrayed you! I went to Balder’s room. The perfume you’re smelling is Nanna’s…”
“My sister!” Symphony lashed
out in fury, obviously misunderstanding the meaning of what he was telling
her. “How could you!?”
Blue nearly rolled his eyes.
“Oh please, do you have the wrong idea! I went there because there’s been an
attack…”
“Nanna?” Symphony stopped struggling instantly. The tone of her voice changed; it was now
filled with concern. “Was she hurt?”
“She wasn’t hurt,” Blue
answered, blowing a deep sigh of relief, upon realizing that he was finally
getting through to her. “It’s Balder
who was attacked.”
“Balder?” Symphony’s beautiful face transformed into a
frown. “Was it Nanna who attacked him?”
Blue shook his head. “No, it wasn’t Nanna. Why would you think that?”
“I told you she was not that keen to be with him…”
“Well, she wasn’t
responsible. It was a servant girl, Gerda, who was apparently acting out of
jealousy.” Blue sat up, allowing Symphony to do the same. He kept a wary eye on her. “Now, can I trust you not to gut me?” He fully expected to see her redden, maybe
she would even beg for his forgiveness, for having misjudged him, but it didn’t
happen. With renewed dignity, she sat
on the floor next to him, brushing herself to remove the patches of dust
covering her and rearranging her hair, before turning a curious stare at
him. He fought hard not to smile at her
affected pride. Truly, his Karen was at the moment the true
image of savage nobility.
“Was Balder hurt?” she asked
him, as if the fight they had just engaged in had little or no importance –
which for her, he presumed, really was the case.
“Yes, he was… stabbed by a
dagger… But he’s getting better.”
“Yes, of course,” Symphony
mused. “After all, he is Aesgard’s invulnerable
warrior. The injury he may have
received would heal itself, would it not?”
Blue stared at her in
silence. So she knew about that. He wasn’t that surprised. If the legendary reputation of Balder had
not made its way by itself throughout the kingdom of Vanaheim, it was quite
possible that ‘Hodur’ would have told his wife.
“Yes, it is healing,” he said
after a pause. “Fortunately. Your… sister is keeping watch over him at
the moment.”
“Is she, now?” Symphony asked
with a faint smile. “’Twould seem you
were right, then, husband: things will
turn out well between them. I should
not have worried needlessly.”
He raised a curious
brow. “I told you that?”
“Aye. Numerous times, my lord.” Symphony shrugged, as if it wasn’t an
important subject anymore. Or at least,
one that was settled. “You said that
girl Gerda was apparently acting out of jealousy. I reckon she was one of Balder’s favourites and was not pleased
that my sister would take her place in her lord’s bed… not to mention his heart.”
Blue shook his head. “It seems that there’s a little more than
that. At least according to
Balder. She might have been…
‘encouraged’ to do this. Your sister
was also supposed to be a victim of this attempt. Gerda tried to pin the blame on her.” He hesitated a little, eyeing Symphony carefully. “Iduna,” he
started tentatively, “do you have any
idea WHO might want this alliance between Aesgard and Vanaheim not to work?”
Symphony scoffed. “NOT the Vanir, I would think,” she said
vehemently, as if defending her people from what might sound like an
accusation. “Granted, the Valkyries might be irritated to be duty-bound in a
matrimonial union with Aesir princes, but they know it could only be in the
best interests of Vanaheim…”
“So no candidate within your
people.”
“Not that I can think
of. But I can think of someone within your people.”
“Loki,” Blue said with a
thoughtful nod.
“Aye. If we can count Loki as being one of
yours… With his obvious lineage with
the Ice Giants, it surprises me that Odin would tolerate him within the Walhall
itself. I understand he saved Odin’s
life, long years ago?”
“That’s… what I heard,” Blue
answered, hesitantly, not wanting to go into a story he had no idea about. “How do you know about… Loki’s link to the Ice Giants?”
“’Tis the stories told in
Vanaheim, Lord Hodur. Everybody knows
about it – how Loki is an Ice Giant’s offspring – how he has inherited their
shrewdness, scheming and malevolence –
how he keeps spreading strife among your people.” Symphony shook her head.
“Many amongst the Vanir clan thought the alliance with Aesgard would not
be a good thing – simply because of Loki’s presence within your ranks.”
Blue exhaled loudly. Everything seemed to point at ‘Loki’. Not that it was such a surprise.
“If Loki is behind this, if
he’s trying to break this alliance,” Blue said thoughtfully, “it might be
because if it fails, it would benefit the…”
he stopped himself just before saying ‘Mysterons’.
“Aye, it would benefit the
Ice Giants,” Symphony concurred. “They
are the common enemy, of both Vanir and Aesir. They have wanted us all dead
since – since the world began. An
alliance between us is a threat to them, and they know it. It is our only chance to defeat them.”
“That’s why this alliance is
important,” Blue mused. “So we can join
our forces against the Ice Giants when the day comes to face them, at
Ragnar…” Before he could finish the
sentence, Symphony swiftly covered his lips with her hand. He found himself
looking back in perplexity into her now
concerned face.
“Never pronounce the terrible
word, my lord,” she murmured, shaking her head. “It can only bring misfortune to all of us.”
He gently removed her hand
from his mouth. “Is it forbidden
amongst the Vanir people?”
“It is a tacit
acknowledgment, husband. I would have
thought it was the same in Aesgard.”
She gave a sigh. “You might want
to interrogate that servant girl, to find if she was really working for Loki –
or anyone else – when she attacked
Balder.”
“Yes… I will have to do just that,” Blue
answered. He finally got up from his
place and sat on the side of the bed, giving a deep sigh. “In the morning. After I have had a good night’s sleep.”
Symphony caught him by the
hand, and he looked down at her, as she rose onto her knees. “You know you can count on my help, if ever
you need it, my lord,” she told him with a faint smile. “I know ways to make the woman talk.”
Blue almost grimaced. The brutal personae displayed by his friends
in this savage world was rather upsetting. They talked about death, torture and
gore as if it was for them the most natural thing in the world. He couldn’t really get used to it. He preferred not to comment, and simply
acknowledged Symphony’s offer. Yes, her help could be useful, he mused.
But not that kind of help… She could be a
precious ally in this mission Rhapsody and I are undertaking.
Now, as far as telling her everything that was going on – that was
another question. Did he dare to
take her into his confidence – to try
to make her see the truth?
He squeezed her hand in his
and she came to sit by his side. He
hesitated, looking uneasily into her eyes.
“Iduna, there is something
that I’d like to tell you… The reason
why I… left the room earlier. You see,
it’s not at all what you think…”
She looked down at his hand,
which was holding hers so tenderly, and squeezed it back. “There is no need for explanation, my lord,”
she replied, interrupting him. “I think I understand.”
“You do?” he asked, raising a
questioning brow.
“You probably simply needed a walk… I should not have been that suspicious of you. I should have more trust in you.”
“Well, yes… you should. But…
about the walk… It’s not quite like that…”
“You heard about the attack
in Balder’s chamber, and you went to check.
I do understand. There is nothing more natural.” Symphony saw the frustrated look on Blue’s
face and reached to stroke his cheek.
“Is it how it happened?” she asked.
“Something like that,” he admitted, hesitantly. “Iduna…”
“I am glad that Balder is not
seriously harmed. And that my sister is
now with him. Perhaps their love will
grow like ours did?” She looked up into
his blue eyes. He smiled thinly.
“I’m sure if you can keep
yourself from wanting to gut me every other day, we’ll be able to get along
with each other very well,” he said mockingly.
“Iduna, please… there is
something important, I have to tell
you…”
“Forgive me, husband,” she
said in an apologetic tone. “I could
not see straight anymore… But, when you
said that other woman’s name while in my arms earlier…”
“What other woman’s name?” Blue interrupted suddenly. “When did I
mention it?”
“Earlier tonight - It
probably was the cider, my lord – ” It certainly was, Blue admitted to
himself. Never since he had drunk that
Mysteronised champagne, a couple of years ago, had he ever drunk anything with that kind of kick.
“What name, Iduna?” he
insisted.
“You called me ‘Karen’,”
Symphony said with a sigh. She felt him
flinch, and she held his hand possessively.
“I felt like she had been important to you…”
She still is, Blue thought inwardly, looking with fondness at the Valkyrie who was
staring at him with barely concealed concern – and jealousy. “You don’t have to worry,” he told her with
a faint smile. “This is exactly what I
was trying to tell you. You see, you…”
“I could not help feeling
jealous,” Symphony interrupted again, as if she didn’t want to hear what he had
to say. “Was she a long lost love of yours, husband?”
“Please, will you listen to
me?” Blue’s patience was waning.
“Iduna…”
“I do not know what this
Karen means to you now, but I promise
you, I…”
“Karen, be quiet!” Lacking any other solution, Blue found
himself forced to take Symphony’s wrists to attract her full attention and
shout into her face. She shut up
instantly, forced into silence. Blue
exhaled loudly, trying to regain his calm.
“I’m sorry, but I have to tell
you this. You are Karen.”
She stared into his face, and
then chuckled, uneasily. “What?”
“You ARE Karen,” Blue repeated.
“That is your real name. Don’t
you remember?”
Symphony looked at him with
confusion plain on her face.
“Husband… I do not understand
what you mean.”
“You have to remember,” Blue continued insistently. “Karen, please… Spectrum, Cloudbase… the
real world…”
“The real world?” She offered a bashful, very forced
smile. “Lord Hodur, you are talking
nonsense. You probably drank too much
cider and ale tonight… The two do not
mix well, apparently.”
“I barely drank any of the
damned stuff!” Blue scoffed loudly, his hands tightening around Symphony’s
wrists, without him even noticing it.
“You have to believe me… You
have to hear me out…”
Symphony frowned deeply; she
struggled to free her hands. “Husband,
you are hurting me…”
Suddenly realising how tight
his hold on her was, Blue released her.
She pulled herself free, and started rubbing her sore wrists, looking at him
with concerned eyes. “Please, my
lord, the joke has gone on long enough…
I do not know any Spectrum, or…
Cloudbase. I do not know who Karen
is. But it is not me, I can assure
you.”
“I… I am sorry, but… I have to make you realise that…”
She put her hand on his lips,
like she had done earlier. “Please,
Hodur… that is enough. Stop all of this. You sound as if you have gone mad… And frankly, you are starting
to frighten me.”
Blue kept silent, only
staring at her with a distressed expression.
How can I tell her… without indeed sounding like I really am crazy – at
least from her point of view? I am the
one who is out of place in this setting – not her, not any of the others.
He could see there was little
point in him trying to explain the truth to her. She would not believe – would not even listen to him. She was too deeply involved with the
scenario presented by the game, its influence
was too strong – she would not
be drawn away from it. Not willingly.
Not right now, anyway… Maybe later?
There’s no need to alarm her anymore for now. It would only drive her away from me…
Blue delicately took her hand
off his mouth, and lowered his gaze, unwilling to look her in the eyes. “I’m… sorry, if I frightened you,” he
murmured. “I…”
“No need to say any more,”
Symphony replied, cutting him off. “You
have not been quite the same since you returned from the Icy Mountains. Neither has Nanna, as a matter of fact. We all noticed. And we all suspect that this may be because of the influence of
the Ice Giants.” She tenderly stroked
his cheek and forced him to raise his eyes, so he could look at her. She smiled sadly. “They must have done this to you, and erased both your memory and
that of Nanna so you would not tell what you both had learned. ’Twould be their way of working… Maybe in
time it will come back?”
“And what were we supposed to
learn?” Blue asked with a frown. “Why did Nanna go to the land of the Ice
Giants, to begin with?”
“Why, she was in search of
Yggdrasil, of course,” Symphony answered.
“Maybe she had completed the
quest when you found her.”
“Yggdrasil?” Blue’s frown deepened. “Iduna, I don’t understand… What…”
A loud banging at the door
interrupted him, and he raised his head suddenly in that direction,
instantly alert. He heard Green’s voice – still with that
lilting ‘Viking’ accent – calling him from the other side:
“My Lord Hodur! Quickly, open the door! It is urgent!”
Blue jumped to his feet, as
the banging and the calls continued. He
picked up the blade which was lying on the floor – just in case – and, in long
strides, crossed the distance separating him from the door, Symphony in
tow. Unlocking the door, he opened it
just a crack; enough to see the dark face of Green, standing on the other side,
with, behind him, three Vikings warriors who were looking around expectantly,
their swords unsheathed. Green seemed
sombre, even a little apprehensive when
he addressed Blue next, after a brief bow:
“My lord, I am sorry to
disturb you at such a time of night…
But I thought it better to at least alert you, since your brother Balder
must still be recuperating.”
“Alert me of what?” Blue asked with a concerned frown.
“The servant maid Gerda has
escaped from her cell,” Green announced
dully.
“What?” Blue murmured,
opening the door fully. “How? When?”
“We noticed her disappearance
just now,” Green answered. “We found her guard wounded and unconscious,
and the cell she was detained in empty.
Warriors have followed her tracks into the Walhall gardens. She must still be there.” He shook his head. “She cannot leave the palace, my prince. She will not run free long.”
“I don’t want her to be
hurt,” Blue ordered sternly. He didn’t
want Anna Preston to suffer because of what might happen to her alter ego in
this world. He was fully aware that the
woman was not responsible for what ‘Gerda’ might be doing. “I want her captured alive, and without any
harm, Heimdall. Is that clear?”
“Aye, my prince. The warriors have already been instructed
about that. I know the woman can give
us useful information.”
Right, there’s that too, Blue mused. “Put guards in front
of Lord Balder’s room,” he instructed.
“In case she should try to go back there.”
“Already done, my lord,” Green answered. “She will not get to him this time.”
“Perfect, then. I’m joining the search,” Blue
announced.
“And I am going too,” Symphony declared. And to Blue, who turned towards her to
argue, she added: “I am not staying here alone while that mad woman is on the
loose in the palace. She obviously has
a grievance against Valkyries, or so it would seem?”
“I doubt she’d go after you,”
Blue sighed. “But okay… I mean, all
right, Iduna, you can join the
hunt. Remember, though: she’s not to be harmed.”
“Aye, my lord,” she said,
offering a mocking smile. “She will not
be. One would believe that you are
trying to protect the wretch.”
Indeed I am, Blue reflected as both he and Symphony left the room and joined the
guards waiting in the corridor. They followed,
as Green led them all towards the garden.
* * *
Hiding in thick bushes, in
the darkness of the Walhall gardens,
Gerda looked apprehensively up at the walkway, just overhead, where she
could see a patrol of Viking warriors quickly passing by, spears at the
ready. It was the third squad of the
kind she had barely eluded in the past few minutes. Every warrior in this wing of the palace was obviously looking
for her.
As soon as the patrol
disappeared from her view, Gerda left her hiding place, reflecting that it
wasn’t safe to stay put too long in the same place, and darted towards the
farthest and deepest end of the garden, following a beaten path between bushes
and trees. Branches heavy with leaves
lashed at her, thorns and thistles tore into her flesh, stinging her painfully
and drawing blood. But she barely
stopped her run. She couldn’t afford to
stay anywhere for very long, for fear of being discovered.
A hooting owl startled her
and she turned around, like a chased animal fearful that the hunter was right
behind her. She stumbled, missed her
step and fell on the path. Panting, she
crawled a short distance before getting back to her feet and running again. She felt as if she had been running ever
since she had made a show of seducing her guard, and stabbed him with his own
knife in order to flee her cell. She barely had time to take a breather.
When she reached the terrace
overlooking the valley, at the end of the path, she suddenly realised that she
could not go any further. She leaned
on the parapet, breathing hard, her heart beating fast, wondering what she
could do now. It would only take
moments before she was found, and taken
back into her cell, and then…
“You are trapped.”
The deep voice coming from
behind her made her turn on her heels, gasping. Lurking in the shadows, she could see the silhouette of a
man. She could feel, more than really
see, the cold eyes set on her. Already,
she had recognised the very distinctive voice, slow and almost cavernous,
before he stepped out of the shadows and approached her where she was able to
see him distinctly.
“My lord Loki,” she
gasped. She fell on her knees, right at
his feet; he stood there, like a statue, looking down at her with an icy stare,
while she desperately grabbed his legs. She started sobbing: “I
failed, my lord…”
“You failed only by half,
woman,” came Loki’s answer, in the very distinctive voice of Captain
Black. “You didn’t succeed in killing
Balder – but that is not a surprise in itself.”
“How do you kill a man who
cannot die?” she replied, her eyes flashing with hate and loathing.
“There are ways… Do not worry, he will pay in the end.” Black tilted his head to the side, still
looking down at her. “But you did warn
him about the consequences of his acts…”
“He did not believe me…” she
moaned.
“Yet, you planted the seed of
doubt in his mind. Your words will come
back to haunt him eventually. Sooner
than he realises.” He leaned down and
took the woman by the arms, helping her to her feet. “Your only crime, your only failure, was to be discovered.”
“I know,” she whispered.
“You know what will happen to
you when the warriors find you again?
They will have no pity.”
A flash of fear passed in
Gerda’s eyes, at those ominous words.
‘Loki’ was slowly but surely pushing her toward the parapet behind
her.
“My lord Loki… I will never
tell them anything concerning you,” she said in a tentative tone.
“You would endure torture to
protect me?” There was doubt in the
deep voice. She nodded her head
briskly. He seemed to consider her
answer, just as the lowest part of her back came into contact with the cold
stone parapet. She gasped in surprise
and looked behind her nervously, to stare down with horror into the empty space
of the cliff plunging very deep down into the rocks below, lit by the rays of
the full moon. “The sentiment does you
credit, woman…” Gerda turned her
attention back to Loki, hope returning to her.
But the coldness on his features made her shiver; his hold on her arms
became stronger. “…But I’m afraid that
is a risk that I cannot take. I am
sorry.”
Before Gerda could come back
from her surprise and react properly, Loki gave her a forceful shove, pushing
her over the parapet. She gasped,
suddenly feeling nothing to hold her anymore, and then screamed in complete
terror when she suddenly realised she was falling to her death. The cry was brief…
Loki stood on the terrace,
looking down into empty space, towards the spot where he knew Gerda had
probably landed. No emotion was
apparent on his face; his features seemed to be etched in stone and his eyes as
cold as before. He heard hurried
footsteps approaching, probably attracted by the sound of the earlier
scream.
He tensed suddenly, and
raised his head attentively, as a voice, an even darker reflection of his own,
suddenly boomed inside of his mind, and addressed him:
“Captain
Black… the scene is in motion… You will
now proceed to the next phase of the plan.”
“The Mysterons’ orders will
be carried out…” he intoned unemotionally.
Captain Black turned around
and briskly left the terrace, not wanting to be discovered at the scene of the
crime…
* * *
In Cloudbase sickbay, Doctor
Fawn, wracked with worry over the fate of the Cloudbase personnel he knew were
under the sinister influence of ‘the
game’ created by the Mysterons, had
demanded – as nicely as possible, considering his situation – permission to
check on them.
Almost contrary to all his
expectations, Bromwell had agreed to his demand – but restricted Fawn to
visiting only those people who were in sickbay. Although he would have wanted to check everyone on base, despite
the huge amount of work it represented, Fawn realised that he already had
received far more than he had hoped for, and didn’t insist. Rochester had then taken him from the room
where Blue and Rhapsody were resting and had followed him as he did his round,
as he would do with his patients in a normal situation. The doctor was even allowed to enter the
Auxiliary Room of Sleep where Colonel White, Lieutenant Green and Captains
Ochre, Magenta and Grey were resting.
He was satisfied that they all seemed in good health, despite the fact
that they were plunged into a very deep sleep from which it didn’t seem that
they would wake up any time soon.
Lieutenant Green and Captain Ochre’s heartbeats seemed to have increased
a little over the normal rate, but not to the point where it would be worrying.
He wondered what could be
going on with them.
Then he went to the Nurses’
station. He watched Nurse Barlow, his
senior nurse, who was slumped across her desk, also deeply asleep, not
surprisingly, but her breathing was regular and her heartbeat steady, and so
Fawn didn’t worry about her. Still
followed by Rochester, he entered the nurses’ dormitory, where he knew all the
nurses had been gathered together. He
found them, all accounted for, sleeping on their beds. Sighing, he checked on them all, making sure
they were all right. Rochester stood
patiently by the door, watching him vigilantly. So far, since the beginning of Fawn’s round, he had not uttered a
single word.
As he went from one nurse to
the other and reassured himself of their good health, Fawn couldn’t help but
ponder that so far, he had not found a single clue to where Captain Scarlet –
or Captain Black – were being held. He
was convinced that they probably were very close by – probably in a wing of
sickbay that he had not visited; he doubted very much that Bromwell would have
left them – especially Scarlet – out of his immediate reach.
He had just finished checking
on the last of his nurses when he suddenly heard a gasping sound behind
him. He turned around, and saw that one
of the sleeping women was convulsing on her bed. He went to her side, suddenly alarmed. Rochester quietly left his station by the door and approached
too.
Fawn stood over the bed, and
watched, with growing horror, as Nurse Anna Preston writhed and gasped on her
bed. She had suddenly awakened, and her
eyes were wide open, staring at him with a pleading expression, as she tried
desperately to catch her breath. Her
hands flew to her throat, which was inexplicably compressing. Her face was turning red.
She was literally choking.
Horrified, Fawn knelt by her
side. “Anna, please, Anna, calm down…”
he urged her. “You have to calm
down. Take it slowly… Please, Anna…”
“Can’t breath…” she gasped in
a strangled, nearly inaudible tone.
“Can’t…”
“Anna, listen to me,
please…” Fawn tore open her shirt, in a
hope that it would help her breathing, and tried to help her into a sitting
position. She was panicking, and her
arms flailed, as if attempting to grasp the air that refused to enter her
lungs. “Anna, please, you have to
calm down…”
“Doctor Fawn… Can’t…” Preston
caught hold of Fawn’s arm, desperate to receive his help. She was suffocating. Her eyes went wider still. “Cap… Captain… Black…”
“Black?” Fawn muttered, frowning.
“Anna, hang on…”
Anna Preston tried to inhale
deeply, but unfortunately, her efforts were for nothing and her throat gave a
strangled sound. Fawn fell her hand
slipping from his arm and letting go.
Her eyes rolled under the eyelids and she went rigid, before falling
numbly onto her pillow. Fawn froze for
a second.
“Anna…” he called in
disbelief, checking her now set face and closed eyes for any sign of life. He shook her, but she didn’t move. “Anna!”
She wasn’t breathing anymore. He
checked her pulse at the neck; there wasn’t any. “My God, Anna…” he whispered.
“She’s dead, Doctor.”
Fawn tensed, and briskly turned his head in the direction of
the still open door. Bromwell was
standing there, watching him, his expression so very cold and inhuman. Heart pounding with revulsion, and inhaling deeply in an attempt to
suppress his righteous desire to lash out, Fawn slowly got to his feet; he
could do very little to stop his legs shaking.
“You knew it would happen,”
he accused Bromwell, giving him a murderous look. “You knew she would die, and that’s why you permitted me to check
on them…”
Bromwell tilted his head to
the side.
“You needed a demonstration,
Doctor,” he answered quietly. “A proof
that the Mysterons were not bluffing earlier.
Now you have been witness that we told you the truth…” He gestured negligently in the direction of
Anna Preston’s dead body. “Now you
know… that when your colleagues die in
the Aesgard world, they also die for real.
And if Captain Blue fails in his mission, they will also all die.” He nodded his head slowly.
“They are all doomed, Doctor…”
“You disgust me…” Fawn
growled between his teeth. He felt
Rochester grabbing him by the arm and didn’t even resist when the Mysteron
agent pushed him toward the door.
“Take the doctor into his
office,” Bromwell instructed his accomplice.
“And lock him up, until such time as we decide his fate. In the meantime, we have work to do. The second phase of the Mysterons’ plan has
just begun. And it will end with the
death of all personnel on Cloudbase…”
“You should have woken me!”
Captain Blue made an enormous effort not to cringe. Odin’s thunderous bark of anger would have
made a full army of warriors step back in fear. It was vaguely similar to Colonel White’s most furious yell – and
Blue couldn’t help but experience the same feeling of apprehension he always
felt when he was facing his commanding officer at his most angry. You did not want to cross Colonel
White or be in the same room with him when he was in that state. And Blue had the impression it was even more
true of ‘Odin’.
The self-proclaimed ruler of Aesgard was
presently pacing the floor of his private chamber with long strides, his
spear-sceptre thumping the stones at every other step. He was fuming, mumbling
into his beard, at the three young men standing in the room – at a safe
distance, it would seem – after being told of the events that had unfolded
during the previous night. It was very
early in the morning, and Blue had barely slept, even after warriors of the
palace guard had told him, an hour after they had gone in search of her, that
the servant girl Gerda had been found dead.
Blue could not erase from his mind the concern he felt for Anna Preston
on hearing the news. There was no way
for him to know of her fate beyond this imaginary world, but he had a feeling
of foreboding that something awful might have happened to her.
Scarlet, his arms crossed on his chest, apparently very calm,
tilted his head to one side, and raised an eyebrow, following his king’s pacing
with his eyes. He exchanged a quick
glance with Ochre, who was standing by his right. The red-haired warrior shrugged dismissively; Blue couldn’t help
but wonder about the huge black eye he was sporting. It was as if the whole left side of his face had been hit with
the heavy hammer he was presently leaning on.
Ochre rolled his eyes behind White, without the latter noticing
this. They both seemed to think that ‘Odin’, in his present anger, was in no
state to listen to any of their explanations.
True enough, their ruler was still raving with fury.
“You should have woken me!”
Colonel White repeated, in his booming voice, continuing his furious
pacing. “All this happening during the
night, and none of you princes even deigned to inform me?! This is outrageous!”
“Waking you would have served very little, my liege,” Ochre
remarked. “The servant girl was already
dead, and Balder was already healing from the wound that she inflicted on
him. We did not feel it was necessary
to disturb your sleep. We thought it would be better for you…”
“It was not for you to decide!”
White roared in his direction.
“I am not a crippled old man whom you shall tell what to do! I am still ruler of Aesgard, and it is I who
make the decisions in this land! When
something this important happens, I want to know right the same
instant. Is that clear?”
“Aye, Lord Odin,” Scarlet and Ochre answered in a low tone. They both bowed in front of White and Blue
felt it would be best for him to imitate them – which he did, although a little
awkwardly. White didn’t seem to take
any notice of his hesitation, as he went to sit on the large, fur-covered stool,
next to a small table on which were set a beaker and a large vessel. He looked thoughtful, his hand resting on
his bearded chin.
“So the girl is dead, now,” he said abruptly.
“She was found at the foot of the cliff, my Lord,” Scarlet
confirmed. “Just below the balcony
bordering the palace garden.”
“She jumped to her death, then?”
“There is no way to know for certain, Lord Odin,” Blue
remarked. “She might…” he hesitated.
“She might what?”
White asked, turning his one brilliant eye on him. He seemed genuinely annoyed by his
hesitancy.
“Well, it seems
rather odd that she would have flown the dungeon to go and throw herself off a
cliff,” Blue reasoned. “She could have
killed herself in her cell instead. She
might have been… pushed?”
“Do you have proof of this?” White inquired.
“We found footprints on the balcony,” Blue answered. “Hers and those of a man. It might be she was murdered.”
“By whom?”
“By whoever pushed her to try to assassinate Balder,” Ochre then
offered.
“You already have a suspect in mind,” White huffed.
“Of course, my liege. I
think it is quite obvious who it should be,” Scarlet remarked coldly.
“Always the same suspect in everything that happens in Aesgard that
seems a little out of the ordinary.”
“I thought you would say that,” White retorted in a mumble. “But you do not have any proof of your
allegations. Like every time you
present such accusations.”
“Loki is far too clever to leave any proof behind him, my lord,”
Ochre huffed.
“We might not have proof, Lord Odin,” Scarlet continued quickly,
before White could answer Ochre’s remark.
“But I did see the girl Gerda talking with Loki earlier during the
evening… I was not the only one.
Everybody saw it.”
Ochre concurred with an acknowledging nod; but White quickly
brushed this aside. “The girl Gerda
could have talked to anyone else during that evening, Lord Balder,” he
remarked. “This is not proof enough,
and you very well know it. I need you
to bring me more than that, if you want me to throw Loki into the dungeon. You know as well as I what everyone is
saying at this moment: the girl tried
to exact revenge on you because you pushed her out of your bed in favour of the
Valkyrie. And to all appearances, she
killed herself afterwards – probably to avoid torture.”
“Or she was killed by Loki so she would not denounce him,” Blue
remarked.
“Speculation,”
grumbled White, turning his back on them. “Unless you actually have a witness
to testify hearing Loki instructing the girl to attack Balder, or seeing him
killing her, I cannot act against him.”
“You
cannot – or will not, my lord?” Scarlet asked with a furrowed brow. “We all
know why you are not willing to have Loki apprehended and put in chains.”
“Do
not be presumptuous, Balder,” growled White.
“And do not push your luck. I am not in the mood.”
“I am sorry, my lord,” Scarlet said, stopping himself from
sighing.
“But some things have to be said,” Thor continued in turn,
bravely. “We all know the Prophecy is
holding you back from punishing Loki the way he deserves.”
“The Prophecy?” Blue asked with genuine curiosity. “What about it?”
“Ymir’s Blood!” White suddenly jumped to his feet, and his
hand swiftly grabbed the handle of the beaker full of ale, standing on the
table next to him; without even a pause, he threw the object directly at
Ochre. As if anticipating that move,
Ochre quickly stepped aside and ducked to avoid the projectile – which crashed
loudly against the wall behind, splashing its contents on him. Blue opened his eyes wide with astonishment
at this display of violent behaviour.
But neither Ochre – nor Scarlet – seemed the least bit surprised
by it. Ochre was simply and quietly
brushing the ale from his shoulder, while stepping forward to take his former
place, as if nothing had happened.
White was marching on him, angrily.
“I will not have you dispute my decisions!” he roared in
his most furious and thunderous tone to date.
“It is I who makes the decisions here! It is not for you, my
princes, to decide what I should be doing!”
“Of course, my liege,” Ochre said, unfazed by the totally livid
expression displayed on White’s face.
“Next time, be sure to wake me,” White seethed between his
teeth, poking Ochre’s broad chest. That
subject, obviously, was not to be forgotten, nor forgiven, for a long
time.
“Lord Odin,” Blue then objected with some hesitation, “Your anger
towards Thor is unfair. He’s
not to be held responsible for any decision made last night. He wasn’t even present when the events…
unfolded.”
“Aye,” growled White, turning to him. “You were, Hodur.
As was Balder, I believe.”
“Balder was still recovering from his attack,” Blue retorted
courageously. “If someone has to be
held responsible, it has to be me.”
“Balder seems to have recovered rather nicely, if my good eye is
still able to be the judge of it,” White retorted coldly.
“Aye, Lord Odin,” Scarlet answered quietly. “I have.”
“As usual.” White turned his back on Blue and went to
the table, to take the vessel that remained on it. Blue watched with worry as he lifted it, but White simply drank
from it, before putting it down again.
White lowered his brow pensively. Gloomy, but obviously calmer now, he
went to sit on his fur-covered stool.
“As always, my princes, I take note of your concern,” he said, looking
up pensively at the three younger men standing in front of him. “Loki will be
kept under close surveillance. The
minute we have proof of his deception and malevolence, we will apprehend him –
and throw him in Aesgard’s darkest dungeon.”
“I would prefer
to run him through with my sword, my lord,” Scarlet growled in a very sinister
tone.
“You might have
your chance yet, Prince Balder,” White answered, furrowing his brow with
annoyance at the irrepressible warrior.
“But you will not do so without any proof of Loki’s culpability – and
not without my full approval. We are
just waiting for him to make the one mistake we need.”
“Aye, Sire. I just hope that this waiting will not be our
mistake – and our undoing.”
“You know we
cannot do otherwise. And you all know
why.”
Scarlet and Ochre
nodded their acknowledgement, but Blue had no idea what all this was about.
Was it… that
‘Prophecy’ they were mentioning earlier?
“Who should be
assigned to Loki’s surveillance, my lord?”
Ochre asked. “We need someone we
can fully trust.”
“I already
thought about someone. What you say of
Lord Vali?”
“Vali?” Ochre gave it some thought. “Is he not one of Heimdall’s most trusted
lieutenants?”
“Aye, and of
royal blood,” Scarlet confirmed with a brief nod. “His family is related to our lord Odin himself.”
“Remotely,” White
retorted. “His filial relation to my
house has yet to be proven – my
prince. But he is a loyal son of
Aesgard, and will give his life to protect our land. He came highly recommended by Heimdall himself.”
“I agree that
Lord Vali is an ideal choice,” Ochre concurred. "But is he not presently patrolling our North border, to
prevent plunderers from entering our country and attacking our most faraway
villages?"
"Heimdall
has recalled him to the palace," White answered. "He should be back this afternoon to take up his new mission
– if you all approve of the choice."
“Aye,” Scarlet
answered in turn. “I approve of the
choice, Lord Odin.”
“And what of you,
Hodur?” White asked, turning to Blue.
The latter nodded
briefly. “Of course – my lord,” he
agreed. Who the Hell is Vali? he added inwardly. He had no idea of whom they were speaking,
but until he could find out, he thought he should concur with the others.
“That is settled,
then,” White said approvingly. “I will
send word to Lord Vali that I have a special assignment for him.” He took the vessel from the table and drank
a sip from it, obviously satisfied that the subject seemed to have come to a
close. Then, putting the vessel back on
the table, he wiped his chin with the back of his hand.
"’Twould
seem obvious that Loki – or whoever else is behind this attempt on your life,
Balder – had instructed the girl Gerda to accuse your bride of the
misdeed. Mayhap seeking to destroy the
still fragile alliance between Aesgard and Vanaheim,” he remarked, leaning back
on his stool.
"Might it
not be the reason why he… 'overdid' the staged presentation of the Valkyries
during last night's ceremony, Sire?"
Ochre asked with a deep frown.
“The thought also
occurred to me, Thor,” White agreed.
“Surely, this alliance between our two peoples does not please our
enemies. With that humiliating display
last evening, Loki was probably attempting to raise the ire of all the Vanir –
not to mention the Valkyries themselves – against us."
“I know that my… wife… was not very happy
about that," Ochre said in a low voice.
"So we can
see, Thor,” Scarlet said with a large smile.
“Is that why your face this morning looks like you have been fighting a
bull all night long?”
"Close
enough, my brother," Ochre answered with a dismissive shrug. "As I said, she was not happy. This happened before I finally came
to an agreement with my bride last evening."
"What kind
of agreement?"
"I will not
touch her until she stops hating me, and in return, she will not try to kill
me."
Scarlet
chuckled. There was only a thin smile
on White's lips to betray his amusement.
"And when
will she stop hating you?" Scarlet
asked innocently.
"Never, she
promised." Ochre grinned
wickedly. "But I do not concede
defeat yet, brother. For her to accept
this agreement is proof that she is mellowing towards me. I plan to win her completely to my
cause."
"How? By using your hammer to knock sense into
her?”
"There are
other ways to tame a shrew, Balder," Ochre laughed. "I can try to take her by the heart.
All I need is a little patience."
"You?" Scarlet raised a doubtful brow. "This I have to see."
"You might
be surprised yet, Balder."
“I do not have to
tell you how important this alliance is for our two peoples,” White remarked
gloomily. “Our very survival, in the upcoming battle against the Ice Giants and
their minions, depend upon it. It must not fail.”
“Well then,
Sire,” Scarlet replied with a smug grin, “this alliance might not be as
‘fragile’ as you implied earlier. At
least, not anymore.”
White raised his
brow. “I know you told me the Valkyrie
protected you against the attack of the girl Gerda, Balder. Is there more to it that you have not told
us as yet?”
“Much more, my
Lord. If Lord Thor still has…
difficulties… with his bride…”
“A momentary
setback, I assure you, brother,” Ochre interjected.
“… For my part, I
can confirm that I have won the Lady Nanna to my cause,” Scarlet continued,
without taking notice of his interruption.
You
don’t say, Blue mused,
narrowing his eyes at him. He nearly
voiced his inner comment.
Nearly.
“Why am I not
surprised that your… natural charms would be able to conquer the Valkyrie’s
heart, Balder?” White said with dry humour.
“Do not play around, though, my lad.
You might find that she is made of stronger stuff than a servant girl.
And that a Valkyrie does not take it lightly to be deceived.”
“Those Valkyries
know how to make you suffer,” Ochre added, rubbing his black cheek
meaningfully. “You can take my word for
it, brother Balder.”
“I do not intend
to ‘play around with the Valkyrie’s heart’, Sire,” Scarlet replied
seriously. “I do know the
importance of this alliance between Aesgard and Vanaheim. And I know that for it to work, the marriage
has to work too. I have every intention
of making this happen. I know my duty.”
“Good lad.” White was obviously satisfied with Scarlet’s
statement; he turned his attention to Blue.
“I do not have to ask how you fare with your own wife, Hodur,” he
said. “I know you have waited a long
time to be reunited with her.”
“Aye, my lord,”
Scarlet concurred with a renewed grin, that was mirrored by Ochre’s own smug
smile. “I remember how he could not
keep in place, waiting for last evening’s ceremony to happen.”
“And now, he is
unnaturally quiet,” Ochre remarked almost mockingly. “We have known you more talkative, Hodur. Did your wife tire you out last night?”
“I would rather
think that last night’s events might have… disturbed his plans,” Scarlet
retorted in defence of Blue, although he took almost as much pleasure as Ochre
in seeing the red coming to the blond man’s ears. “Running after a fugitive from the dungeon was probably not the
way he intended to finish the night.”
“Indeed,” White said with a furrowed brow. He glared meaningfully at Scarlet, and then
at Ochre, before setting his sight on an obviously ill-at-ease Blue – who
didn’t like that much attention on him at this moment. He watched a little warily as White extended
his hand to the vessel on the table and bring it to his lips. White caught the movement of his eyes and
raised a brow. “Do not worry, Lord
Hodur – I do not hold you or your brothers responsible for what happened last
night.” He smiled. There was something oddly mischievous, even
cruel, in this grin, which was accentuated by the ugly scar disfiguring his
face. “But had I thrown that beaker at you earlier, I would probably have hit
you and knocked you down. You would not
have been swift enough to avoid it, considering your present state of mind.”
“My state of mind?” Blue
asked.
“You are still recovering from your ordeal in the mountain,” White
offered. “When you went to find the
Valkyrie Nanna?” He glanced at Blue,
with an inquiring look. “Unless you are
recovered enough and now remember that terrible experience?”
Blue hesitated for a fraction of an instant, before shaking his
head. “No, Lord Odin,” he
answered. “I am sorry about this.”
White simply
watched him intently, his one eye shining, his lips pressed into a thin line,
barely visible under moustache and beard, while he rubbed his chin
thoughtfully. Blue felt uncomfortable
under his scrutiny. It was as if White
suspected he wasn’t telling the truth – or suspected something else all
together. What exactly, Blue would have
had difficulty in saying. He was never
really able to read his commander’s mind on his face. But he knew that White was never a fool – and probably neither
was this ‘Odin’ character.
For a brief
moment, Blue entertained the possibility of trying to explain to White and the
others what was really going on – to make them realize the truth about
themselves, and this fantasy they were presently living. But his vain attempt of the previous night
with Symphony made him realize the kind of folly it would be. They would no more believe him than Symphony
had. He would appear crazy in their
eyes, and his chances of ever stopping the Mysterons’ mad plans would be put at
risk.
However, he felt
that having a suspicious Odin watching over him would seriously complicate his
mission. Added to that, he did need
information; there was so much data missing, in order to fully understand the
situation and put the pieces of the puzzle together. And the only people who would be able to help him seemed to be
the very same people he was seeking to save.
“Is there
something on your mind, Lord Hodur?”
White inquired quietly. He
obviously knew something was brewing inside Blue’s head. Something the younger man didn’t seem to be
ready to share with him.
The hesitation in
Blue was more and more apparent. He
noted that both Ochre and Scarlet were now staring at him too, waiting with an
almost unnatural patience. Dammit. I have no choice but to say something. Maybe that would put them at ease – and I
will learn more at the same time… He made a thoughtful, cautious pause,
before finally addressing White, if a little awkwardly.
“I might not
remember what happened in the Icy Mountains, Sire,” he said, “that is, before
the moment Lord Thor and Lord Tyr found the Lady Nanna and me…”
“But…?”
White said with a raised brow.
“… I do know why
the Valkyrie had gone there,” Blue continued.
“Was it not to
escape her marriage to me?” Scarlet asked.
“No. Not exactly. She was on a mission.”
Scarlet seemed
pleased by the answer. “Ah, I should
have known that the fair lady would not consider being my spouse as such a
terrible fate.”
“Keep those
trivialities to yourself,” White warned him.
“What was the Lady Nanna’s mission, Hodur?”
“She was in
search of Yggdrasil.”
A sudden silence
followed Blue’s words. A flicker passed
in White’s eye, before his face became like stone; Blue looked around and
noticed that the expression on both Scarlet’s and Ochre’s face had
changed. They were still staring at
him, but differently this time. They
seemed to have become very sombre.
“Are you
sure?”
White’s grave
tone drew Blue’s attention back to the seated man. He was still wearing an set expression on his face, but the
slight frown of his brow was betraying concern. Blue was suddenly unsure if he had taken the right decision to
tell them that information. But it was
too late to go back now.
If
I wanted a reaction, I sure got one…
“Yes, Lord Odin,”
he confirmed.
“My lord…” Ochre started.
White silenced
him with a swift gesture. He didn’t
take his eye off Blue. “You remember
that?”
“Not exactly,”
Blue admitted. “It was the lady Iduna –
my wife – who told me that.”
“She told you willingly? When?”
“Last evening,”
Blue continued. He was growing more and
more concerned that he might have made a mistake. White had grown even more sombre, and as he slowly rose to his feet, he thoughtfully drained the last
of his drink.
“Lord Odin, I am
sure there is nothing sinister in this,” Scarlet then said.
White had his
back turned to him; he put the vessel on the table, and looked over his
shoulder. “You think so, Balder?”
“I do. After last evening, I cannot believe the
Lady Nanna would want to do us – me – any harm.”
“Sire, despite
Lady Sif’s resistance, I do agree with my brother’s assessment,” Ochre insisted
in turn. "None of the Valkyries
means us harm."
“And what if they
had infiltrated us to better strike at us?”
White asked, turning to them.
“You know the way of the Ice Giants. How they manipulate people to do
their malevolent deeds. This is how
they work.”
Blue raised a
brow. Just like the Mysterons…
“My Lord, if this
were their intention, would the Lady Iduna have confided in Hodur and told him
of the reason for Lady Nanna’s presence in the Icy Mountains?” Scarlet
retorted.
“Then what
exactly was the nature of Lady Nanna’s mission, Lord Balder?” White asked in a sour tone. “Why was she looking for Yggdrasil?”
“Because she
wanted to protect it.”
The clear, low
voice coming from the other side of the room made every man turn around. The door was open and Destiny was standing
in the doorway, looking in their direction; she entered the room, closing the
door behind her, and strode quietly toward them. She had such an air of tranquil nobility befitting the queen she
was that Blue felt compelled to bow in her presence. He wasn’t that surprised to realize that Scarlet and Ochre were
doing the same – but it was rather
perplexing to see that White – Odin – was also bowing his head, even if
only slightly, and with a glint in his eye that indicated that he was on his
guard.
“My Lord Odin,”
she said, standing in front of him, “I can assure you that there was no
duplicity on the part of Vanaheim in accepting the alliance Aesgard offered
us. For our people, it is also a
question of survival – and we cannot afford it to fail any more than you can.”
“So you were
listening at the door, Queen Freyja,” White remarked, without, however, a
single note of reproach in his tone.
“’Twould seem as
well I did too, considering you are starting to entertain doubts about
Vanaheim’s good faith, my Lord.”
Destiny paused briefly, looking up to meet White’s inquisitive stare.
Her eyes didn’t waver, even though he stood an impressive – and menacing – full
head above her.
To Blue, the scene gave the impression that
if Odin had wanted to, he could easily crush her delicate body with his bare
hands.
“Yggdrasil has as
much importance for the Vanir people as for Aesgard, Lord Odin,” the young
woman continued with assurance.
“So you sent Lady
Nanna to protect it?” White asked, his tone remaining calm, but still
suspicious.
“To find it, so
our people would be able to make sure it was safe, my Lord. Considering what Yggdrasil represents for us
– for this world – the Ice Giants would like nothing more than to destroy
it. They are the only ones who would
gain anything by this action.
They know that, with Yggdrasil gone, the human race, their most hated
enemies, would surely follow its path to nothingness. We cannot – must not – lose it.”
Blue was
listening attentively; this bit of information was beginning to sound really
interesting.
“Then I
reckon we should be thankful to you, my
Queen,” White said, taking Destiny’s hand, “for having the foresight to protect
our very existence – all of us.
My apologies for ever doubting you, even so slightly. It will not happen again.” He lightly kissed the back of her hand, before
looking into her eyes again. “Did the Lady Nanna find Yggdrasil?”
“I do not
know.” Destiny looked meaningfully in
Blue’s direction. “For she suffers the
same ailment as your son Hodur and does not seem to remember anything of her
voyage to the Icy Mountains.”
“Aye,” Scarlet
said in turn, wanting to confirm Destiny’s statement. “That much I can also say, Sire.”
“It would
surprise me if she had found it,” Ochre then noted, leaning on the handle of
his hammer. “No-one knows where Yggdrasil
might be, nor the path leading to it.
Neither man, nor woman – or Ice Giants, which is a good fortune for us,
else they would destroy it.”
“That is where
you are wrong, my son,” White said gloomily.
“There are some of us who do know where Yggdrasil is. Those
of us who gave their left eye for knowledge…” He turned his gleaming blue eye to stare in the direction of Blue
and Scarlet whose attention was focused on him. “And there are those of us who might have discovered it – but cannot
remember it.”
As he pondered
White’s puzzling comments, Blue wondered if he was talking about him…
Or about Scarlet,
who was standing by his side.
* * *
“What the hell
is ‘Yggdrasil’?”
Captain Blue
shrugged at Rhapsody’s puzzled question.
They were meeting alone together in some remote part of the palace
garden, away from prying eyes and ears, where Blue had reported to the young
woman everything that had been discussed during his earlier conference with
White and the others. She was seated on
a large white stone, watching him pace back and forth, like a lion in a cage,
as he made his account. He stopped
walking and came to stand in front of her.
“From what I can
recall, ‘Yggdrasil’ was the name of the World Tree – a huge tree which is
supposed to shelter all the known worlds and link them together – there were
nine, in the Norse mythology, including Aesgard, and all of the ‘dark worlds’,
such as the World of the Ice Giants – and Hell itself. Or what the Vikings regarded as Hell,
anyway.”
Rhapsody frowned.
“So you’re telling me that I – as Nanna – I was searching for that
tree?”
“I don’t know if
Yggdrasil is supposed to be a tree in this setting.” Blue sat down next to her on the stone, pensive. “What I know is that the mythological
Yggdrasil will be destroyed at the end of the world. Its roots are being gnawed at by serpents – probably a
representation of evil. A demon of some
kind is supposed to set it on fire at Ragnarok – thus launching the destruction
of all things that exist.”
“I can understand
why the Vanir wanted to protect it, then,” Rhapsody mused. “If indeed Yggdrasil is a tree – and means
for this world the same as it does in mythology.”
“I suspect that
even if it’s not a tree, it does mean something similar to these
people,” Blue mused.
“What about
Paul’s dream?” Rhapsody then noted. “Or
rather… Balder’s dream? The one I told
you about earlier?”
“Where he was
seeing a huge tree on top of a mountain, forming a palace in the clouds,” Blue
recalled. “I was just thinking about
that…”
“This palace he
saw might very well mean Cloudbase. Perhaps Yggdrasil is the representation of Cloudbase in this
world? That could also mean that the
Mysterons are really trying to destroy Cloudbase. Of course,” Rhapsody mumbled as if as an afterthought, “we don’t
need a crystal ball to work that one out.”
“That is a
possibility, yes,” Blue admitted. “And
that might explain one of the colonel's – Odin’s – reflections. He said that no-one knew where Yggdrasil was
– except those who might have discovered it but cannot remember. He could have been talking about the two of
us. But he might have been talking
about Balder too. Balder could have
discovered Yggdrasil during that fateful hunting party with Loki.”
“And the Ice
Giants would have erased that from his memory?” Rhapsody asked in a puzzled
tone. “Why?”
“I don’t
know. I’m just contemplating a few
possibilities. I might be way off
track.” Blue frowned thoughtfully. “I also have the impression that Odin
himself might know where Yggdrasil is.
What he said about losing an eye to acquire knowledge from it… Just like the legend, in fact.”
“I don’t
understand,” Rhapsody admitted.
“In the Norse
legend, in order to acquire wisdom and knowledge, Odin sacrificed one of his
eyes to the World Tree and hanged himself from it for a number of days. Now I don’t know how faithful to that part
of the legend this world might be… but there’s definitely something to check
here. If Odin indeed knows where is Yggdrasil, he obviously wouldn't tell.”
"To protect
it."
"Most
probably. And he doesn't seem eager to
share that information with anyone – Vanir or Aesir. Mind you, considering what he said about the
Ice Giants and how they manipulate people, I don't blame him. What he described sounds suspiciously like
the Mysterons' way of acting…"
“Perhaps we’re
getting it all wrong,” Rhapsody thought aloud.
“Perhaps Yggdrasil is an opening of some sort. Once destroyed, all the dark forces – including the Ice Giants –
would come rushing in to destroy this plane of existence…” She frowned. “That does sound rather metaphysical, doesn’t it?”
“Perhaps. But anything’s possible. I'm also still
wondering about that 'Prophecy' that they were all talking about during the
meeting, regarding Loki. I can't recall
anything from the legends… Perhaps this
is something specific to this world?"
"This
prophecy, whatever it might be, could be of tremendous importance to this case,
Captain," Rhapsody remarked.
"I know, we can't
dismiss any clue we find. However,
I'm wondering if the Mysterons are not trying to simply confuse us, so we wouldn't
know what to look for."
Blue shook his head, mildly irritated by the thought, and his own
doubts. "You understand I couldn’t
really ask a direct question about either Yggdrasil or that prophecy,
during the meeting. As Hodur, I'm meant to know about all that already.
I’m afraid I might look suspicious enough in Odin’s eye already, because of
this… ‘selective’ memory loss I’m supposed to be suffering from. If I’d asked too many questions – like what
exactly Yggdrasil is – I believe I’d
look even more suspicious.”
“What exactly can
‘Odin’ suspect?”
“I don’t
know. It’s just… the way he was looking
at me.” Blue shrugged again. “There is something on his mind, I’m sure. I just wish I knew what it is.”
“Could the
colonel be remembering something?” Rhapsody
asked with hope. “In the back of his
mind?”
“We can only
hope. But until I have sufficient
evidence that any of them remember about the real world, I’m not trying
to tell them about it. I already tried
with Symphony last night and the results were less than satisfactory.” He glanced in Rhapsody’s direction. “How about Scarlet?”
She shook her
head in frustration. “I don’t think I
had any more luck with him than you did with Symphony,” she remarked. “And…
I did try hard to make him remember.”
She hesitated, suddenly wondering if she should say more – or even if
she had said too much already – and Blue had understood what she meant. The thin smile on Blue’s lips confirmed the
latter, and she blushed ever so slightly.
“You know, everything seems so real in this world… It’s really amazing. I thought that maybe…”
“It would jog
Paul’s memory?” Blue charitably finished for her, as she hesitated to continue.
“It does sound
rather stupid, doesn’t it?” Rhapsody asked.
“No… it works in
fairy tales and legends. And since this
world is based on just that…” Blue’s
smile widened a bit, out of sympathy for the slightly embarrassed young woman. He gently patted her shoulder. “It was worth a try, anyway.”
“Seems like a
wasted effort,” Rhapsody mumbled. “God,
I hope I’m not shocking you, or anything,” she said with an apologetic smile.
“Shocking me?”
Blue repeated with a brow raised in surprise.
“Why would that shock me? In
fact, I’m wondering if I should not have considered that… solution… with Karen.”
“You would say
that,” she replied with an amused smirk.
“Actually, you
telling me about this doesn’t surprise me that much either. As a matter of fact, Scarlet – Balder, that
is – did mention something during the meeting earlier that led me to think something
might have occurred between the two of you last night.”
“He did what?”
Rhapsody retorted with outrage. “Oh,
tell me he didn’t, Adam… in front of the colonel?”
“Er…” Blue was hesitant now. And that was enough of an answer to Rhapsody
who groaned loudly.
“I will never be
able to face the old man after that…”
“I don’t think
you should concern yourself too much about that,” Blue retorted, still
hesitantly. “Not for now, anyway. There’s nothing to tell us that he or anyone
else will remember any of what happens here, once they wake up.”
“You remembered
when you found yourself back on Cloudbase yesterday evening,” Rhapsody reminded
him.
“We are the only
ones who know who we really are in this world. So it might be different for
us. Beside, none of the others are
acting like their usual selves. And the
colonel is bound to take note of that.
So he’ll probably not think anything of it once everything is back to
normal.”
“It’s still
rather embarrassing,” Rhapsody said.
She was thinking that Paul would have a lot of explaining to do
and a lot to answer for when they eventually escaped this strange world. She might not feel as magnanimous then as
she felt right now. For example, as hard
as she was trying, she couldn’t expunge from her mind the vision of the servant
girl Gerda being so close to Balder…
And that reminded
her of the poor woman’s final fate.
“Adam,” she
murmured, lowering her eyes, “what do you think happened to Anna Preston?”
He shook his
head, sadly. “I wish we knew,” he
answered in a low tone, very similar to hers.
“I hope she is all right. But
evidently, there is no way for us to contact Cloudbase and check it out.”
“Think
again, Captain Blue.”
The faint, male
voice seemingly coming from nowhere made Blue raise his head in surprise and
check around. There was no-one in
sight; he addressed a look at Rhapsody who had straightened also, with the same
look of astonishment on her face.
“You heard that
too?” he asked with a frown.
“I certainly
did,” she answered. “It sounded
like… Doctor Fawn.”
“Nice
of you to recognize me,” the
faint voice said again.
“Doc!” There was no mistake now. Blue jumped to his feet, turning around, and
looking for the still-invisible doctor.
“Where are you? We can hear you
but…”
“You
can’t see me, I know. NOT surprising.
I’m not there, Blue.”
“Then where…”
“I’m
merely contacting you from Cloudbase,” Fawn interrupted.
“Look at your finger…
Remember I slipped something onto it just before you left?”
Blue raised his
left hand and stared at his middle finger.
A polished, silver ring was shining around it; he had all but forgotten
about it.
“A communicator,”
he stated in a surprised tone.
“Of course, a
communicator,” the voice replied, a little more clearly this time. “What did you think it was, a token of my
affection?”
“How can it be
working here?” Rhapsody asked in
puzzlement, leaning even more closely to examine the communicator/ring. “I mean, this is a piece of technology… a
pure anachronism in this barbarian world…”
“Don’t ask me
how. All I know is that I managed to
synchronize its signal to the computer source generating the Twilight of the
Gods game. So in truth, I would
say it’s a window to the world you are presently in – using Captain Blue’s
subconscious as my connection."
"If you're
using Captain Blue's subconscious – how come I can hear you?" Rhapsody
asked with a curious frown.
"Look
at your finger, Rhapsody."
She complied,
raising her left hand – and saw that she had on her middle finger a ring
similar to Blue's. A faint smile
crossed her lips. "Clever,
Doctor. I didn't think you were into
electronics."
"Desperation
can lead to miracles, my dear Rhapsody.
I thought – hoped, rather – that I would be able to make this work when
I gave it to you, once I had the chance to slip it on your finger, and then to
Blue. I’ve struggled for hours after
that to find the right frequency.” There was an obvious tone of satisfaction
underlying Fawn’s voice. “I think I
would make Captain Magenta or Lieutenant Green proud. Of course, I have no doubt it would have been far easier for them
than it was for me…”
“Don’t sell
yourself short, Doc,” Blue said with a smile.
“That’s great work you did.
We’ll be able to keep tabs between us on what is going on.” He paused
and glanced briefly in Rhapsody’s direction before asking the question that he
knew was foremost in both their mind.
“Doc… how is Anna Preston?”
There was a short
silence. “I’m sorry, Captain,” came
the voice of Fawn with a sad note to it.
“But I’m afraid she died last night.”
“I was afraid you
would say that,” Blue said, closing his eyes in a silent prayer for the young
woman. Rhapsody had lowered her gaze.
“She
woke up all of a sudden, and started choking,” Fawn continued in explanation. “She couldn’t breathe anymore. What happened over there? I’m guessing… her
character died as well?”
Briefly, Blue
reported the incidents leading to the servant girl Gerda’s death, and proceeded to explain the later
events, including his meeting with the others early in the morning to discuss
what had happened during the night. He
finished by relating his and Rhapsody’s latest discoveries.
“I’m
sure they wanted me to witness her death,” Fawn said gloomily.
“The Mysterons set her up as an example of what will eventually
happen to the others… if we fail to counter the Mysterons’ plans this time.”
“Then we must
not fail,” Rhapsody replied insistently.
“We have to succeed – to avenge Anna Preston… and Harmony,” she added
with a catch in her voice.
They were all in
agreement. Although they were all
saddened by Harmony Angel’s and Anna Preston’s demise, they knew that they
couldn’t let their feelings get in the way of trying to find a way to escape –
and save everyone else. If anything,
the death of Anna Preston was providing them with further data as to what would
happen if they were to fail. It seemed
evident now that the Mysterons were not bluffing: anyone would die for real on Cloudbase if he/she was to die in
this fantasy world.
“I’ve been locked in my office since Anna
died,” Fawn
continued. “And I’ve been left
pretty much to myself. That’s why I was
able to work on the computer and then that communication link with you. I’m going to help you as much as I’m able to
over here.”
“Just be careful
not to get caught, Doctor,” Blue remarked.
“I’ll
try. But don’t worry about me. Considering the latest events, you’d better
worry about yourself.”
“Aside from
Preston, everyone else is okay on Cloudbase?”
Blue asked.
“As
far as I was able to see, yes. So I
take it everyone else is all right on your side too?”
“Yes, they’re all
right. But I don’t know for how
long. I suspect that, as we are
speaking now, the Mysterons are making plans to destroy us all. We must act fast now, Doc, before someone
else dies – and if we don’t want to all share Anna Preston’s fate – and
Harmony’s.” Blue marked a short
pause. "Doc, we're a little short
on information here. Are you able to
check the databank library – even Worldnet – for further information on Norse
mythology? We should really learn all
we can from this world we're living in if we were to understand what to
do. This prophecy that the others
mentioned concerning Loki doesn't ring any bells with Rhapsody or myself."
"I'll
try to find what I can. Unfortunately,
the use of Worldnet is restricted right now – no doubt part of Burgundy's
security measures to prevent us from contacting the rest of the world."
"I've no
doubt his firewall is effective," Blue remarked. "Trying to crack it would be a waste of time."
"I
think I saw a rule book of the Twilight of the Gods game that Scarlet
was reading before this mess started," Fawn mused. "I
obviously don't have that book to hand, but maybe the same information can be
found in the program databank?"
"That
is a good idea, Doctor," Blue approved. "Anything you can find could
be useful to us, to provide the key to this puzzle."
“You
might be right in thinking that Scarlet might be that key, Captain.”
“Yes. Him… and/or this Yggdrasil thing we told you
about.”
“It does seem
like it could be an important clue,” Rhapsody agreed. “Especially if it is somehow representative of Cloudbase – if I
interpreted Captain Scarlet’s dream correctly.”
“Well,
I actually succeeded in accessing the surveillance cameras a few minutes ago,
and I’ve been looking around for him.
So far, I haven’t found a trace of him.”
Blue exchanged a
new glance with Rhapsody. He could see the worry splattered on her face. A worry that mirrored his own.
“They’re hiding
him somewhere,” Rhapsody said, trying to conceal her nervousness. “That must mean he is indeed important to
their plans.”
“That’s
what I figured out myself. But I
haven’t finished looking around. Wherever he might be, I’ll find him,
Rhapsody. I know you’re worried about
him.”
Rhapsody gave a
frown at Fawn’s words. “Of course, I’m
worried, Doctor,” she answered carefully.
“But I also worry about you. I
hope you’ll be careful in your search…”
There was a very
audible chuckling sound, just before Fawn continued, “Rhapsody, I know you
mean every word you just said – but I also know for certain that you will NEVER
feel as worried for my well-being as you feel for your boyfriend’s…”
Rhapsody opened
her eyes wide. “Boyfriend?!” she repeated in surprise. “Doctor, how do you…”
“I’ve
know for a long time about you two, but I don’t think now’s the time to discuss
this,” Fawn suddenly
interrupted her. “I think we’ve kept
this link open long enough. If we want
our contacts to remain inconspicuous, we should keep them to a minimum – and
short in time.”
“I agree,” Blue
added quickly, dismissing Rhapsody’s frustrated look of disapproval. “Unless we want the Mysterons to intercept
them.”
“I’ll
contact you if – when – I’ll have any further development here. If you want to reach me, tap three times on
the ring. It’ll trigger the comms link. Fawn out.”
“S.I.G. Doc. Captain Blue out.”
Blue lowered his
hand and looked up at Rhapsody, who now seemed pensive. “Well, now this is good news,” he
reflected. “We have a direct link with
the real world. So with a little luck,
we’ll know what’s happening there – and the good doctor will make sure to be as
good as his word, and help us any which way he can.”
She nodded
slowly. “I’m not so happy that Fawn
seems to know about Paul and me,” she remarked. “Were we as transparent as you and Karen are, Adam?”
He rolled his
eyes, smiling faintly. “I should feel
offended by that remark. And yet – I
just know you’re right. And no, you
were not ‘as transparent’ as we were.
At least, I don’t think so.
Probably Fawn is a better observer than some?”
“Let’s just hope
so,” Rhapsody said, answering with the same kind of smile.
A snapping sound
on their right made them raise their heads in alert. Blue jumped to his feet, looking with trepidation in the
direction of which the sound had come, his hand on the handle of his sword. From behind a thick copse of bushes, he saw
a tall silhouette emerge. He relaxed
slightly when he recognized Scarlet, who was now looking at them with attentive
eyes.
“Here you are,
brother,” Scarlet said quietly in his lilting voice. “And you as well… my wife.”
He took note of Blue’s hand on the sword, and narrowed his eyes. “You seem nervous, Hodur.”
“Just a bit, I
have to admit,” Blue answered, his hand falling to his side. “I do not forget that a woman was killed
last night… in these very gardens. Not
far from here, actually.”
Scarlet narrowed his eyes at them. “What are you doing over here, all by
yourselves, the two of you?” he asked.
“Hodur just said
it… husband,” Rhapsody answered quickly enough, jumping from the stone to
stride to Scarlet’s side. She took his
arm and linked hers to it. “We were
looking for clues about the murder.”
“Ah.” Scarlet seemed to ponder the
revelation. “So Hodur told you about
our earlier meeting with Odin?”
She flashed him a
big, charming smile. “Wouldn’t you have
done the same if you had found me first, Lord Balder?” she remarked innocently. “Knowing that I could help you find the
assassin out?”
He simply gave
her a puzzled look, obviously wondering if she was leading him on. He didn’t answer, but smiled in turn,
affectionately tapping her hand linked to his arm, and drawing her closer to
him. “A woman should not concern her
pretty head with such thoughts of ugliness,” he retorted, almost
condescendingly.
“Say that again
and you’ll find yourself in big trouble… my lord,” she shot back between
smiling teeth.
He laughed. “I believe I already am in trouble, my
lady,” he answered. “Just by giving my
heart to you.” Still smiling, he
steered her in the direction he had come from and gestured to Blue to follow. “Come, brother. Leave this… investigation to the palace guards. We have other things that demand our
attention.”
“I’m right behind
you,” Blue answered. He followed, a few
steps behind the couple, his eyes riveted on Scarlet’s back, thoughtful.
Was it his
imagination, or had his friend actually sounded and looked suspicious?
* * *
On ending the communication with Captain
Blue and Rhapsody Angel, Doctor Fawn had turned his attention back to his
earlier search through Cloudbase’s multiple surveillance cameras. His computer screen was flicking through
them, as he looked desperately for any clue or indication of where Captain
Scarlet could be hidden – or even Captain Black, for that matter, as Blue was
convinced that the renegade Spectrum officer was also somewhere on base, in
order to take part in this ridiculous charade they were all involved in.
Since the death of Nurse Preston, and
from the minute he had been brought back to his office and left alone, Doctor Fawn had not been able to sleep and had
relentlessly worked on his computer.
The Mysterons obviously didn’t consider him that much of a threat to
them. That they hadn’t killed him yet
could mean that they either regarded him with contempt – or that they had
further plans in store for him. In
which case, Fawn didn’t propose to do nothing but stay around waiting for them
to act. He knew that not only his life
was in jeopardy, but also all those living on Cloudbase – all those 500-plus
people who were presently stuck in a computer fantasy life, with no suspicion
that they were even in danger of dying.
Fawn’s thoughts were haunted by Anna
Preston’s death, which he had witnessed first hand. If he was able to have his say in this, she would be the
last victim of this game.
He was fighting against tiredness,
desperately keeping his drooping eyelids open and riveted on the screen that
was still flicking through the various areas of Cloudbase. Nothing much was happening. Every room and
corridor was either empty or occupied by unconscious people – some of them
sleeping in the most awkward position.
Fawn felt for certain that when this craziness was finished, sickbay
would receive a lot of visitors complaining about backaches or sore necks. He grimaced, thinking of the job awaiting
his staff.
Something suddenly caught his eyes on the
screen which was now flicking so rapidly, that if he had blinked, he would have
missed it. He had to click back four or
five times, more slowly, to find the picture that had attracted his
attention.
A Spectrum security guard was standing to
attention in front of a closed door. He
was very much awake and alert to his duty.
Fawn narrowed his eyes with interest.
Yet another Mysteron, he reflected inwardly. Obviously guarding this door… and what
else, exactly?
Fawn rubbed his chin thoughtfully,
feeling annoyed at the growth of hair scratching under his fingers. I might have found it… he thought, his eyes not leaving the
screen. This guard wouldn't be at
that door, if there wasn't something important behind it. It could be Scarlet… and… or… Captain Black.
IF Captain Black was there, that was, as
Captain Blue was so convinced. For his
part, Fawn himself wasn't that sure about the veracity of that theory.
The very recognizable sound of his door
sliding open made Fawn swiftly raise his eyes to see Rochester stride into the
room, an implacable expression on his face.
Instinctively, Fawn pressed the button to turn off his computer; without
so much as a pause, Rochester walked swiftly to him – and backhanded him violently,
sending him onto his seat which started rolling away from the desk, with Fawn
sprawled in it. It bumped into the wall
behind and stopped.
“What were you doing, Doctor?” Rochester
asked, rounding the desk and walking the few feet separating him from Fawn.
"Up to some dirty tricks?"
Half-stunned by the slap, Fawn shook his
head. He could feel a salty taste in
his mouth. Grunting, he tested his mouth with his hand; Rochester had split his
lower lip. He glared furiously as the
man glanced at the computer’s empty screen, and pressed the button to power it
up. Almost without thinking much about
it, his left hand slid into his overall pocket, in search of an handkerchief to
wipe the blood from the corner of his lips.
His fingers came into contact with a cold, metallic handle. He froze instantly, and kept his hand in his
pocket, trying to look inconspicuous.
“Not as dirty as your own Mysteron
tricks,” he answered Rochester acerbically.
“Or don’t you like it that we fight back?”
“On the contrary – we like it very
much.” Leaving the computer, Rochester
turned his complete attention to Fawn and slowly drew his gun; the doctor
became suddenly alert and froze on his seat as the man approached even closer
to him. “It makes it much more
interesting to kill you.”
Fawn’s jaws clenched. His fist closed around the object in his
pocket, attempting to surreptitiously get it out, and wondering if he would
have time to use it. If he could only
goad Rochester to come sufficiently close…
“I knew it. You are only sadistic, murdering scum,” he replied
defiantly. “Interplanetary or not –
you’re like any other scum in existence.”
Rochester smiled evilly, playing
distractedly with his gun. “Oh, but
dear Doctor, you don’t know how wrong you are…” Rochester cackled, and raised
his gun, pointing it directly at Fawn’s heart.
“Too bad you’ll die before learning the truth...”
Rochester was nearly at point-blank
range; he would not miss at this distance. Fawn’s heartbeat increased; he felt for certain that his time was up,
and that he would not have the opportunity to defend himself; he could even see
Rochester’s finger gently caress the trigger; in a second, he would pull it.
But then, right when he thought that he would die, he heard a dull
thudding sound and saw Rochester shuddering and then making a further step
closer. Now or never, Fawn
thought, not even questioning himself on what was happening exactly, only
realising that Rochester was just within his reach. He would not have another chance. His hand flew out of his pocket faster than he thought it could
ever be possible for him and he struck – driving the sharp end of the letter
opener Blue had left him as deep as he could into the man’s chest. He knew exactly where to strike, right under
the ribcage, to reach the heart.
Rochester grunted in pain, and then his
eyes widened and glazed over, before he slowly folded up and fell to his knees
– revealing behind him, to the eyes of the amazed Doctor Fawn, a petite figure, standing at the ready, and
watching him with attentive and cautious eyes, a large electric torch in her
right hand. Fawn gasped in surprise, as
the already dead Rochester fell face first and his brow banged against the edge
of the desk, before his body sprawled to the floor.
“Harmony!” Fawn whispered in
disbelief. “It can’t be…”
Quickly, Harmony closed the door behind
her and approached him, stepping over the fallen Rochester, a smile of relief
on her lips. “Hello, Doctor… I am glad
to see I arrived in time.”
* * *
Blue and Rhapsody had followed Captain
Scarlet beyond the limits of the gardens, and into another section of the
Walhall’s grounds. They were
approaching a small field just outside the palace’s walls, where they first
heard sounds of battle – metal clanging against metal and grunts of effort. They exchanged glances of worry as they
neared a small group of people, surrounding two combatants and watching the
swordfight with interest. Amongst them
Blue and Rhapsody easily recognized Symphony, Captain Grey and Captain
Magenta. As for the two fighters, there
was no mistake about who they were:
the tall body of Captain Ochre – his face framed by his unusual
flamboyant hair and beard – and the petite and dark form of Melody Angel were
easily recognizable in this setting.
“Our brother bragged earlier that he will
win his Valkyrie by winning her heart,” Scarlet said with a sigh, as he shook
his head in a daunted way. “’Twould
seem the best way to do that is still by fighting with her.”
“They’ll hurt each other with those swords,” Rhapsody reflected,
nevertheless watching with fascination as her two friends and colleagues
exchanged blow after blow. “We should
stop them…”
“My lady,” Scarlet said, laughing with
amusement, “Even I would not put myself between these two during their
courtship.”
“You call that ‘courtship’?” an
incredulous Blue repeated.
“Of course it is, husband.” Symphony had left her position next to
Magenta to run to Blue and lock her arm around his, steering him towards the
fight. “Is it not how we did it
ourselves?”
“If you say so,” Blue mumbled, without
committing himself.
He barely took note of Scarlet, standing
between him and Rhapsody, and suddenly encircling the young woman’s shoulder
with his arm – in an almost protective – or possessive? – gesture. “Beside,” Scarlet remarked with a grin, “I
can safely say we do not need to fear for the girl’s safety. Thor is not using his hammer… it is not as
if he could hurt her seriously.”
Melody, in the middle of her fight,
obviously heard him well enough to take umbrage at his remark. “Aye, Lord Balder,” she said between two
deep breaths, as she parried off a rather violent blow from Ochre’s sword. “But even with his hammer, I could
still seriously hurt him.”
Ochre was against her the next second,
their swords and eyes locking as they tussled; he was much heavier than she and
was obviously intended at using that advantage to push her back, nearly bending
her back to the breaking point.
“This is the closest our bodies ever
were, my Lady Sif,” Ochre whispered with a mocking grin. “Even counting our wedding night.”
She clenched her teeth, eyes glaring and
stepped aside quickly, unlocking the swords.
Ochre fell face first onto the
grass.
“Need I remind you, Lord Thor, that there
was NO wedding night?” Melody savagely
drove her sword into the ground, barely an inch away from Ochre’s head. She glared defiantly at him. “Not last night, nor any night before – and
you will have to do better than that if you wish for it to ever happen!” That said, she turned on her heels, head
held proudly high, and left the field,
with long, furious strides – her departure followed by Ochre’s loud
laughing. Scarlet stepped forward to
help him to his feet.
“She’s furious,” Rhapsody noted.
“Obviously,” Blue concurred. He was beginning to wonder if this adventure
in the land of the Vikings would not be transformed into something much deeper
between Ochre and Melody when they came back to reality. Sparks were literally
flying between these two.
“What a woman,” Ochre said, brushing the
grass off his clothes and smiling with satisfaction. “Is it a wonder I love her so?”
“Be careful that she does not plunge a
dagger into your heart while you sleep,” Scarlet retorted, the smile on his
face removing the seriousness of his words.
“You might love her, but I am not that sure she does love you.”
“In fact, I am sure she does not,”
Magenta remarked stoically.
“You two know nothing of her true
feelings,” Ochre answered obstinately.
“She is warming to me.”
“How can you tell, Prince Thor?” Grey
asked, with a brow raised in skepticism.
“She has accepted my invitation for a
hunt, this afternoon,” Ochre victoriously proclaimed.
Scarlet slowly nodded his head. “You are sure you want to hand her a bow,
brother? ’Twould seem like a dangerous
move to me…”
Ochre shrugged dismissively, not deigning
to answer.
From an opening in the stone wall,
Lieutenant Green appeared and saluted them formally, hitting his chest with his
clenched fist. “Hail, my princes,” he
said.
“Brave Heimdall, what brings you here?”
Scarlet asked, approaching him.
“Lord Vali has returned from the northern
borders and requests permission to meet with our princes – and their
ladies. Before undertaking his new
mission.”
“Aye.
That would be only fair that a member of the royal lineage of Aesgard
should meet the royal princesses of Vanaheim,” Scarlet agreed. “Where is Lord Vali?”
“Right here, my prince.” Green stepped aside and motioned to someone
standing in the shadows behind him to approach. All eyes were riveted on the new arrival who advanced into the
sunlight.
Blue tensed suddenly, and he heard the
faint gasp of Rhapsody, who was only a couple of feet away from him. Both felt the same sensation of shock as
they recognized who ‘Lord Vali’ actually was.
Before them, the man clad in the same
Viking attire as the others, his face half-covered with a shaggy mustache and a
scar across his right cheek…
… was Lieutenant Burgundy.
“Is it really you… or are
you a Mysteron agent?”
Doctor Fawn was scrutinising Harmony with suspicious eyes. The petite woman was crouched in front of
Rochester, checking if he was really dead.
Reassured that it was the case, she got to her feet.
“So it is the Mysterons' doing, then,” she commented. “I
thought as much.”
She took a step forward; Fawn backed away, only to find himself
with his back to the wall.
“Keep away from me,” he warned, in a threatening tone.
She smiled, trying to appear reassuring.
“I don't blame you for being distrustful, Doctor,” she said
quietly.
“Damned right I am,” Fawn mumbled. “Burgundy and Bromwell told us you were – dead. That you
suffocated inside Angel One's cockpit once your oxygen ran out. And then you
showed up, very much alive and – apparently – saving my life. What am I to think?”
“I escaped,” she answered simply.
“Before I ran out of air. But it is an advantage if the Mysterons think
of me as dead.”
“How did you escape?”
Fawn asked suspiciously. “You
were trapped in the cockpit. As I
understand it, Burgundy blocked all commands.
You couldn't get out.”
“Or so he believed. I know
all there is about the Angel craft, Doctor.
All its specifications – all its security features. I knew how to bypass whatever jamming
features had been set, get the belly hatch open, and access the chute
beneath. I simply climbed down to safety
from there.”
“You
climbed down to the Amber Room?” Fawn
asked with a doubtful frown.
Harmony
chuckled. “I didn't dare go that far. I realised that, under the circumstances,
the Amber Room might be under surveillance.” She paused for a moment. “I used the first maintenance hatch I
found,” she explained. “It's a good thing I am so small. I ended up in the repair bay. From there I made my way through the
corridors, avoiding cameras and security systems.” She nodded slowly. “It was Burgundy's doing then? I knew that could only be done from the
Control Room… So it was during his
shift he did it – after the Mysterons took control of him. I understand now.”
“Right,” Fawn said gloomily.
“You would say that now.
How am I to know it's not all an act?”
“It is really me. I can
assure you, I am not a Mysteron agent.”
Seeing that Fawn still seemed wary of her, she pointed to Rochester,
lying at her feet. “Didn't I just save
you from him, and kill him in the process?”
“Uh-uh,” a still doubtful Fawn retorted. “With Mysterons, that
doesn't prove anything. How did
you get here, avoiding detection? All
surveillance cameras are under enemy control.”
Harmony sighed. “I played
hide and seek with every camera and security device I knew of – to avoid being
spotted. I am very good at that.”
“So you say,” Fawn replied harshly. “I still don’t believe you.”
She tilted her head to one side, thinking. “Isn't there a way for me to prove to
you that I am the real me? Isn't there an X-ray machine we can use that will show
you I'm still human?”
“X-rays are not commonly used these days, you know that. Although we still use the term now and then,
out of habit. No, we…” Fawn suddenly
stopped in the middle of his diatribe as something occurred to him. He slapped his forehead with his open
palm. “God, I must be either tired or
very upset to have forgotten about that.”
He rounded his desk – managing to keep clear of Harmony – and strode to
his cabinet, fishing the key out of his pocket. He unlocked it, mumbling against his own foolishness, and opened
the door, under the curious eyes of the Angel pilot standing behind him.
He produced a medium-sized, red device, hanging from a strap that
he put around his neck before turning to Harmony. She needed only a glance to know what this thing was and what he
was doing.
“If I had remembered about it sooner, maybe I could have avoided
Captain Blue injuring me,” Fawn mumbled.
“Pardon me?” Harmony inquired, rather surprised to hear that
Captain Blue would hurt the good doctor.
Unless he was a Mysteron himself, of course… Fawn simply shrugged at her question. He pointed the detector in her direction; she didn't move when he
pressed the command button.
It didn't take long for a picture to pop up from the top of the
machine; still keeping an eye on Harmony, Fawn took it and checked it. Harmony saw a smile slowly spreading on his
lips.
“So you believe me now?” she asked, finally approaching him.
“I'm sorry if I was suspicious, Harmony,” Fawn apologised, putting
the Mysteron detector on the desk. “But
with the Mysterons, you know that we can't take anything – anyone – for
granted. So when we were told you
died…”
“There is no need to apologise, Doctor.” She smiled kindly. “It
was perfectly understandable that you should have doubts about me. Considering
you were surrounded by Mysterons agents who were keeping you prisoner. Doctor, I wish to understand… How has this happened? While trekking across Cloudbase, I only
found people unconscious – everywhere.
Then I saw a guard awake, and followed him through here and…” She stopped, suddenly noticing that Fawn
didn't seem to be listening to her at all; instead, he was looking at the
picture he was holding in his hand, brow furrowed in deep absorption. “Is something wrong?” she asked a little
warily. “Didn't I just…”
“Nothing's wrong with you, Harmony,” he reassured her quickly with
a shake of his head. “That is… if this detector isn't defective… which I
suspect isn't the case,” he mused, lowering the picture and glancing at the
detector sitting on his desk, the frown deepening on his brow.
“What do you mean, Doctor?” a curious and slightly confused
Harmony asked.
In answer, Fawn shook his head and handed her the picture. She took it and looked at it, still
wondering what he was babbling about.
The picture – the proof that she wasn't a Mysteron agent – showed
the X-ray image of herself standing in front of the office door. It was almost a full-frame shot, and at
first, Harmony couldn't see exactly what Fawn had found wrong with it.
She suddenly opened her eyes wide with astonishment when she
realised what it was.
In
the picture, just behind the X-ray of herself, she could see the body of
Rochester slumped on the floor…
… showing an X-ray image just like herself.
She turned around, looking at the man lying dead on the floor
behind her, looked back at the picture as if to make sure it was the same, and
stared at him again.
“That's impossible,” she murmured, as her mind registered the
information – and the full extent of what it meant.
“On the contrary, it's quite possible,” Fawn declared, compelling
her to turn her attention to him. He
was leaning against his desk, and was also looking thoughtfully in the
direction of the dead body. “How else
could the Mysterons actually be able to take over Cloudbase – if not with the
help of at least one human agent?”
* * *
“What the devil is he doing here?”
Rhapsody Angel, standing by his side, had hissed between her teeth
the same question Captain Blue was asking himself. They were both watching warily as Ochre and Scarlet were walking
toward the newcomer to welcome him. In
the true spirit of his character, Burgundy bowed in front of them, before they
clasped hands.
“You want to bet he’s here to make sure I play the game as I’m
supposed to play it, and kill Scarlet?” Blue answered in a murmur.
“I’m not betting,” she answered quickly, in the same fashion.
“Because I’m fairly sure you’re right.
It wasn’t enough we had to be wary of Captain Black,” she added,
addressing a venomous glare at the approaching Burgundy, “now we have him to
contend with as well.”
“Don’t worry,” Blue replied.
“Whatever his plans are, there is nothing he can do that will make me do
what his masters want. I can assure you
of that.”
“You are right to
be suspicious of the Lord Vali, my prince.”
The voice suddenly raised on Blue’s right nearly made him jump. He turned in that direction. Symphony was standing there, obviously
having just come back to his side. Blue
wondered how much she had heard of his conversation with Rhapsody.
Obviously not enough to make her suspicious he might be losing his
mind – like the night before – as she continued, nodding in Vali’s direction,
“If I remember correctly, this is the man who came searching for you in
Vanaheim, after the incident at the pass of Svartalf, is it not? And according to what you told me, his was
the strongest voice against the union of our two peoples…”
“Er…” To tell the truth,
Blue didn’t know how to answer this. He
was mystified. Was this already part of
the plot on which the game was based, or had the Mysterons suddenly changed the
rules to fit their plans?
“Nay, Lady Iduna,” the voice of Grey suddenly said from
behind. He too had approached the
group, and was looking with suspicion in Burgundy’s direction. “Lord Vali was against the union of our two
peoples only because he could not be betrothed to a Valkyrie
himself…” He smiled cautiously, “…
Namely, yourself.”
“Pfah!” Symphony replied with disdain. “Even if I was not already married, this
so-called ‘prince’ Vali would not even stand a chance!” She touched Blue’s forearm lightly. “Keep a cautious eye on him, husband. He might hold a grudge against you.”
“No
kidding,” Blue muttered under his breath.
He made a mental note to ask Doctor Fawn to look up Vali’s name, and see
what part he played in the Aesgard legends. He couldn’t recall having seen it
anywhere. Somehow, he had the
impression that it could be vital information, in view of the situation.
Escorted
by both Scarlet and Ochre, with Green following close behind, Burgundy was coming in their direction. Blue tensed suddenly, ready for anything;
but the newcomer simply stopped a mere three steps in front of him and bowed
slightly.
“Salutations
to you, Prince Hodur,” he said courteously – and, Blue noted, in a lilting
accent. “And may I offer you my
sincerest congratulations to you and your spouse, the fair Lady Iduna?” He only offered a glance in Symphony’s
direction, but she turned her eyes away, feigning to ignore him. Blue responded to the bow with a curt nod of
his own. He was perplexed; Burgundy had
the same accent as all the others. Of
all the people playing the game, he had noticed that only Rhapsody and himself
didn’t share that accent; he had gathered that it was because, unlike the
others, they were not really under the influence of the game and remembered who
they were. He didn’t know about Black –
he hadn’t had the chance to hear him at all in this setting.
But
exactly what was the deal with Burgundy/Vali right now?
“And
this is, I believe, the Lady Nanna?” Burgundy took Rhapsody’s hand before she
could even react.
“My
wife, Lord Vali,” Scarlet presented.
“A
fitting lady for you, my prince.”
Burgundy brought Rhapsody’s hand to his lips. She made an effort not to shiver when he lightly touched her
fingers.
His
lips… are so cold…
She
removed her hand, swiftly enough to make him understand that she wasn’t letting
herself be impressed nor deceived by his amiable behaviour. She thought she saw a bright glow in
Scarlet’s eyes, if ever so briefly.
‘Vali’ straightened up.
“Please
accept my apologies, my princes,” Burgundy continued nonchalantly, “for having
missed the ceremony last night. But as
you know well, I was busy patrolling the Northern border of our Kingdom.”
“Did
those dogs of Svartalfheim cause you any trouble, Lord Vali?” Scarlet asked in
a detached enough tone.
“Nay,
my prince, except for some isolated bands of brigands, they are keeping rather
quiet. ‘Twould seem that Svartalfheim
men are very cautious now, since their encounter with the combined forces of
Prince Hodur’s troops – and those of
Lady Iduna.”
“Need
we more proof that the alliance between our peoples’ forces is for the best,
then, Lord Vali?” Grey asked. “As you may recall, you were not entirely in
agreement with this decision.”
“I
can admit my mistakes, Lord Tyr,” Burgundy answered suavely. “And I should never doubt our Lord Odin’s
decisions. He is, after all, usually
right.”
“He
is always right,” Ochre corrected with assurance.
“However,
let us not be over-confident, my brother,” Scarlet remarked. “This alliance does not mean we are totally
safe from our enemies. On the
contrary, now they will feel more
threatened than before – and they will take whatever steps they deem necessary
to protect themselves… and eventually destroy us.” With a twinkle in his eyes, he drew his sword. “That is why we must be vigilant and keep
our skills sharp. Your sword, Lord
Vali!”
A
distraught Captain Blue watched as a faint, cruel smile spread across
Burgundy's lips and he slowly drew his sword.
A quick glance at Rhapsody's suddenly ashen face told him she shared his
concern. What if this was it,
then? What if Burgundy himself was set
to kill Scarlet in this world – would the indestructible man survive in the
real one this time? Can I take the
chance? Blue wondered. Almost
without thinking, he took one step forward…
Only to see Burgundy turning to him and throwing him his sword, handle
first. A surprised Blue clumsily caught the weapon, and just avoided being
touched by the blade.
“It
would seem, Lord Balder,” Burgundy said quietly, “that your brother would like
to take my place and duel with you.”
“Hey!”
Blue protested, glaring angrily at Burgundy.
“I never…”
“Aye,
Vali,” Scarlet said with a smile, not hearing Blue's objection. “Lord Hodur does need training. We do not want his skill and reflexes to
rust so he becomes easy prey for the heathens.
Guard yourself, brother!”
Scarlet
lunged forward, attacking Blue with his sword.
Taken by surprise again, this time by the suddenness of the assault,
Blue only had time to parry. Blade
loudly clashed against blade, only a
inch away from Blue's face. It was a
good thing he had good reflexes, or he would, at the very least, have received
a scarring blow.
He
forcibly pushed Scarlet's sword – and Scarlet at the same time – away from him,
his face ashen with anger. “That was
NOT funny!”
“Good
reflexes, my brother,” Scarlet retorted, smirking with obvious
satisfaction. Not far from him,
Burgundy was also sneering in a similar fashion, but his smile had something
sinister to it. “Would you care to
continue the joust?”
“That's
enough!” Just as Scarlet was preparing
to reiterate his attack, Rhapsody stepped forward and put herself in front of
Blue. Symphony did the same, only a second
or two later; the two women were now standing between both men, glaring
meaningfully at Scarlet.
“Just what
the HELL do you think you are doing?”
Rhapsody snapped at him. “You know as well as we do that he's not in top
shape!”
“It is a good
thing that he has indeed good reflexes,” Symphony said in turn. “You could have hurt him seriously.”
Scarlet frowned, his
smile fading instantly; there was
exasperation in his features – as well as obvious displeasure – at the girls'
untimely intervention. He lowered his
sword.
“Do you honestly believe
that I would willingly hurt him?” he asked in a rather cold tone. He then addressed a reproachful glance at
Rhapsody. “That the Lady Iduna would
seek to protect her man is to be expected, but that you, my wife, would
also do the same…”
“I only wanted to stop
you making a grave mistake,” Rhapsody cut in quickly.
“Do you think me
careless enough to put my own brother's life in danger? I know my own strength and skills, woman.”
“But you’ve obviously
lost sight of his,” Rhapsody reiterated obstinately. “He still needs time to
recover…”
“He also needs to get
back into shape to face the battles ahead!
The sooner, the better.” Scarlet
glared at Rhapsody and then at Blue.
“And I will have to add, my lady, that you seem to have
recovered enough fire for the both of you.
After all, you did shared
the same… harrowing… experience as my
brother in the Mountains. And I still
wonder… what exactly happened there.”
“We don’t remember,”
Rhapsody answered swiftly.
“Or so you keep saying,”
Scarlet replied dryly.
“We genuinely
don’t remember, Lord Balder,” Rhapsody repeated. “When we find out, we'll be sure to tell you.: She didn't like the underlying suspicion
she could hear in Scarlet's voice.
Scarlet narrowed his
eyes. “Will you?” he seethed in a low tone.
“Was there more to that journey than you are willing to let on, the both
of you?”
“What do you mean
exactly?” Blue asked abruptly.
“That is enough.” Ochre stepped in front of Scarlet and looked
him squarely in the eyes. “We do not
need these pitiful quarrels between us, brothers and sisters,” he said in a
poised and reasonable tone. “It would
give too much pleasure to our enemies, if they should see dissension amongst
us.”
Blue had to fight
himself not to open eyes wide with surprise.
Ochre… acting as the voice of
reason?!
Following the
remonstrance, Scarlet seemed to hesitate a second, before exhaling slowly and
deeply. He sheathed his sword, his eyes
still on Rhapsody. “Aye, brother Thor,
you are right,” he admitted. “There
should be no quarrels amongst us. He
grinned, addressing Blue. “But you will need training soon, Hodur. And if it reassures your lady – and mine – I promise I will go
easy on you…”
“Why should you be the
one to train him?” Rhapsody asked with
a frown.
“Is this worry I detect
in my wife's voice?” Scarlet answered
with a chuckle. He obviously wasn’t willing to say at whom he assumed this
concern was aimed, but it was easy to guess his inner thoughts. “Do not fear,
Lady Nanna… Who better than me to train
him, indeed? In his present state, if
he becomes clumsy with a sword, he might hurt me, accidentally. But I will be able to recover
without any trace of it left on my skin.
As you should know.”
Rhapsody blanched. Oh no…
Could this be how the Mysterons intended it to happen? She glared furiously at Burgundy who was
watching the scene quietly. By the smug
expression she could see on his face, she became more convinced than ever that
he had just that in mind, when he intentionally caused the altercation between
Scarlet and Blue – by handing that sword to the latter.
The manipulative
bastard… so full of himself…
“Lord Vali should go
about his business, my brothers,” Scarlet then said – and Rhapsody wondered if
he had noticed the uneasiness she was presently experiencing with the man in
question. “You were mandated to keep an
eye on Loki, Lord Vali. I trust you
will be up to the task?”
“Of course, Prince
Balder,” Burgundy confirmed obsequiously.
“That is, as soon as we find out where Lord Loki
has disappeared to.”
“Disappeared?” Blue asked with a concerned frown.
“Aye, my prince,” Green
confirmed with a brief nod. “It would
appear that the villain is nowhere to be found at the moment. My warriors are still searching for him.”
“Is it not
proof enough that Loki is indeed guilty of wrongdoing?” Scarlet noted, not without dissatisfaction.
“I'm afraid this will
not be proof enough for our sire, Odin,” Ochre answered.
Scarlet shrugged
dismissively. “Nevertheless, it is
obvious to my mind that Loki is guilty.
I need but one excuse to run him through with my sword and be done with
him once and for all.”
“But the prophecy…”
started Green.
“… Is nothing but old
maids' gossip,” Scarlet interrupted
him. “Spread by Loki himself to
preserve his miserable life from our liege's righteous justice. You will join the search, Lord Vali, and
when you find Loki, you will watch his every move.”
“My intentions exactly,
my Prince,” Burgundy replied with a slight bow.
“We will fall on him
like hawks, the moment we have confirmation of his malevolence,” Scarlet pursued with a sinister glow in his
blue eyes. “And then, nothing, not
Odin's protection, nor the so-called Prophecy, will stay my hand. This, I vow to you. Loki will finally meet his well-deserved
fate.”
* * *
“Harmony is alive? That’s wonderful news!”
Not long after everyone
had departed the field, Blue had returned to his chamber. He had watched warily as Burgundy left with
Green, to – as he pretended – join in the search for the missing Loki. Rhapsody had left with Scarlet, and
Symphony had joined both Magenta and Grey, while Ochre announced that he had to
meet with ‘his wife’ in that hunt invitation that he had mentioned earlier. That had left Blue to himself, with the
opportunity to contact Doctor Fawn on Cloudbase. His chamber seemed to offer the best privacy – and safety – to do
so.
As soon as he had
contact with Fawn, he reported Burgundy's presence in the fantasy world, and
expressed his concern at what the Mysterons’ intentions might be from
there. Then he heard the doctor's news
about Harmony, and his first reaction was one of relief and joy.
Then, of doubts.
“You're sure she's not a
Mysteron?” he asked, stopping his pacing in the middle of the room.
“Positive. I can confirm one hundred percent that she
is not a Mysteron. She's our same, good
old Harmony. Don't ever tell her I said
that. She might not appreciate being
called ‘old’.”
“Rhapsody will be so
pleased to hear she’s okay,” Blue pursued.
“She was very upset when I told her that Harmony was dead…” He stopped suddenly, realising what the
doctor had just said. “Wait, Doctor… She's not with you at the moment?”
“Actually… no. She’s on a mission right now.”
Fawn explained the
latest developments; how Harmony had come into his office just in time to save
his life, after having escaped from Angel One’s cockpit and the death planned
for her by Burgundy. Then he told of
his earlier findings on his computer, just before he had been interrupted by
Rochester. He didn’t mention his
discovery of Rochester being human; that would only serve to raise more
questions, to which none of them had answers yet; they had little enough time
to lose as it was right now. There
would be time enough to discuss it later on, when the situation was resolved.
“As soon as I mentioned
that door and that it might hide Scarlet behind it, Harmony volunteered to
check it out. She left a few minutes
ago.”
“I hope she’ll be
careful,” Blue murmured. “We wouldn’t
want to lose her now that we found her alive and well.”
“Don’t worry about
Harmony,” Fawn reassured him. “If there’s anyone who can successfully
pull off a mission like this, it’s certainly her. She’s like a shadow, that girl.
With her Ninja-like skills, she’ll be able to avoid detection and find
out what – or who – is behind that door.”
“You don’t fool me,
Doctor. I know you must be as concerned
about her as I am.”
“I try not to think
about my worries too much, Captain. Or
I wouldn’t be able to do anything at all.”
“Good point. Do you know where that room is, Doctor?”
“I had trouble finding
it again, after we… dealt with Rochester.
Harmony and I lost precious minutes going through the surveillance
cameras again… But we did find it,
eventually. If I’m not mistaken, that
door is in the R&D department.
Probably one of the laboratories there.
It was rather difficult to say.
You see, although I’ve been able to hijack the camera system, I failed
to also access the program needed to tell me which camera I’m looking through.”
“R&D?” Blue repeated with a puzzled frown. “Why would they keep Scarlet there?”
“If indeed he’s there…” Fawn answered
gloomily. “But if he is… I shudder
to think what they could have done to him in such a place. There’s too many
instruments there they could use to harm him – indestructible though he might
be.”
“Doc, he must be alive,”
Blue said softly. “Or he wouldn’t be here…
in this fantasy world.”
“Yes… We must stay positive, you’re right. Anyway, we’ll soon know. Harmony has a headset communicator. She’ll contact me with the results of her
investigation – as soon as she has them.”
“Meanwhile, we have to
concentrate on the new problem we have here,” Blue continued. “Mainly, Burgundy’s presence. It would seem he wants to take a more
active role in this dangerous game. Despite the fact that he… talks… like the
others and appears to be as completely overcome by his character as the
others, I suspect he’s fully aware of who he really is. I’m sure it’s all an act.”
“Yes – he would need
to be in total control of himself in order to carry out his mission,” Fawn
agreed.
“This name he took,
Vali… it isn’t familiar to me. Can you look it up, Doc?”
“I’m just checking as
we’re talking, Captain… Fortunately, I
don’t need Worldnet for that. Cloudbase
has a rather extensive library on our Intranet. It won’t be long now…
Here it is…”
There was a short pause,
during which Blue imagined that Fawn was reading the information he had
discovered. When he found that the
doctor wasn’t coming back fast enough to his taste, Blue called him back:
“Doc? Doctor Fawn, did you find something?”
“Yes, I did,” the voice of
Fawn answered, with a sombre note to it.
“Did you say that Burgundy seemed to want to take a more active
role? Boy, you don’t know how right you
were!”
“So?” Blue asked impatiently. “Who is this Vali character?”
“Well, according to
legends… it seems that he killed Hodur.”
Blue rolled his
eyes. “Oh, great…”
“… To avenge the death of Balder,” Fawn added.
“Wonderful,” Blue
mumbled. “So if I understand his
strategy correctly, he’ll make sure I kill Scarlet, then will kill me
afterwards.”
“That might be his plan,
yes,” Fawn confirmed. “Whether
it is or not, I suggest you be extra-wary of him, Captain Blue.”
“Unnecessary advice,
Doctor. I already am. Officially, he’s here to ‘keep an eye on
Loki’. But I’m betting he’ll rather
join forces with him and stab us in the back.
I’m keeping my eyes wide open.
Rhapsody too. Have you found
anything on that Prophecy concerning Loki?”
“Not yet. But I’m working on it.”
“”We are
too,” a thoughtful Blue said. “We’re just hoping that we will find out
before it’s too late.” He paused a
second. “We’d better end this
communication, now.”
“Agreed. I’ll contact you shortly with more news.”
“S.I.G. The same here, Doc. Good luck and be careful, please.”
“To whom are you
talking, brother?”
Blue had just cut
contact with Fawn when the voice suddenly rang out behind him; he nearly jumped
out of his skin, and turned on his heel.
The door was wide open; Captain Scarlet was standing in the doorway
leading into his chamber. He must
have opened that door very quietly, Blue mused.
“Balder… I didn’t hear
you come in,” Blue said, evading the awkward question.
“Obviously.” Scarlet entered, and approached slowly. “So…
to whom were you talking, just now?“
“Nobody, of course… Do you see anyone but me here?” Blue gestured around to emphasize his
point. He received nothing more than a
doubtful glance from Scarlet. He
cleared his throat. “I was just…
wondering out loud about… the Prophecy… you know?”
“The Prophecy,” Scarlet
repeated, slowly nodding his head.
“Yes, I heard you say the word.
Do not tell me you are worrying about that nonsense also?”
“Actually…” Blue continued a little awkwardly, “I was… wondering about… exactly what it means?”
“What?” Scarlet scoffed. “Either you are not being serious, brother, or you lost more than
we suspected in your journey to the Icy Mountains!”
“And what if
I did?” Blue asked with a raised brow.
Scarlet
sighed, and lowered his head. “You are
wasting my time with trivialities, brother,” he muttered. “What are you hiding from me? Or is it that you are trying to avoid the
question that you know will soon come from me?”
“Pardon me?”
Blue was genuinely surprised by the remark.
Scarlet raised his head, looking at him with
gleaming eyes. “Where is she, Hodur?”
he asked in a low tone.
Blue frowned. “Where’s who?”
“My wife. The lady Nanna,” Scarlet explained,
approaching closer.
“Was she not with you?”
Blue asked. “I seem to remember you left the field together…”
“Aye. We left together. But we quarrelled and we departed from each other’s company. Now
I cannot find her anywhere. So I
thought she had come to see you.”
“What did you quarrel
about?” Blue stopped and did a double
take, and his frown deepened, at the realisation of Scarlet’s second statement.
“Why did you think she would come to see me?”
“The answer to both your
questions is the same, Hodur,” Scarlet said meaningfully. “And I should think it would be obvious to
you.”
He stopped in front of
Blue, only a foot away from him, and glared coldly at him.
“I am not as foolish as you imagine,” he said
in a hard tone. “And neither am I
blind…” Fast as lightning, his hand
grabbed Blue’s left wrist and lifted his hand to eye-level. “This ring, brother,” he said between his
teeth. “My wife is wearing the
very same. Did you exchange tokens, the
both of you? While you were alone in the Icy Mountains?”
“WHAT are you talking
about?” Blue lashed out, roughly removing his hand from Scarlet’s grip.
“You know very well what
I mean,” Scarlet replied brusquely.
“What did happen to the pair of you in those mountains, Hodur? Why did you go after the Valkyrie in the
first place? I remember you insisted
on going in my stead – when I offered myself. What was it, brother? One Valkyrie princess was not enough for
you? You had to put two of them in your bed?”
“Are you totally crazy?”
Blue exclaimed, the accusation finally sinking in.
“I think not!” Scarlet
pointed an accusing finger at him. “You
claim you do not remember what
happened in the mountains. That is rather convenient… Or are you really telling the truth? I would not know for sure – but what I do know is that you seem
to perfectly remember your feelings for a woman who is now your brother’s wife.”
“You ARE crazy!” Blue
snapped back. “I do not harbour such
feelings for D… for Nanna. How can you imagine
such a thing?”
“I should have seen it
before,” Scarlet said between his teeth, without hearing him out. “I had it before my eyes… I was warned, but
I chose not to listen.”
“Who warned you?”
Blue demanded suspiciously.
“That is enough, Hodur!”
Scarlet lashed out. He literally sprang
at Blue, before the latter could react, and roughly took him by the collar of
his tunic. Blue found himself staring
into his friend’s furious face. “You
WILL tell me where my wife is!”
“I don’t know where she
is!” Blue repeated.
“You are lying!” Scarlet
accused, raging. “You will leave her
alone from this moment on, brother, or I swear it to you, I will make sure you will!”
“Now this is enough,”
Blue said warningly. “Stop this,
please. I don’t want to hurt you,
but...”
“You, hurt
me?” Scarlet cackled, a cruel smile
playing on his lips. “Brother, if you
think you can best me, you are sadly mistaken.” He pushed Blue away, with such force that the blond man stumbled
and had to struggle to stay on his feet.
Scarlet started walking around him, pointing a warning finger at
him. “Now, for the last time… Where is
my wife?”
“For the last time – I
don’t know! Listen, if you can’t find
her, maybe there are reasons for you to worry.
We have to join forces to find her…”
“I am worried,” Scarlet
growled, interrupting him. “But, by
Ymir’s blood, I will be damned to Hela’s domain, if ever I join with you to
search for my wife, treacherous brother!”
“Paul, please, make
sense! How can you believe a word you
say?” Blue almost implored, calling on
his friend’s real name in the hope of making him listen. It wasn’t to be the case, unfortunately; he
watched with alarm as Scarlet drew his sword, seemingly ignoring his pleading.
“You leave me little
choice, Hodur,” Scarlet said, playing with the sword and slowly advancing on
Blue who was backing away as many steps.
“Mark my words, you will tell me where you hid my wife, or I swear to
you, I will slice the flesh from your…”
As Scarlet was nearly on
Blue, he was alerted by a faint sound behind him and turned quickly on his heel
– not quickly enough, as a huge earthenware jar came crashing right onto his
head; it just missed his face as, by a last reflex, he turned his head the
other way to avoid it. The blow was
strong enough to knock him out almost instantly, while the jar shattered with a
loud crash; he fell down on the floor, with a loud huff and sprawled there,
unconscious.
Symphony Angel, standing
over him, drew the dagger at her belt, her eyes glaring dangerously. Her intentions were obvious. Blue literally jumped over the prone body and caught her
wrist. “No!” She looked up to him, eyes still flashing, but also inquiring what
he was doing now. He nodded towards the
door. “Close it,” he ordered
hurriedly. “Before someone comes.”
She agreed with a nod of
her own and strode to the door; she looked outside to make sure there was
no-one around and pushed the door closed, before coming back to Blue; the
latter had crouched over Scarlet, and was checking him over. There were cuts on the left side of his
face, and a huge bump was starting to form under the hairline, but his vitals
were strong. Blue drew a sigh of
relief.
“Thank God, he’s okay,”
he murmured.
“You do not want him
dead?” Symphony asked, standing over them.
“No, I do not want
that,” Blue said patiently, raising his eyes to meet hers. “Why would I want to kill him?”
“Did he not want to kill
you himself?” Symphony asked with a perplexed frown. “I came just in time to hear his accusations…”
“I hope you trust they
were not true?” Blue asked, eyeing the
dagger. He did remember the jealousy
scene of the previous night and wasn’t eager to repeat it right now.
“I do not know… ‘Less you swear it to me.”
Blue sighed. “I swear to you there is nothing between
Nanna and me, and that I love only you.”
He paused. “When this is all
over, I will prove it to you,” he added, almost in an undertone.
She seemed satisfied with
the answer. “Then I believe you.”
“Thank you,” Blue sighed
again.
“What came over your
crazy brother, then?”
“He’s not crazy,” Blue
muttered, “he’s been manipulated. We
all were.” He stroked the ring on his
finger, thoughtfully. “They must have
known. They knew it would give cause
for Balder to suspect us. They were
counting on it sending him off at the deep end, and that it would cause a
conflict between us. A conflict that
might end with his death – and the coming of Ragnarok.”
“I do not understand
most of your words,” Symphony said softly.
“But I do understand, however, that there is conspiracy going on. Our enemies seek to destroy you.”
“Us,” Blue retorted, getting to his feet. “All of us, Iduna. We're all in danger.” He turned to her. “Do you know how to make knots?”
Her eyes flashed. “I am a Valkyrie. I myself tame the horses I ride, dear husband. I should know how to restrain them, do you
not think?”
“Well, instead of a
horse, I want you to restrain him,” Blue said, pointing to Scarlet. “Securely.
And you’d better gag him too. He
may not be very happy when he comes to, and I would not want either for him to
attack you or give alert until I come back.”
“And where are you
going?” she enquired as he strode to
the door.
“To search for
Nanna. He said that he couldn't find
her anywhere. That worries me. I'm just hoping I can find her so she'll
help me make him see sense. Balder's
room is as good a place as any to start looking for her.”
“So I am to stay here
and watch over him?” Symphony
said. She nudged the still body lying
on the floor, with her foot. Scarlet
didn't make a move.
“I won't be long,” Blue
reassured her.
“And what if you cannot
find Nanna?”
Blue stood still, his
hand on the handle, puzzling over the question. He didn't answer it and simply shook his head. “Wait for me,” he demanded instead.
She grumbled her
acknowledgement but Blue didn't wait to hear if she had anything else to
say. He had opened the door to quickly
depart, taking great care to close it behind him.
* * *
When Doctor Fawn had told Harmony in detail exactly what was
happening on Cloudbase, and the others' predicament – and that only the doctor,
Captain Blue, Rhapsody – and now herself – were aware of what was going, the
young woman knew that it was her duty to join in her colleagues' attempt to
foil the Mysterons' evil plans. The
four of them were the only chance everyone onboard Cloudbase had of
surviving, using all their skills and wits, all their capacity and strength to
achieve what at the moment seemed like an impossible goal.
Captain Blue and Rhapsody were stuck in the fantasy world,
struggling to find a solution from that end, while Doctor Fawn, from behind his
computer, was desperately trying to find clues and information that would help
them – the two teams keeping contact with each other by an ingenious
communication device connected directly to the subconscious mind of both Blue
and Rhapsody. Harmony couldn't help but
smile at the doctor's cleverness in devising such a system. Truly, she
reflected, desperation could lead to miracles. When Fawn continued his tale
with his and Blue's suspicions concerning Captain Scarlet being the key to the
situation, and finally mentioned his discovery of a guarded door in what he
presumed was a section of the Research and Development department, she knew
exactly what she had to do.
She had to go and check what was behind that door.
With her particular skills, keeping out of view from the security
cameras didn't prove that difficult for Harmony Angel, despite Doctor Fawn's
assertion that she would not be able to constantly evade them. She had argued
that from the moment she had escaped Angel One's cockpit to enter Cloudbase, up
until the moment when she had finally found him, she had been skilful enough to
avoid them all. Of course, Fawn still
had objections – he claimed that she had simply been incredibly fortunate, and
repeating that feat a second time would be next to impossible – and too damned
dangerous for her to get caught, and even killed when discovered. That did not deflect Harmony's
resolution.
She took almost an hour to finally reach the R&D Department,
going through corridors which were otherwise unused except for maintenance
robots, slipping under cameras, hugging walls, and crawling, with all the
dexterity of a real Ninja master. She
addressed a silent prayer to her Japanese uncle Toshiro, her beloved sensei,
who, by his teachings, had patiently honed within her the skills she was so
expertly using today.
She was right at the corner beyond which Doctor Fawn expected the
suspicious door to be. Keeping close to the wall, she leaned her head round the
corner and checked, cautiously.
“Bingo,” she whispered, in emulation of her occidental friends.
She could see the door, about ten metres from where she was
standing, with the Spectrum guard – probably Mysteronised Spectrum guard –
standing before it, rigidly and vigilantly.
There was no way for her to get past him without being
apprehended, or him having time to alert his accomplices.
She leaned back into her corridor, pondering what next to do.
“Harmony?”
The voice from the small receiver in her ear was a murmur that she
alone could hear; she adjusted the tiny mic attached to it. “Hearing you loud and clear, Doctor,” she
answered in a whisper. “Go ahead.”
“Captain Blue just made contact with me from the fantasy
world,” Fawn told her.
“Are
there new developments there?” she enquired.
He quickly told her. She
sighed, closing her eyes. “I hope he
and Rhapsody will be careful of that traitor,” she murmured.
“He actually said the same about you when I mentioned your
mission,” Fawn replied. “I think I successfully reassured him that you’ll be doing
okay.”
“Without
showing your own concern, Doctor?” she said with a smile. “That might be quite a performance.”
“What is your present position?”
“I’m in a corridor, from where I can see the guard and the door,”
she explained.
“I can see him too, on the
camera. You won’t pass him that way,
I’m afraid.”
“I already figured that out, Doctor.”
Harmony looked around in the corridor, brow furrowed, looking for
a solution. Her eyes rose to the
ceiling and fell on the maintenance trap leading into the air vents and power
ducts. I wonder…
“Doctor, I may have found a way in,” she reported. “I can use the power ducts within the
ceiling and crawl my way over the guard and into the room, without him ever
suspecting a thing.”
“Harmony, will you actually be able to FIT in that narrow
conduit?” There
was doubt in the good doctor’s voice, and Harmony smiled.
“I am slim enough,” she answered quietly. “I’m sure I can squeeze in. If maintenance robots can, I can too.”
“You’ll be crawling amongst electricity cables, Harmony,” Fawn insisted. “Maintenance
robots are insulated, in case of electrical short-outs or bare wires. You, on the other hand, will be more
vulnerable. If you touch the wrong
cables, you could get a hefty shock.”
“I’m ready to run the risk.”
“Of course you are, Harmony.”
The doubt was still there, but there was now fondness as well in
Fawn’s tone. “It’ll be a tight fit,
but you’re the smallest of our Angels, and you probably are the only one who
would be able to do it.”
Harmony kept herself from chuckling. Any of the other Angels could have taken umbrage at the remark.
“I take it as the compliment it’s meant to be, Doctor.”
“Be very careful, please?”
“S.I.G.,” she murmured.
The
corridor in which she was standing was narrow enough for her to brace feet and
hands against opposite walls and heave herself toward the trap over her head. Then, wedging her body between the walls as
best she could, she used her hands to free the flap. It came easily, along with a cloud of dust that nearly made her
cough. So far, she had successfully
worked silently enough not to attract attention from the guard standing at his
door; it would have been embarrassing to alert him with something as silly as a
sneeze.
Pushing the flap inside the opening, she then slipped inside the
conduit. There was enough space for her
to turn around and explore her surroundings.
That direction, she reflected; she looked into the conduit
opening before her. She could see rows
of intricate cables and pipes of all sizes running all the way into the narrow
vent, and disappearing into the darkness beyond. This will indeed be a tight
fit, she acknowledged. She
mentally evaluated the position and distance of the room she was to enter. She sighed. This will be a long and harrowing venture…
Carefully,
she put back the flap onto the opening, to remove traces of her passage, and
started her progression into the semi-darkness, slithering amongst pipes and
cables, and holding her breath so not to inhale the sudden amount of dust that
assaulted her.
* * *
Captain Blue strode down
the corridor, looking over his shoulder to make sure that nobody was
around. Fate seemed to be with him and
he reached Balder's chamber without encountering anyone.
The door was wide open,
and Blue entered, feverishly looking around.
The large room was empty and the only movement in there came from the
wind blowing the curtains open.
“Dammit,
Rhapsody… where are you?” he mumbled
under his breath. “This is no time to play hide and seek…”
He walked to the windows
and looked outside to see if he couldn't see her in the garden. No such
luck, he thought with irritation.
He turned around, and his eyes were suddenly attracted by something
lying on the floor, beside the leg of the table.
It was a wooden stick,
one end of it charred and still smoking.
Puzzled, Blue approached, and crouched down to pick it up. Curious, he thought, coming to his
feet and looking towards the fireplace in the wall, a good ten feet away from
him. How could this have ended up
here?
Then he saw something
else, on the table next to which he was standing; weighted down by a heavy
jar. It seemed to be a piece of
yellowish paper… He lifted the jar and
picked up the paper.
There were black words
on it, and Blue realised that they had been hurriedly written with the
half-burnt stick he was holding. He
fully expected them to be runes of some sort – in this setting, it certainly
would not have been surprising! – but
he was rather perplexed to discover they were English words. He read.
His eyes opened wide.
“COME JOIN US
AT YGGDRASIL. ALONE.
OR THE WOMAN DIES
BLACK.”
“Oh no,” Blue murmured.
“No wonder Scarlet couldn't find her…”
He crumpled the paper in his hand. Damn. It's a good
thing he didn't find this paper as well.
He would have rushed to her rescue.
And right into a trap, Blue was sure of it. Whatever Yggdrasil might be, wherever it
was, he just knew that something bad was awaiting Scarlet there. They're
using Rhapsody as bait – they want Scarlet there for their plans to work… Blue was convinced now, more than ever, that
his friend was the key to end this game. Whether that key would save them all
or be their ultimate destruction only depended on who was holding it.
I sure as Hell won't tell him about this ultimatum, Blue reflected, glaring murderously at the ball of paper. I won't let him go and play the
Mysterons' hand.
But I simply cannot leave Rhapsody in the hands of that murderous
creep.
It's up to me now.
“Have you found something?”
The voice behind him made him jump and he turned around to see
Symphony standing in the doorway. She
closed the door behind her and walked towards him.
“What are you doing here?”
he asked her rather roughly.
“Didn't I tell you to stay in the other room?”
“And watch over Balder?
Yes you did, but since when do I blindly follow your orders, Hodur?”
“You never did,” Blue muttered.
She smiled thinly. “Do not
concern yourself for your brother. He's
well tied up, and will not be going anywhere.”
“That's perfect. Because
it's imperative that he should stay at the palace.” She gave him a look of inquiry and he explained: “Nanna has been abducted by Loki. He took her to Yggdrasil and set up a
meeting with Balder there.”
Symphony was obviously shocked by the news. “Ymir's Head,” she murmured. “What does he want with her?”
“Bait, of course. To
attract Balder into a trap. But in his
present state of mind, I doubt that Balder will be able to face danger as
efficiently as he should.”
“You mean he is too angry at the moment to think clearly,”
Symphony remarked. “With you.” She
nodded her understanding. “He might not
be careful enough if he goes against Loki and that could be a fatal encounter.”
“And he made it very clear that he doesn't want my help,” Blue
confirmed.
“But is he not invulnerable?”
“I’m not sure how invulnerable he is,” Blue said
thoughtfully. A suspicion was forming in his mind. He marked a pause, hesitating before asking the next
question. “Iduna,” he finally said, a
little hesitantly, and lowering his head.
“Do you know anything about the Prophecy regarding Loki?”
She gave him another curious look. “I know it is the reason why Lord Odin is so lenient toward him,”
she answered.
“Do you know exactly what it is all about?” Blue specified.
“You should know about it yourself, Hodur,” she remarked, with
obvious perplexity at his question.
“After all, this Prophecy comes from within your own people.”
“I
don’t have time to explain myself,” Blue cut in suddenly. “Let’s say I forgot about it during my…
misadventure in the Icy Mountains, okay?
Now, what is that Prophecy about?”
She sighed. “From what I heard, it came from the mouths of the Ice
Giants themselves,” she finally explained.
“What does it say?” Blue demanded again.
“‘Death will come by the evil
trickster, and by his death, the one who walked with the Giants in turn
will bring the end of all things…’” Symphony intoned. “I do not believe in it myself, but I think the Prophecy could not
be clearer…”
“The evil
trickster… Loki,” Blue said thoughtfully.
“Of course,
Loki,” Symphony said, lifting an inquiring brow. “Do you know any other person
whom this description fits like a glove?”
Blue seemed
thoughtful. “And what of the rest of
the Prophecy?” he murmured. “What if it wasn’t about Loki’s death? What if it was about someone else, to whom
Loki should bring death?”
“You are
thinking of Balder,” Symphony noted.
“This is all
clear now,” Blue muttered under his breath.
And fitting with what I know of the legend, yes… This is indeed Balder’s death that this
Prophecy announces. By Loki’s hand,
obviously.
And in the wake of his death, everything, and everyone, in Aesgard
and Vanaheim will be destroyed.
“So what are we to do?”
Symphony asked, seeing him so silent and thoughtful.
“I will be going after Loki myself.”
Symphony's eyes flashed. “You
will do this? And save Nanna from his
clutches?”
“That's the general idea, yes,” Blue reasoned.
“Why should it be you, husband?” she asked insistently.
“Why do you wish to take that responsibility?”
“Don't tell me you're jealous again!” he sighed. “I thought you
understood that…”
“Aye. I do
understand. I am not jealous,
Hodur. I am concerned.” She put a hand on his chest, tenderly. “If you so insist to play the hero, you do
not have to do it alone,” she
remarked. “Let me help you.”
“You will be helping me,” he said with a faint smile. “But by staying here and keeping an eye on
Balder. And if possible, when he comes
round, trying to explain to him that I am not his enemy.”
“At least, if you will not have me,” Symphony insisted, “ask
someone else to go with you.”
“I cannot,” Blue retorted
obstinately. “Loki probably waits for
Balder to come after him alone. If he
sees an entire troop going after him, he might get suspicious – and kill
Nanna. No, it's better I go alone. That way, it'll be easier to follow his
trail inconspicuously.”
“You do not even know the
way to Yggdrasil,” she remarked. “How
will you know where to find it?”
“I don’t have to know exactly where it is,” Blue reasoned. “Obviously, Loki does know where it
is. I just need to find Loki’s trail
and follow it.”
“If
Loki indeed knows where Yggdrasil is, it is curious that he did not share this
information with the Ice Giants,” Symphony reflected. “It is said that destroying Yggdrasil will hasten the world’s
destruction.”
Curious indeed… Blue approved inwardly.
“Yggdrasil is on their territory, isn’t it?”
“Aye, within the Icy Mountains.”
“But they don’t know where?”
“Nay. Else they would
destroy it.”
“Mmm…” Blue was thoughtful. Or they know where it is but are unable to
reach or destroy it. Or need something
– some specific circumstances – in order to do so.
“I
have to start the chase somewhere,” he murmured. “Can you give me an indication of where Thor and Tyr found Nanna
and me, when we returned from the Icy Mountains?”
She
smiled. “It is quite easy to find,” she
answered. “It’s beyond the low plains,
after you have crossed the Bifrost. At
the limits of Fenrir’s Forest. I will
show you the way.”
“Stop
trying,” Blue said with a smile. “Just
give me the directions I need. I’ll be
able to find it.”
Symphony
nodded. “When you have reached that
position, you will have to go through the Forest, towards the Icy Mountains,”
she said with a sigh. “There is but one
safe path to cross the Forest, and that will be the one Loki will have taken. You will find his trail easily from there.”
“Thank
you.” Blue leaned toward her and gave
her a grateful kiss. She hung from his
neck, and the kiss deepened, longer and with more passion, as he took her into
his arms.
“I
have to go,” he murmured into her ear.
“Stay with Balder – watch over him, please.” This is more important
that you can imagine, he added inwardly to himself. ”Promise me?”
“I
will,” she confirmed. “I give you my
word. Just be careful, my love.”
“I’ll
come back,” he said with a new smile.
“That is my promise.”
They
left the room together to depart each their way, Symphony slowly walking back
to their own chamber, and Blue taking the other direction in long strides,
leaving the palace and heading for the stables where he would take a mount for
his journey. She watched him until he
disappeared from her view, even though she had reached her door and was
standing in front of it, her hand on the handle. She didn’t feel right letting him go all by himself; she felt
her duty was to go with him, and stand by his side during the upcoming
battle.
But
she had – foolishly – given her word.
Sighing
with annoyance, she pushed the door open and entered. Angry with herself – and with Hodur’s determination – she slammed the door shut, without looking
back. Pah! I should forget my
promise and follow him, she thought savagely. He still talks crazy words and is not ready to face an
adversary like Loki. He needs someone
to back him up!
She
was so engrossed with her own thoughts that she had not noticed the presence
that was standing behind the door, waiting for her. Something heavy suddenly hit the back of her head; stars danced in front of her eyes at the
violence of the blow and she crumpled. She was unconscious even before hitting
the floor.
“Sweet
dreams, Symphony Angel,” a voice she couldn’t hear told her in a cold,
sarcastic tone.
Lieutenant
Burgundy – in the guise of the warrior
Vali – gave but one glance at the woman lying at his feet, making sure that way
that she was properly knocked out.
Satisfied that it was the case, he stepped over her, and walked towards
the bound and gagged figure lying at the foot of the bed – also
unconscious.
Slowly,
Burgundy crouched in front of Captain Scarlet, unsheathing the dagger hanging
from his belt. Thoughtfully, he played
with the blade, and then looked down at the still face and closed eyes of the
man lying there, defenceless – totally at his mercy.
He
held the blade to Scarlet’s throat for a moment, before shaking his head and
moving it down to the bound wrists.
“Wakey-wakey,
Captain,” he murmured without humour, as he started slicing through the ropes
tying Scarlet up. “I really can’t wait
to tell you what’s been happening while you were sleeping... ” A smile started
tugging at his thin lips. “I can’t wait
to tell you that your… ‘estranged wife’ and your ‘dear, loyal brother’… have
finally run away together.” He chuckled
evilly. “Isn’t it lucky for you that I
know exactly where you’ll be able to find them? I’m sure you’ll find the information interesting…” He cut through the last knots as his smile
transformed into a very cruel and cold sneer.
“… And the Mysterons will see the ‘Prophecy’ accomplished – and their
act of retaliation completed!”
* * *
Crawling
and slithering through the dust-infested duct indeed proved to be an irksome
experience for Harmony Angel. Her body
was covered with dust, and her hands and face had sustained a few scratches,
but she had successfully managed to progress towards her aim, as silent as a
shadow, and so slowly that it seemed to take an eternity.
When
she saw the raw light appear through another flap in the floor of the duct,
just up front, she knew that she had reached the end of her journey.
She
crawled the last short distance and leaned over the flap to peer through the
tiny ventilation holes. The room looked
like a fully lighted and operational laboratory. She listened carefully for any sign of life; all she could hear was sounds of
bubbling; no breathing of any kind, no
walking, no indication that someone was inside that room.
With
much care, she pulled on the flap; it disengaged with a dull sound, that echoed
through the vent; she grimaced, hoping that it wouldn’t attract anyone’s
attention. Still no sounds came to her
ears from the room below; nobody had heard.
Harmony
slipped her dust-covered head through the opening and cautiously looked
around. Her earlier assessment that
there was no-one around was confirmed; the room appeared empty. All she could see was electronic devices
lying on a table, a huge wall of computers on one side of the room and a large
tank filled with a bluish liquid, the surface of which was half-covered by a
white froth bubbling steadily.
Harmony
lowered herself through the opening, hanging from her hands, and let go to drop
the remaining distance to the floor.
Dirt covering her from head to toes flew everywhere upon impact and she
dusted herself off in annoyance. I have to tell maintenance to send a vacuum
robot inside those vents, she reflected inwardly. That amount of dust can’t be good for ventilation.
She
looked around; her attention was mostly drawn to that huge aquarium-like
tank. It was such an unusual device to
find in a place like this, she thought. R&D being the domain of Doctor
Lavender, she didn’t imagine that the austere and serious-looking scientist
would have any interest in taking care of fish… In any case, not in such a huge tank!
From
where she was, she could only see one end of the tank, where cables were
attached, connecting it to the computers nearby. The rest of her view was
blocked by a control desk, on which a dark screen was showing dots, lines and
numeric data, which was constantly changing second by second. Curious about exactly what the tank could
be, she approached – and noticed the sheer size of it: about seven feet long, three feet wide and
four feet deep. As she drew closer,
Harmony saw a series of cylinders were also mounted against the tank support;
she started noticing sounds of all kinds – beeping from the control desk, and
the bubbling of whatever fluid it was inside the tank and…
She
stopped in her tracks as the tank came fully in view and she finally saw what
it contained. She gasped in horror, and
took one step back, her hand to her mouth.
Oh
no…
A
tall, practically naked man was immersed in the blue liquid, fastened by
restraints on hands, ankles and torso, holding him down nearly at the bottom of
the tank. The coloured liquid lent his skin a disturbingly ghostly tinge,
giving him the aspect of a dead, still body.
And
in truth, Harmony first thought he was dead.
Then she noticed the mask strapped over his mouth and nose, which until
that moment had been hidden by the eerie movement of his dark hair. She took note of the long plastic tube
running from that mask to a kind of
pump surmounting one of the cylinders mounted against the tank.
No…
Not a pump, she suddenly realised.
A
respirator…
She
could see it working, and at the limit of her hearing, she could perceive the
sound coming from it too – the hissing sound of pumped air, like a steady
breathing.
As
steady as the beeping coming from the control desk.
She
walked around the tank, slowly, looking on with revulsion. There were many sensors attached to the
still body inside, probably sending data to the computer to which this tank was
linked; Harmony now checked for any
sign of life, wanting to make sure that the man was indeed alive.
She
saw small air bubbles, escaping from
the mask, and that his chest was moving – just very slightly.
But
the face, ghostly-looking in that strange fluid, motionless except for the hair
movement, and the closed eyes, were a clear indication that the man was deeply unconscious. Harmony wasn’t surprised by her discovery –
especially considering the identity of the prisoner inside the tank.
“What
have they done to you?” she murmured, distress and compassion obvious on her
beautiful face, as she leaned against the thick glass. She noticed how cold the surface was. “Captain…
Why put you in this… thing? This
is too horrible…”
She
didn’t expect an answer from Captain Scarlet.
The only one she received was the steady beeping coming from the control
desk. Detaching her eyes from his still
face, she straightened up and looked over into the tank and the bubbling
liquid. Except for the bluish colour
and the froth forming at the surface, it seemed to be similar to ordinary water.
What
could it be, exactly? she mused. It can’t be
that toxic – his skin doesn’t appear more damaged than it would be after a
prolonged soak in regular water.
Harmony
decided it would safe for her to test it herself. She rolled her sleeve
halfway up and, tentatively at first, put her hand into the tank. It was very cold to the touch, almost icy,
but the texture was that of water, so she plunged her hand deeper still, trying
to reach Scarlet. She only succeeded
in brushing his shoulder slightly, before she started feeling a tingling
sensation in her hand; the sensation quickly propagated up her arm to her
elbow. She quickly removed it from the
tank.
Her
whole forearm felt numb now, and she had barely any feeling left in her
fingers; she almost couldn’t move them. Shaking her hand for the sensation to
return, she grunted in annoyance, now
having an idea of what this strange liquid was.
This
is revolting – how could they treat a human being this way?
Disgusted,
she used her communication device. It
was time to make her report.
“Doctor
Fawn?” she called into the mic.
“Harmony,
thank God…” the physician’s voice answered almost
instantly. “I was beginning to worry
about you.”
“No
need, Doctor… I’m perfectly all
right.”
“Have
you entered the room?”
“Yes,
I’m inside…” Harmony answered. She was unsure how to continue.
“Did
you find Scarlet?” Fawn asked again. “Is he…
is he all right?”
“Oh,
he’s alive, of that I’m sure… And he
doesn’t appear to be in any pain…” Harmony hesitated. She took a sharp intake of breath. “… But I’m not sure if he’s… all right,” she finally said.
“What
do you mean?” a concerned Fawn inquired. “Of course, he must be unconscious right
now… Like all the others who are trapped
in that fantasy world…”
“He’s
unconscious, yes… but not quite like the others.” With apprehension, Harmony looked at the prisoner inside the
tank. “I will need you, Doctor,” she
added with a catch in her voice. “We
have to free Captain Scarlet from this thing they have trapped him in – and I
don’t know where to begin, without putting him in further jeopardy. I desperately need your help…”
She
couldn’t bear looking at the tank anymore and turned around towards the other
part of the room, if only to escape from that awful sight for a few
seconds. She gasped aloud, as something
new was suddenly revealed to her eyes.
Hearing that sound provoked Fawn’s worry.
“Harmony,
what is it? Are you all right?”
“Yes,”
she breathed into the mic, her eyes riveted to what she had just
discovered. She had not seen it until
now, as it was mostly hidden under a huge electronic device, that cast a shadow
over it. She cautiously approached, barely daring to breathe, unsure of what
she should do – or if she should even be there. She stopped in her tracks and exhaled her relief slowly,
realising that she was safe.
But
she still felt nervous…
“Doctor,”
she announced into the mic, “there’s something else…”
“What?”
an agitated Fawn asked. “What have you found, Harmony?”
“Actually,
it’s someone, Doctor.” Harmony
took another step and looked closely at her discovery.
Another
man was in the room, sleeping on a reclined padded seat under the electronic
device, feet elevated and eyes closed, breathing regularly. Or rather, she
corrected herself inwardly, he was unconscious too, like Scarlet – though he
was obviously settled much more comfortably.
And like Scarlet, there were sensors on his forehead, and on his chest,
under his open black shirt – sensors which were attached to a control desk by
his side. Just over his head, inset
into that device which loomed over him,
there was some kind of screen, which was sending a gentle, multicoloured play
of light onto his face – a face so very pale, and covered with a stubble indicating
that he had not shaved for days.
The
sight of this man, unconscious though he was, was enough to send a shiver down
Harmony’s spine.
“Harmony?”
Doctor Fawn called, worried at not hearing from her. “What… WHO have you found?”
“Doctor,”
she answered slowly, “you won’t believe me… and please, don’t be alarmed when
you hear this… but I have Captain Black
here, in front of me!”
Chapter 7
Symphony Angel didn’t
remember ever waking up with a hangover similar to the one she presently had.
Her
head felt as if it weighed a ton, although the inside of her skull seemed
filled with cotton so thick she had trouble thinking straight. In fact, it hurt just to make the
effort to think. And it hurt even more just to try to move any
part of her body. Her mouth was so very
dry, she even had trouble swallowing.
She
was lying on her back, on a hard surface, and she could feel her muscles were
stiff. When she attempted to open her
eyes, she closed them immediately. Too
bright… too damned bright, she cursed inwardly. What the devil did I drink last night? WHAT did I do exactly? I can’t remember…
Her eyelids finally obeyed
her mental command, and she blinked repeatedly, to chase away the too-bright
light and the fuzziness filling her vision; she groaned in pain, and slowly
brought her hand to her head. Just that
movement was pure torture.
Her vision cleared finally,
and she found herself staring at the high, rounded ceiling of the Amber
Room. What was more, she was lying on
the floor, not that far from the door.
What? she thought with a frown. I fell asleep here?!
That wasn’t like her at all.
What the
hell happened?
She slowly raised herself
into a sitting position, holding her head and keeping it down, until the pain
in it, and the sudden nausea that had hit her, eventually subsided. She remembered the strangest of dreams… she
was back in the time of the Vikings, and she was a warrior princess of some
sort – captured by the enemy, but betrothed to their prince… Adam was that prince, of course, and there
were all sort of intrigues in the palace.
Everyone she knew on Cloudbase was there… all with a role to play, and…
Even Captain Black was
there – as the villain of the story.
She shivered almost despite herself.
How
strange that I can recall all the details so vividly! she mused.
Truly, what an odd dream that
was…
There was a strange
sensation, nagging at her… Something
that she felt she should remember, but was elusively escaping her…
It was hidden behind all those details, those ‘memories’ of that bizarre
dream which seemed so terrifyingly true…
As if the events had actually occurred for real. But that was impossible, of course… That couldn’t possibly happen?
She heard her stomach whine,
obviously demanding food. Her free
hand reached for her belly, as if trying to calm it. Yes, she did feel hungry… very hungry… and she had such a
terrible thirst; her throat was completely dry. It was as if she had not eaten or drunk for many hours… or days…
Hold on…
Suddenly, she remembered, as
her mind slowly started to clear, although her headache persisted. She raised her head suddenly – too suddenly
for her own good – and looked around the Amber Room with alarm, recollection of
what really happened before that dream coming back to her in
waves.
Her sudden feeling of
wariness confirmed itself when she saw Destiny Angel, half lying on the couch,
and Melody, sprawled across the steps, not that far from her. Both of them looked asleep.
No… unconscious…
Unconscious
– like I was… I remember now. There was
gas, filling the Amber Room… That
sensation of drowsiness I – we – felt…
A trap!
And then… nothing, except
that stupid dream.
"Oh my Lord…"
Symphony muttered. She swiftly dragged
herself to Melody, closest to her, to check if she really was only
unconscious. The pulse in her wrist was
beating strong. As for Destiny, she was
definitely alive – Symphony could hear her snoring lightly.
She got to her feet, and
suddenly felt light-headed; she staggered toward the water fountain, and poured
herself a first cup, that she gulped greedily, before taking a second, then a
third. At the fourth cup, her thirst
finally seemed to be assuaged, and she sighed with satisfaction.
She then checked her
wristwatch. It seemed like they had
been sleeping only a couple of hours…
No… the date had changed…
Two days!?
"Oh my LORD! That can't
be possible!" Symphony repeated
more forcefully. She turned on her heel
suddenly – Damn that blasted headache! – and staggering, went to the
door in long strides. She remembered
everything now… the news that Captain Blue and Rhapsody's SPJ had crashed on
the runway, minutes after she had started her shift; the concern she felt that
they might be hurt; the voice of Lieutenant Burgundy over the comm. telling her
to relax, that both were perfectly all right and had been taken down to sickbay
to treat minor injuries and slight concussion; her desire to leave her station and go up to sickbay
anyway, in order to check on her fiancé and friend…
And then that blasted gas
that had hit them…
She had tried to reach the
door, but had crashed to the floor before she could. Her last thoughts had been of a driving determination to call the
Control Room, to give the alert, but the only thing she had been able to do was
to raise her hand toward the comm.link right next to the door, without reaching
it; she was too far away.
Reaching the door now, she
pushed the control button, but the door refused to slide open.
Locked.
"What the hell is
going on here?" she muttered darkly.
She slammed the comm.link button.
"Symphony Angel to Control Room!
Spectrum is Red! We've been
under attack in the Amber Room. The
door is locked. Please, unlock it
immediately!"
There was no answer. Symphony frowned. Curious. The comm. seemed to be working… And there was always
someone in the Control Room… What
was happening?
"Amber Room to Control
Room! This is an emergency! We've been hit by gas – my watch says it was
TWO DAYS ago! How is it possible that
nobody noticed!?" As the comm.
kept silent, the doubt slowly making its way into her mind became
certainty. "Is there anyone up
there to answer me?" she asked, trying to keep her voice from
shaking. "Colonel White? Lieutenant Green?" The name of the last person she had talked
to before losing consciousness came to mind.
"Lieutenant Burgundy?"
But no-one answered.
Oh
no… Don't tell me this attack was not
only against the Amber Room – but all over the base.
Her heart started
racing. She had no way of knowing if
everybody else was indeed unconscious – or worse, dead. She could only suspect that something
terrible had happened.
She tried to contact
different locations all over Cloudbase – Sickbay, maintenance, officers’
lounge… There was no answer anywhere.
"This can't be
happening…" she whispered to
herself. "I can't be the only
conscious person onboard…"
And if I
am?
She punched an emergency code
into the comm.
"Symphony Angel to
Spectrum Headquarters, London. Spectrum
is Red! Cloudbase has been under attack.
We…"
She stopped herself when she
suddenly realised that there was static coming from speakers. She tried another
code, in order to contact another ground base. It was the same.
Great. Connections to ground seem completely
disabled. As if something – or rather
SOMEONE - has messed around with the radio system to isolate Cloudbase. On purpose, obviously.
It appeared to be a huge,
well-organised assault.
"I have to get out of
here," she said to herself, turning her attention to the control panel
embedded in the wall next to the door, with fierce determination. "I have to open that damned door and
find someone – anyone. And they better
come up with good answers to the questions I will ask them – or there will be Hell
to pay!"
* * *
The Spectrum sentry standing
guard in front of the R&D room where Captain Scarlet was imprisoned inside
the suspension tank pushed the command button and the door slid open in front
of him. He stepped inside the room,
slowly, his weapon at the ready, his gaze attentively wandering around. Bromwell was so concerned that an
inadvertent move with the machinery
might put the whole operation in jeopardy that he had instructed the guard to
take his station outside the door, to keep his surveillance checks inside to a
minimum and not to touch any of the very sensitive equipment in the room, under
any circumstances.
The prisoner was still inside
the tank, as he had been since the start of the operation, but he was agitating
himself, struggling slightly against his restraints, and as much as his
drug-fuddled mind and body would allow.
There was a lot of air bubbles escaping from his respirator, but it was
well strapped on and there was no danger of it falling off. So, the guard thought, this must
be the sound I heard coming through the door.
He had come to investigate, only to make sure everything was still
in order.
The guard walked fully inside
the room, still looking around carefully.
He went to Captain Black to check on him; satisfied that he was still
sleeping deeply in his comfortably reclined seat, he turned around and went
straight to the computer controls. He
checked the data displayed on the screen; as far as he could see, everything
was normal, the information barely having changed at all – except for showing
that agitation the captive was presently experiencing. There was nothing to indicate that Captain
Scarlet had awakened – or that he was even close to awakening from his enforced
sleep. The guard approached the tank
and closely examined the prisoner’s features through the glass. He was frowning, and shaking his head from
side to side, but the eyes were closed.
He stopped agitating himself,
and one last look at the computer screen informed the guard that all the data
was back to normal.
Still
living in that dream world then… the
sentry thought with a wicked smile.
He turned around, and took
his first steps towards the door to leave; he had barely left the console when
he heard a faint, splashing sound and felt the floor to be slippery under his
feet. He looked down.
Where he stood, the floor was
covered with a thin layer of water. Probably
all that splashing about by the prisoner, the guard thought. Some water got spilled, obviously. But as he looked down, he realised
something odd, and crouched down to look closer; this water didn't seem to have
any blue tint in it. He tentatively
tested the water with the tip of his fingers; he felt nothing. Looking toward the tank, he discovered the
puddle he was standing on wasn't even reaching the support.
If not
from the tank, where’s this water coming from, then?
As he was slowly coming to
his feet, something suddenly hit him from behind, right between the shoulder
blades. There was a loud zapping sound,
and he went stiff, his mind blacking out instantly. He sprawled on the floor with barely a sigh. He never noticed the presence that had
sneaked up behind him, like a spectre coming from the shadows from which it was
born.
Harmony Angel stood over the
downed sentry, holding with both hands the electric baton she had used to knock
him down; uncertainly, she crouched down and checked his pulse. There was none.
The maximum voltage in the baton, combined with the water she had quickly
spilled earlier on the floor in order to trap the man had been sufficient to
kill him.
Good.
With a grimace, she put the
baton aside. When she had discovered it
earlier, lying on a table, she had no doubt what their enemies intended to do
with it. Considering Captain Scarlet's
vulnerability to electricity, they certainly intended on using it to keep him
under control. Perhaps even kill him
eventually, while he was still kept
defenceless in that watery casket. The
mere thought was revolting to Harmony – which had made her decision to use it
against the guard rather easy to take; she felt no remorse about it at all.
She took the handcuffs
hanging from the man’s belt and swiftly shackled him – just to be on the safe
side. She wasn’t that sure if he was a
Mysteron or not, but if he was – and if the voltage in the baton just happened
not to be quite enough to kill him – there was a chance he could revive and
cause trouble. This way, he would be
contained.
Harmony rose to her feet with
a sigh, and turned to the tank in which Captain Scarlet was imprisoned,
activating her radio.
“Doctor Fawn… the sentry has been neutralized. Thanks for the early warning.”
“Is he
dead?” the voice of Fawn asked her.
“For the moment he is, yes,”
she said in a very calm tone, as if it was the most natural thing to say.
“How is Captain Scarlet?”
“He was agitating himself
earlier – I suspect it was the reason why the guard came inside. He must have heard something from the other
side of the door." She marked a
short pause, looking toward the tank.
"I had hoped Captain Scarlet would wake up – but unfortunately, it
didn’t happen. He’s grown quiet
now. Like before.”
“All
right. I guess we’ll have to worry
about that later. For now, it’s time
for Part Two of the operation. I’ll
contact you shortly.”
Harmony sighed. She didn’t like knowing that Doctor Fawn was
taking so many risks – he certainly wasn't trained like she was to face the
kind of danger she was accustomed to.
But the two of them were the only people onboard able to do anything to
counter the enemy's plan right now, and it wasn’t as if they had any choice.
“S.I.G.,” she murmured,
glancing at the dead sentry. “Be
careful, Doctor…”
* * *
One of them had
awakened.
How could
it be possible? thought Technician Bromwell.
He was standing in the same
room where Captain Blue and Rhapsody Angel were sleeping under the hypnotic
multicoloured lights. A third bunk had
been placed next to Blue, where Lieutenant Burgundy – free of any restraints,
unlike them – was also sleeping under the same lights, now having joined them
in the fantasy world to participate in the last phase of the game.
All seemed to go according to
plan, and everything had been normal thus far, except for a small agitation
from Captain Scarlet, and reported by the computer – agitation that didn’t last
very long, however, before everything settled down again.
However, the computer’s security features soon
started beeping again, having detected a similar kind of activity, from another
participant – a similar agitation, but with a different outcome: one of the ‘players’ was leaving the game…
Checking on the computer
data, it didn’t take that much time for Bromwell to discover exactly from whom
it was coming… and now, he was watching, on his monitor, as Symphony Angel, in
the Amber Room, fully awake, was obviously working to try to get the door open,
in order to get out.
Something must
have happened to her in the fantasy world to initiate her awakening, Bromwell pondered.
He made a quick check of the game data, to reassure himself that it was
not a general occurrence. No, she was
the only one. Nobody else was about to
escape the game, he realised.
First
Scarlet, and now this… In the case of Scarlet, he wasn’t worried.
Although there had been two or three alerts in his case, with the particular
way he was restrained, there was not a chance in Hell he would be able to
escape. Bromwell, however, couldn't
quite explain what could have occurred in the Angel's case, though. She was a normal human being, with nothing
exceptionally special about her that could have led him to expect anything like
this from her.
Unless… Could it be because…?
He shook his head. The chance of that occurring again with
other players was there, but since the game was nearly done, it was an unlikely
risk.
No matter,
he thought grimly, as he looked at
Symphony’s efforts on the screen. He would not permit that woman to sabotage
his plan. He was too close now – the
game would be finished soon, and everyone would be dead following its
conclusion.
As for Symphony Angel, as she
was no longer a part of the game, there would be need of a… different approach
to secure her demise.
He pressed the communication
command on his computer. “Petrie, this
is Bromwell. I need you to go
immediately to the Amber Room.”
He didn’t receive any
answer. He frowned. “Petrie?” he repeated into the comm. “Do you
hear me?”
He was about to check the
man’s post on the screen, when he heard the door behind him slide open; he
glanced briefly over his shoulder, to see in the semi-darkness of the room, a
man, dressed in the black and white uniform of a Spectrum security guard,
stepping through the opening.
“Ah, Rochester,” Bromwell
said, turning his attention back to his screen, as the guard approached him
from behind. “You arrived just in
time. There is a situation in the Amber
Room that needs your immediate attention.
I tried to reach Petrie to take care of it, but he doesn’t answer my
call. I…”
Bromwell stopped suddenly,
when the screen then displayed the door in front of which he knew Petrie should
be standing. The post was deserted, and
the door closed. He frowned.
Damn that
man. What is he doing? I told him not to leave his post…
“Where is…?”
“Still wondering why your man
doesn’t answer, Mr. Bromwell?”
Bromwell turned around; the
‘Spectrum guard’ was now standing only a few feet behind him, his gun drawn and
aimed at him. He looked up to meet the
guard’s face, and suddenly realised it wasn’t Rochester at all.
“Doctor Fawn,” he said
without apparent emotion – or surprise – as Fawn removed the white cap from his
head, to toss it aside. “Where is
Rochester?”
“Dead,” Fawn answered
bluntly. “Like you will be if you don’t
do as I say.”
Bromwell slowly nodded his
understanding. “You are more
resourceful than I thought…”
“Back off," Fawn ordered
in a stern voice, motioning with his gun.
"Slowly. And keep your
hands where I can see them."
Bromwell obeyed docilely,
stepping back, his eyes set on Fawn.
"I'm not armed, Doctor," he said, spreading his empty hands in
front of him as if to emphasise the point.
"But you are too close
to that console for my taste – and to Captain Blue and Rhapsody
Angel." He waited as Bromwell
backed away a few more steps, his gun indicating the direction he wanted
Bromwell to go. "That will be far enough." Bromwell stopped and watched as Fawn approached the console in
front of which he had been standing a second ago. The doctor only glanced at the controls, then at the screen; he
flicked it once and saw the Amber Room, where Symphony, fully awake, was
busying herself opening the locked door.
"If I understand
correctly, there seems to be a little glitch in your system, Bromwell?"
"I don't know what you
mean," Bromwell said, shrugging dismissively.
"Oh yeah? How come she's awake, then?
Bromwell didn't answer, and
simply stared back, as Fawn activated the mic of his headset.
"Fawn to Harmony. I took possession of Sickbay. Stand by for further instructions in a few
minutes."
"Harmony." Bromwell shook his head in
understanding. "So she
survived..."
"No thanks to yours and
Burgundy's efforts," snapped Fawn angrily.
"We obviously
underestimated her – and you, Doctor."
Bromwell shook his head.
"But your efforts are useless, I assure you."
"You think
so?" Fawn growled. "I'm not so sure about that. We found the room in R&D, where you’re
holding Captain Scarlet captive in that… tank." Fawn spat the last word with obvious disgust. "We also found Captain Black there,
asleep, apparently hooked to this computer game of yours like everybody else on
Cloudbase. We will find a way to stop
this madness, now that we are back in control of the base."
"Are you really in
control, Doctor? Oh yes, you have Cloudbase, but the game is still on. You don't have ANY idea how to stop
it."
"I suppose you're the
only one who can do that, is that right?"
"It is not I who is
stating the obvious, Doctor. And if you
think I will help you…"
"We will see about
that," Fawn said, levelling the gun at Bromwell.
The latter narrowed his
eyes. "Are you really prepared to
do whatever it takes to force me to help you?" he asked. "You, a doctor, who are honour-bound to
save lives, would make use of that gun and shoot another man down? It is well
known across Cloudbase that you hate firearms…"
"I do. But if it means saving other
lives…" Fawn let the rest of the
threat hang, ominously.
"I see. It seems I wouldn’t be the first man you’ve
killed today, then. This is
Rochester's gun, isn't that right? You took it from his dead body? How easily you humans resort to violence to
obtain what you want. First Rochester…”
“Spare me your patronizing
hypocrisy,” Fawn snapped angrily. “Yes,
Rochester is dead, but it was self-defence.
He had come to kill me. You would have expected me to roll
over and play dead, without fighting back?”
Fawn wasn’t prepared to admit just yet that he wasn’t sure if it was he
or Harmony who had delivered the killing blow to Rochester. He assumed that, just maybe, Bromwell would
be more amenable if he believed that the doctor was indeed able and ready to
kill if there was a need for it. “Beside,” Fawn added, glaring meaningfully at
Bromwell, “I believed at the time that he was a Mysteron agent… Which makes a damned difference, don’t you
think? As a Mysteron, the man was
already dead anyway. But… he wasn’t a
Mysteron. That, I discovered
afterwards. He was as human as I am
myself.”
“So you killed one of your
own,” Bromwell said quietly. “What a
shock it must have been for you then. Yes, I imagine it makes quite a
difference that you had killed a human being, instead of a Mysteron replicate. Isn't that so, Doctor?”
“And what are you,
Bromwell?” Fawn shot back. “Are you Mysteron – or human? I heard you call us ‘Earthmen’ often
enough – and speaking of us with the same disdain an agent of the Mysterons
would use. I also heard you supposedly
speak in the Mysterons’ name…"
"You know the Mysterons
are behind this operation…"
"Yes. I did hear their threat. But are you yourself a Mysteron? I have some doubts about that.”
Bromwell smiled thinly. “And on what do you base your ridiculous
assumption, Doctor?”
“Let’s start with the details
– with which this attack on Cloudbase had been so scrupulously planned. It takes time to prepare an offensive like
this one. Days… weeks… to carefully
lay your traps – to install your programs on the computer mainframe, to put in
place the various pieces of equipment you needed – to set up that contraption
Harmony discovered in the R&D room.
Because of your job, and your status as chief technician, you have
access to the R&D Department – you work there often. Isn't that true? So, you also had access to that particular room. A room, I might add, that DOESN’T HAVE a
surveillance camera – or else you’d be keeping an eye on it during the whole
operation, and at the moment, to make sure that Scarlet is very well where he
is and won’t escape…"
Bromwell scoffed. "There is no chance for him to free
himself… and to step out of that tank all by himself."
"I’ve already figured
that out. But why doesn’t that room
have a camera, I wonder? Is it because you disabled it yourself weeks ago, to
make sure no-one would notice what you were preparing in there? And you didn’t
have time to put it back in place once you had taken control of Cloudbase – so
you put a guard in front of the door instead.”
“You read too many detective
stories, Doctor. You seem to believe all this… rubbish of yours.”
“A good friend of mine once
told me that reading ‘detective stories’ is a good exercise to keep your mind
alert… and to keep an open mind about such… ‘rubbish’, as you call it. I know I am right, Bromwell. You definitely took a great amount of time
to set up this whole operation, behind our backs. If you had been a Mysteron during that time, you would surely
have been exposed as such, at one point or another… during a standard security
check, for example. But you were never
found out. So the only explanation is…
you must be human.”
Bromwell looked down, in a
thoughtful way, apparently pondering Doctor Fawn’s words. Then, the smile on his thin lips broadened,
and he chuckled. “All right, Doctor, I
admit it. You found me out. You are
right – it definitely took a human to prepare this plan down to the last
detail… A Mysteron would never have been able to do it, that much is true.”
Fawn became pale with
anger. It was one thing to suspect he
was right – but another thing altogether to have confirmation of it from the
mouth of Bromwell himself. “Traitor!”
he growled. “You really disgust me… So
you, a human being, a member of Spectrum,
you are working freely for the Mysterons… following their orders.
Why, you dirty…”
“I think you can spare me the
insults,” Bromwell retorted coldly.
“That would really be beneath you, Doctor. Beside, what difference could it make
for you to know why I did what I did?
My reasons are my own. I don’t
have to answer any of your questions.”
“Perhaps not. But you will tell me how to stop that
absurd game of yours! And how to
wake everyone without risking any permanent damage to them. I warn you, if you don’t cooperate…”
“You will shoot me?” Bromwell
interrupted sharply. “Back to this, are
we, Doctor?” He chuckled again, and shook his head. “Your threats are
meaningless,” he reiterated. “And you
will never wake all of them – not by yourself, and not in time to save them
all. You wouldn't know where to start."
"I already know that
Captain Scarlet is the key to the problem," Fawn replied. He hoped to have a revealing reaction from
Bromwell. The latter simply stared at
him, very coldly, for a brief moment.
"So what, if you think
you found that out?" he finally asked with a shake of his head.
"I am right, aren't
I?" Fawn asked insistently.
Bromwell sighed, without
really caring to answer. "That
won't help you at all, Doctor. I made
very sure that attempts to try to prematurely wake any participant of the game
– especially a key participant – would cause that person to die. The
player has to wake up normally – all by himself, at the end of the game. Otherwise… the awakening could be too much
of a shock – remember Anna Preston?"
"I'm not about to forget
her, you murdering scum," Fawn seethed.
"Of course, if the game
is allowed to follow its course, your… friends might have a chance to
survive. It will all depend on Captain
Blue - if he succeeds in defeating the program – as he hopes to. It's a fair game, Doctor – your colleagues
have but one chance."
"And you made sure this
chance will be infinitely thin, of course."
"Of course… what would be the aim of the game, if it
wasn't the case?”
“Captain Scarlet is
indestructible – you know that,” Fawn remarked.
“You think the rules don’t
apply to him?” Bromwell asked with an evil
grin. Seeing the doubtful expression on
Fawn’s face, he shook his head, in a thoughtful way. “Whether you believe he’ll be safe or not is up to you. But I have to warn you that in his case,
there is an added bonus: if there is
any attempt to wake him up, and he dies, Cloudbase’s senior staff will be
condemned to follow him in death.”
Bromwell made a dramatic pause.
"That's… just to make the game more interesting."
"You're sick, you know
that, Bromwell?" Fawn snapped back with disgust. “I was right. Scarlet is
the key to resolve the game, or else you would not have given him that much
attention.”
He glanced at the monitor
screen. "How about Symphony? How come she woke up, then?"
"Oh that…" Bromwell shrugged. "It's an insignificant glitch in the otherwise perfection of
the game. Something that is unlikely to
happen again, I can assure you.”
“Really now? You are dismissing that possibility rather
quickly, Bromwell.” Fawn paused a
second. “Is the game over for her,
then? Why is she alive, in that
case?” He narrowed his eyes
suspiciously. “And what if I attempt to
wake all of them, despite your claims that it would kill them?”
Bromwell dismissed the
barrage of questions with a wave of the hand.
“Alternatively, you can always try to wake them up, as you
suggest – if you want to take that risk.
You might have a chance, after all. But like you said earlier, it is infinitely thin, and if you
don't proceed carefully enough…” He let
the rest of the explanation hang into a dramatic silence, before
continuing. “Anyway, the game will be over soon - it has entered the last level. It’s only a matter of time now. So if you want to do something, you had
better act quickly. But… as I
said, I am the only one who knows how
to wake them all safely. And I will certainly not do it.”
“We will see about that,”
Fawn replied. “I just need a good dose
of truth serum from one of my cabinet drawers, and you will gladly give me all
the help I need!”
Bromwell tutted quietly.
“That is highly unethical, Doctor Fawn…
but I do believe that if you’re desperate enough, you will do it. But unfortunately for you… you won’t get
that chance. You see, I, too, I’m
desperate enough…” With a measured
movement, he put his hand into his pocket, and Fawn suddenly became very
anxious. He cocked the hammer of his
gun, and extended his hand, taking aim at Bromwell; but he was hesitant to kill
him – he desperately needed him alive.
And Bromwell knew that.
“Why so nervous,
Doctor?” With a cold expression on his
face, Bromwell slowly drew out a small gun, and the edginess in Fawn mounted
several degrees.
“Drop that!” he ordered
forcefully. “Drop that, or I’ll shoot!”
“Perhaps you will.” Bromwell put the barrel of the gun to his
head, his expression becoming blank.
“But I expect you might not have the courage to kill me.”
“Bromwell, you…”
“The Mysterons will reward me
for my sacrifice.”
Eyes wide with growing
horror, Fawn saw Bromwell’s finger pressing the trigger.
“NO!!!! Don’t…” His shout was drowned by the loud detonation
and almost instinctively, he averted his eyes, so not to see the man putting
the bullet into his own brain; he heard the dull thud of the body as it hit the
floor after its fall, and almost despite himself, he muttered a quick prayer
for the dead man’s soul.
Then he turned around,
breathing deeply, trying to calm his rapidly beating heart, and approached; he
looked down in dismay at the body of Bromwell, now lying at his feet, his right
hand still clutching the smoking gun, his blood splattered all around the
place. There was a bitter taste in
Fawn’s mouth as he considered the man’s final solution, to avoid being forced
to help him. Despite what he had said,
there didn’t seem to be any desperation on Bromwell’s face as he had pulled the
trigger – only a certainly that he had to do what needed to be done.
“Damn it,” Fawn
murmured.
He considered Bromwell’s last
words and gesture ‘The Mysterons will
reward me for my sacrifice.’ Indeed,
what sort of reward could Bromwell have thought of receiving from the
Mysterons, a race of alien beings that had sworn to destroy all life on
Earth? Surely there was nothing to
expect from such as them. They used and
discarded their own agents without a single second thought – they would do the
same with any human beings naïve enough to accept any deal with them.
There’s
something to investigate here, Fawn
reflected. Questions to answer – to
find out exactly what all this means…
For now, he had little
time to ponder on the subject; Bromwell was dead, but there were other lives to
save. Fawn only had to look in the direction of the still-sleeping Blue and
Rhapsody to be reminded of that. He
didn’t want to spend more time than he already had – according to Bromwell,
they were racing against time now.
They at least had an
advantage. The base was theirs
again. Now they would be free to act –
and act quickly.
Dismissing the dead man’s
body, he returned to the console, re-holstering his own gun. He determinedly pressed the comm.link button
and manually tuned it to the Amber Room.
“Symphony!” he called
forcefully. And he knew his voice had
boomed around the entire Amber Room, when he saw the young woman on the screen,
still working on the door, suddenly jumping in surprise and stopping to turn
around and gape at the loudspeaker.
There was an edge to her voice when she quickly answered his call:
“Doctor Fawn! What the devil is going on around here? Where are you?”
He blew a deep sigh. “In
sickbay. How long for you to get that
door open? I’m not sure I would be able
to override the controls from here.”
“I… not
long now, a few minutes,” the
obviously confused Symphony answered. “Can’t
you alert someone to come open it from the outside?”
“I’m afraid we can only count
on ourselves right now,” Fawn answered.
“You, me – and Harmony. And do
whatever we can with what we have.”
“What? What do you mean, only the three of us…?”
“We’re the only ones awake on
Cloudbase – at the moment.”
The confusion in Symphony
reached a new level. “Doctor, that
doesn’t make any sense…”
Fawn sighed again, finally
regaining a normal breathing rate. “Symphony, please, you have to trust
me. It’s not really easy to explain,
but I promise, I will try and do my best – but later on. For now, I need you to get out of there as
quickly as you can and get your butt up to R&D.”
“R&D?
Why?”
“You will meet Harmony
there,” Fawn answered, his voice returning to its normal coolness. “I need you to bring back something to
me… And I need you to be quick about
it, Symphony. At the moment – time is
of the essence, if we want to save everyone else on Cloudbase!”
* * *
"My
Lord Odin!"
Odin
pulled on the reins of his horse upon hearing the call coming from behind him
and turned around, imitated by Freyja, wondering who in the name of Ymir could
be disturbing their quiet ride in the plains surrounding the city, during which
the monarch of Aesgard had intended to show his kingdom to the queen of
Vanaheim.
They both
saw Heimdall, the captain of the palace guards, and Vali, coming their way from
the gates of the city, pushing their mounts hard to reach them. Having heard the urgency in Heimdall’s
voice, they waited for them; when both
men stopped their horses next to theirs, Heimdall barely took the time to get
his breath, before addressing
Odin again:
"My
Lord, something happened within the walls of the Wallhall that we feel you have
to be aware of. Your heirs…"
"What
happened?" Odin asked, suddenly
alert.
“Heed what
Vali has to say.” Heimdall turned to
his companion, inviting him to continue.
Vali cleared his voice.
"I
found Lord Balder in the stables earlier, hurriedly preparing his horse,” he
explained. “He was mad with anger… He
told me he was going after Lord Hodur and Lady Nanna – who had fled the palace
together."
"What?" Odin growled, his brow furrowing.
"He
said that they were lovers - that they had been since they met on the Icy
Mountains."
"Hodur
and Nanna – this is madness," Freyja protested. "Hodur has but one love of his life, and this love is
Iduna…"
"Nevertheless,
my Lady,” Vali continued. “Balder believes otherwise. And they… did leave the
palace together – for whatever reason.”
“Why would
they have done that?” Odin asked roughly.
“If they are not guilty of what Balder accuses them of…”
“They must
have a reason of their own,” Freyja insisted.
“I know Nanna – she never acts without reason.”
“And
neither does Hodur,” Odin murmured. “I
do think the accusation is false – but I would like to know who put such
foolishness in Balder’s mind.”
"I do
not know, Sire,” Vali said humbly.
“It could
only come from Loki,” Heimdall remarked carefully. “Who else but this scoundrel would come up with a story like this
one?”
“Loki,”
murmured Odin thoughtfully. “Yes, that
would be like him… But to what purpose would he have done that? And what reason could have compelled Hodur
and Nanna to leave the palace together?”
“That I do
not know either, my Lord,” Vali continued.
“But what I do know is that Lord Balder left in turn, a few moments ago
– and went after them. There was desire
of vengeance in his eyes.”
"My
king," Heimdall continued, "I
fear for Lord Hodur's life. I am
concerned at what Lord Balder will do, when he finds them."
"My
lord Odin," Freyja remarked, “ ‘Tis obvious that there is conspiracy
here. against both your sons – and the
Lady Nanna. Loki seeks to destroy them.”
"Aye,
it would seem obvious." Odin mused.
“ ‘Twould seem I waited too long to deal with Loki… Perhaps it is time that I do something about
it.” He turned to both Vali and
Heimdall. “You said Balder just left
the palace, Vali. What direction did he
take?"
"The
direction Balder believed Lord Hodur and Lady Nanna themselves took: towards the Icy Mountains, my liege."
"Ymir's
beard…" Odin turned around toward
the direction Vali was now pointing to him, beyond the plains, to the North; he
could see the dark line of Fenrir’s Forest, standing like a barrier on the
horizon; over the high and dark trees, there was the almost eternal mist that
hid the foot of the mountain chain. And
above, the threatening peaks of the Icy Mountains, the domain of the Ice
Giants, cold, and deadly…
"Yggdrasil,"
he murmured, under his breath. “Great tragedy could ensue from all this, of
such a scale that it might cause untold disaster…”
"My
Lord Odin," Freyja replied, hearing him, "you do not think…"
"I do
not think anything," Odin interrupted her, "except that my sons are
acting like fools again – and that I must intervene, and find them before a
tragedy happens." He turned to
Heimdall. "Where is Thor?"
"Out
in the Northwest woods, my lord – with Lady Sif. They are hunting deer together."
"They
would not be expected back before late tonight, then," Odin grunted. "Go and fetch them, Heimdall. Explain to Thor what has occurred and tell him to ride towards
the Icy Mountains. I will leave a trail
behind me, so he will be able to find me – at Yggdrasil. His assistance will not be too much to help
me make these two fools see sense!"
"You
know where Yggdrasil is, Lord Odin," Freyja remarked. It was more of a statement than a question.
"You
do not appear surprised that I do, my queen."
"I am
not. I suspected as much. I trust you
well enough, Sire, to know you have your reasons to keep this secret.”
“My Lord,”
Vali then said, “if you would permit me, I will go with you. The road might be perilous, with plunderers
from the North and savage beasts of the forest… You cannot go alone.
Another sword, and a strong arm, will be helpful to you.”
Odin
pondered the suggestion, before finally nodding his agreement. “Aye, Vali.
You will come with me then.”
"Will
you also need my help?" offered Freyja in turn.
"Nay,
Queen Freyja. As Vali just said, ‘tis a
dangerous journey leading to Yggdrasil – as your Valkyrie Nanna probably
discovered herself a few days ago.
'Twould better for you to stay at the palace and await our return. One
of us must stay behind to lead our people.
I promise you, no harm will come to Nanna. I give you my word."
"I
believe in your word. I always did."
Freyja straightened up on the saddle to look as levelly as she could
into Odin's feature, narrowing her eyes, and furrowing her brow in a thoughtful
way. "Somehow… it always was as
if… I've known you for a long time – even before we met – and instinctively
known you were a good man." She
shook her head. "Do be careful
yourself, Sire."
He simply
nodded his acknowledgement and pulled on the bridle to turn his mount; a second
later, he was riding away, Vali by his side, towards the faraway forest, the
eyes of both Heimdall and Freyja following them. Heimdall reached for the young woman's hand, resting on the
pommel, and squeezed it reassuringly.
"I am
concerned for him too. But I know he
will be all right."
"I
just hope he knows what he is doing."
"Do
not worry – he usually does."
Heimdall frowned and shook his head. Why did he have this feeling
of already having had this conversation with someone else? Images flashed into
his mind – that of a large, brightly-lit room – where stood men with smooth faces, looking like Balder and
Hodur, wearing strange coloured-garments… the first one in red, the second in
blue…
"Not always…"
said the voice of the red-clad man, with an edge to his tone…
The image
disappeared as quickly as it came, and Heimdall shook his head anew, trying to
dismiss it. He turned his horse. "I will escort you back to the palace,
my lady," he announced to Freyja, "before going in search of Lord
Thor."
"Do
not lose time on my account, Heimdall," she replied with assurance. "Go ahead and find Thor. I can find my way back to the palace
alone." She gave him a faint smile. "And I am certainly able to defend
myself on the way over, if an enemy tries to attack me.”
“Nobody
would DARE to attack you, Lady Freyja,” Heimdall protested. “No enemy would come so close to the walls
of Aesgard – all Aesir warriors would cross the Bifrost bridge, to protect your
life with their own.”
“Well,
then… what is there for me to risk?”
Freyja said quietly. “Go now, and do not waste any more time.”
"Of
course, my lady..." Heimdall
answered, almost stammering. "I
will do as you request, then." He
turned his mount around and pushed it towards the Northwest, with barely a last
glance behind him as he rode away.
Freyja
watched him depart, then looked again in the direction previously taken by Odin
and Vali, a thoughtful expression in her eyes.
All she could see of them and their horses now was two small, grey dots,
slowly disappearing towards the horizon.
She knew Odin was riding towards unsafe territory, almost without care,
and with only one warrior to protect
him if he should encounter danger.
The woman
who believed she was queen of Vanaheim gave a thoughtful nod to herself,
suddenly taking a decision, and turned her horse towards the gates of the
Bifrost.
She had to
find Tyr and Freyr – and entrust them with the most important mission of their
lives.
* * *
Captain Blue was aware that
he was probably pushing his horse too hard, as he rode along the treacherous
trail he knew had been previously followed by Captain Black – and the captive
Rhapsody.
He had first crossed the dark
forest of Fenrir, that he knew was filled with all manner of dangerous and
hungry beasts – wolves the size of which he remembered from their first
encounter in the snow-covered plains, a few days ago – which would not hesitate
one second to attack any imprudent traveller that carelessly ventured into
their domain. They didn't come after
him, but he just knew they were there, watching him. He could actually smell their beastly
and savage scent, and that could only mean they were very close, but were
choosing to remain invisible – he didn't see even a single tail of those
famished beasts, nor hear a single sound from them. In fact, the only sounds he was hearing at the moment, were the
hammering of horseshoes on the beaten ground, the heavy breathing of his mount
mixed with his own – and the wind, gusting and whistling through the trees
surrounding him.
Like a
frigging ghost forest…
The trail was easy enough to
follow – as Symphony had told him, it seemed like it was the only path he could
actually use to cross the sinister forest towards the mountains. When he finally emerged from the darkest
part of the woods, after what seemed like an eternity for him, and entered a
clearing to finally find himself at the foot of the mountains, he blew a deep
sigh of relief.
He turned around nervously
when he heard the howling of a multitude of wolves echoing behind him; it was
as if they were taunting him somehow, telling him that they had known he was
there, that they had been with him all the time… that they only chose to
let him go – for now.
They’re
only wild animals – I’m crazy to think they can envision any future
plans for me, Blue admonished himself. That wouldn’t be normal behaviour for
animals…
But then, he could hardly say
that there was anything really natural about his present situation… After all, he was living a fantasy, a game,
in a world suggested to his mind, and which only existed because of a program
installed inside the belly of a powerful computer.
He turned around to face the
new trail in front of him; it climbed up the side of the mountain, to enter a
wide, but dark, gorge. Looking ahead, Blue could distinguish a hill past that
gorge, but was unable to see anything else beyond that. This gorge seemed
treacherous enough – and probably could provide many hiding places for whoever
might want to ambush him. But did he
have any choice but to continue?
As he was about to push his
horse forward, a metallic flash caught his attention, and he squinted his
eyes. On a large rock, just at the
opening of the passage, there was a small, shiny ring; he approached it on his
horse and only needed to extend his hand to take it.
He didn’t have to examine it
for long to discover what it was.
It was Rhapsody’s
communication ring; the same as he had on his own finger.
Black was obviously showing
him the way.
If he has
hurt her in any way…
Thoughts of how Black had
taken Symphony hostage all those months ago and taken her to the Culver Atomic
Centre where he exposed her to radiation, came back to Blue's mind. The anger he had felt then came back to him
as well. He swore he would not let
Black do any harm to another Angel again.
He tried once again his own
ring, tapping on it as Doctor Fawn had instructed him in order to make contact
with Cloudbase.
Nothing. Again.
Well, it was no
surprise. Since the beginning of his
journey, he had tried numerous times to tell Fawn what had occurred since the
last time they talked, and had not been able to make it work. He made another attempt, using Rhapsody’s
ring this time, but it didn’t work either.
It was as if someone had
disabled the device, in order to isolate them again.
ONE guess
who’s responsible for this…
With a frustrated grunt, Blue
pocketed Rhapsody's ring and kicked the flanks of his horse, compelling it to
move forwards into the sinister gorge opening in front of him.
“Damn,” he muttered, cursing
the failing communication device. “I sure wish I knew for sure what is wrong
with that thing…”
* * *
“Damn! I sure wish I knew what is wrong with that
bloody thing!”
In sickbay, Doctor Fawn was
going through the commands of his computer console, trying desperately to
re-establish contact with Captain Blue’s and Rhapsody Angel’s subconscious,
still trapped in the fantasy world. Communication, he had discovered with
alarmed surprise a few minutes ago, was
now impossible – he could only hear static through it, much like what he heard
whenever he tried to use the comm.link to reach the world outside of Cloudbase.
So far, his efforts to reach
either Blue or Rhapsody had been fruitless.
As a result, he had been unable to tell them that the enemy agents who
had taken Cloudbase over were now all neutralised and that the base was now
back in Spectrum’s hands. More alarming
yet, he now also couldn't learn what was going on in the fantasy world. As far as he knew, things might have taken a
turn for the worse recently, and he wouldn't know about it.
Not that
we would have been able to do a lot of good anyway – but at least we would
know!
When he heard the door of the
room sliding open behind him, he edgily turned around, his hand flying to the
handgun by his side, but he soon realised that he need not worry – Symphony
Angel had entered, and was walking towards him, with a small piece of paper in
one hand, and an apple in the other.
Fawn relaxed, and inwardly
admonished himself; he hated that fear reaction he had just had – hated
that the primary thought to come to his mind at the first sound had been to use
that damned gun he was currently carrying.
He loathed weapons with a passion, and kept a gun in the drawer of his
desk only because it was a necessary safety measure, considering his rank as
Cloudbase chief medical officer. The
bullets were in another drawer, though, and he never felt the need to load the
thing. The only situation in which he
would really have need of it had actually presented itself the previous
day, when he had been locked in his office, after he had awakened from that
fantasy world in which the others were now trapped. But of course, his captors had made sure to clean out the drawers
before locking him in…
"I have the results of
that analysis you asked for, Doctor."
Biting into her apple, Symphony stopped in front of Fawn and handed him
the paper. This had to be the best
apple she had ever ate, she was thinking, as Fawn swiftly took the paper. Truth to tell, she was so famished that anything
would taste heavenly in her mouth at the moment. She had grabbed the apple from a basket full of fruit, on the reception desk, upon entering sickbay
earlier, and now regretted not having picked up the whole basket.
While Fawn was reading the
paper, Symphony, still chewing on her piece of apple, looked around,
uneasily. The body of Bromwell was
still on the floor, a short distance away.
Fawn, obviously, had far more important things to busy himself with than
to tidy up the room… She swallowed her mouthful, a little uneasy at the morbid
sight, and turned her back on it.
The Angel pilot approached
the three bunks on which Blue, Rhapsody and Burgundy were still deeply sleeping;
she only glanced with a murderous glare at Burgundy, before turning her
attention to her two friends, watching their quiet and set features. She
glimpsed at the data displayed on the monitors, over their heads, but was
unable to make out what the information displayed on them meant. She shivered, almost despite herself.
Suddenly feeling less hungry,
she put the apple onto the console next to her.
“Still not awakened?” she
muttered, hugging herself, as if she was very cold.
“No,” Fawn confirmed, as he continued
to read. “And unfortunately, I’ve been
unable to re-establish contact with them, thus far. I suspect that Bromwell
might have discovered the communication link I established between us – and
disabled it. It might take time to
re-establish it again. I will be with
you in a minute. Give me time to
analyse these results, please.”
Symphony nodded her assent in
silence.
She still could barely
believe what was happening. Less than
an hour ago, after successfully opening the Amber Room door, she had gone
directly to R&D, as instructed by
Fawn, where she was astounded to find Captain Scarlet, unconscious, and captive
in what looked like a suspension tank; Captain Black – of all people! – was
also there, obviously unconscious as well, and Harmony was standing guard in
the room – holding a handgun that she apparently had taken from a Spectrum
guard lying dead on the floor.
Following Fawn's next
instructions, that he gave her through the comm.link – and with the renewed
promise that she would soon learn exactly what was going on – she had then used
a test tube to take a sample of the liquid in which Scarlet was immersed, then
quickly made her way to sickbay. There,
her surprise and shock rose another few degrees, when she finally met Fawn –
waiting for her with a Mysteron detector.
Once he had made sure she was not a Mysteron, he had taken her into a
room in which she then discovered Captain Blue – her Adam – and Rhapsody Angel
deep asleep in twin bunks, hooked to computer controls, and under powerful
spots that cast multicoloured, moving lights over their faces – and Lieutenant
Burgundy sleeping on another bunk, next to them.
She had reluctantly obeyed
Fawn, when he had sent her to the laboratory next door where she used the
auto-analyser to check the sample she had brought back with her. While she was busying herself with the new
task, Fawn opened a channel through the comm.link, in order to explain the situation to her, as succinctly but
precisely as he could. He didn’t go
into too many unnecessary details, but he said enough for her to understand
that they were all in a fine mess – and that everyone onboard Cloudbase could
die soon if they couldn’t find a quick solution.
It also came as quite a shock
for Symphony to realise that those strange memories she had – that dream of a
savage, Viking-like world – were actually far more than fleeting recollections
of just a dream! No wonder she could remember those details so clearly,
as if they were real events – because they were as real as the Mysterons and
Bromwell had made them for that fantasy world game: as real as life, love – and
death, which could be as final there as it was in the ‘real world’.
It was a game, she now knew,
that they were all involved in - and in which everyone had been able to interact
with each other. Maybe not as freely as
they would hope – they were all acting rather out of character in some aspects
of that game.
Which made some of the
memories of what had happened there so… awkward.
Dear God,
if I remember all of this so vividly, then I suppose everyone else will when
they wake up? Oh… That will be so embarrassing for all of us!
Fawn having lost contact with
Blue and Rhapsody, Symphony had told him everything she remembered of her last
memories of Aesgard, after he had finished his explanation – how ‘Balder’ had
come to believe that his brother was having an affair with his wife; how she
herself had stopped him attacking Blue; how Black had finally kidnapped
Rhapsody, apparently hoping for Scarlet to pursue them… but how instead
Captain Blue had gone after them, leaving ‘Iduna’ in charge of the unconscious
‘Balder’.
And finally, how she had been
knocked unconscious – before waking up in the Amber Room. Symphony did recall that she had seen
Burgundy hitting her, before losing her senses
- and leaving the game. That
revelation served to confirm Fawn in his suspicion that Burgundy probably
remembered who he was, and wasn’t possessed by the game. He was more than likely in full control of
himself – as a Mysteronised agent of the Mysterons – and was probably free to
act as he saw fit. From what Fawn had
told her, his presence was more than probably an added strategy, in order for
the game to proceed in the direction intended for it by the Mysterons. His ‘character’ was that of the man who was
supposed to eventually kill ‘Hodur’ – the part played by Captain Blue.
The silence that had followed
her tale through the comm.link had been eloquent enough. Fawn didn’t say it
with words, but it was obvious he was concerned that something was currently
going terribly wrong within the fantasy world.
And that was enough for her
to be even more worried than he was himself.
“Mmm-mmm. It is as I suspected.” Coming out of her fugue, Symphony turned on
her heels to stare at Fawn. As she approached
him with curiosity, his eyes were still fixed on the piece of paper she had
brought him. He pressed a button on the
comm.link embedded in the desk.
“Harmony, are you still there?”
“Of course, Doctor.”
“I have the results of the
analysis of this stuff they put Scarlet in.”
“What is it, Doctor?”
Symphony asked with a frown.
“Believe it or not, it’s
water. But it’s been heavily spiked
with a type of particularly strong anaesthetic, that can be absorbed by the
nervous system through the skin."
“No wonder
my hand felt so numb when I tried to reach him,” Harmony reflected. "But why
would they put him in there?"
"As you well know,
Captain Scarlet's metabolism makes him rather resistant to drugs and poison of
all kinds,” Fawn explained. “They would need powerful stuff to keep him
unconscious long enough, and to actually have him under the complete influence
of that idiotic game. Constantly
pumping him full of drugs might not have seemed a convenient solution – they
would have to make sure the flow would always be constant, and even then, his
body might eventually have ‘adapted’ itself to the drug, and he might have
regained enough strength to eventually fight it off. They probably thought that immersing him in that stuff would
deaden him completely. And with the
right apparatus, keeping him alive and breathing, he might sleep for as long as
they wish, without interfering with their plans." Fawn grunted in distaste. "They prepared this very well, I'm
afraid to say."
“Shouldn’t we get him out of there?” Symphony suggested. She was desperate to do something – anything
– to find a solution in order to resolve the situation.
“I don’t know if we can –
without major problems,” Fawn replied.
“Harmony?” he asked.
“I don’t
know HOW we can do it, Doctor,” the
Japanese-Chinese pilot answered. “That
is, without touching him. I know we still can put on gloves, to keep the drug
from affecting us, but he is connected to so much equipment… And so is the tank. We would need to know
how to disconnect all these contraptions.”
“But since he’s
indestructible…” Symphony started
again. “What if we simply break the glass?”
“There’s a
lot of electrical cables connected to the tank
– I can see wires even inside
the glass. I’m afraid that if we
were to break it, in order to get to him, we might electrocute him.”
“I see,” Symphony
answered. “He’s as vulnerable as us to
electricity. That might put him at considerable risk, then.”
“He might not be the only one
at risk,” murmured Fawn pensively. “I
wonder if they didn’t rig him up to some destructive device.”
“Doctor?” Symphony asked with
curiosity.
“Bromwell said that any
attempt to try to wake a participant might have consequences… It might kill that person. In the case of Scarlet, it’s even worse: an
attempt to wake him up might kill the senior staff. Now I’m wondering if perhaps, Bromwell had not rigged Scarlet’s
tank somehow with some kind of trap… that could kill the others if we wake
him.”
“It would?” Symphony asked,
opening wide eyes. “Could he have been
bluffing?”
“Perhaps. But do we want to risk calling that bluff?”
“I don’t see any apparent
destructive device, bomb or anything of the kind, which seems to be plugged to
Captain Scarlet – or the tank,” Harmony said through the comm.link. “As far as I can see, that is.”
“One thing is certain:
Scarlet IS the key to end that game – I’m sure of it. One way or the other.”
“Adam seemed to think the
same,” Symphony said with a pensive frown.
“He said that if ‘Balder’ dies – Ragnarok will come. And everybody else will die.”
“And the game seems to be set
for him to have Balder killed – soon,” Fawn said sombrely. “Unless Blue somehow
succeeds in foiling the game – or unless we find a way to stop everything from
here. Mmm…” Pensively, Fawn turned toward Symphony and looked at her
intently. She became awkward under the
intensity of his stare. “Why are you
awake?” Fawn said in a thoughtful tone.
“What do you mean?” she asked, on the defensive. “Doctor, if you think I’m in league with
Bromwell…”
“That’s not it,” Fawn cut
in. “I know you’re no Mysteron – and I
know you would never get yourself involved in his plan. You were as much of victim of it as we all
were. No, what I mean is… How come you are awake? Bromwell obviously didn’t think one of his
‘participants’ would wake on his – or her – own. He was about to send someone to the Amber Room. I’m betting, to get rid of you.”
“Charming fellow,” Symphony
deadpanned.
“He said that your waking up
was just an insignificant glitch, unlikely to happen again. He sounded rather insistent on it – I wonder
now how much of it is true?”
“You think he might have lied
so you wouldn’t explore this avenue,” Symphony remarked, nodding slowly.
“Yes – it’s a
possibility. But it still doesn’t tell
us how you woke up. If we were
able to recreate the conditions under which that happened…”
“It might still mean waking
up everybody individually, Doctor,” she remarked. “And unfortunately, once we’ve figured out
how to do it, we might run out of time to save everyone.”
“You might be right, of
course… but we can’t dismiss any
possibility, can we?”
Symphony sighed. “Well, as I said before – the last thing I
do remember from my stay in the game is that I was knocked unconscious.” She shot a vicious glare at Burgundy, sleeping
in a bunk, right next to Blue. “And his,
was the face I saw before losing consciousness.”
“Then you woke up in the
Amber Room?”
“With the grandfather of all
headaches, a complaining stomach – and vivid images of what I thought was all a
dream.”
“You were knocked
unconscious, and you woke up,” Fawn murmured pensively. “In my case, I fell asleep in
Aesgard, and woke up here. Blue told me
he had the same experience. And
Scarlet… according to Rhapsody, when he
was injured in Aesgard, he started recollecting memories of his real life…”
“Didn’t you tell me he got
restless earlier in that tank?” Symphony asked.
“Yes,” Harmony said
though the comm.link. “Just before
we took Cloudbase back from the enemy – about an hour ago.”
“Around the time I woke up?”
“Yes… Approximately,” Fawn
said.
“Could it be…?” murmured
Symphony. “Doctor, not long before I
was knocked out, the same happened to Scarlet – well, Balder, as he’s known in
that game… I… er… that is, my character knocked him out.” She offered a brief sheepish smile, before
continuing: “Could that be related?”
“There is certainly a link
here…” Fawn stared at Symphony
again. “Do you remember ever sleeping
in Aesgard?”
“I… can’t recall…” Symphony said with hesitation. She frowned,
thinking. “I’m not sure… it doesn’t seem to me, no…”
“You mean
to say, Doctor, that when they’re unconscious or asleep in this fantasy world
they might wake up - here?” Harmony
asked.
“This is a distinct
possibility, yes.”
“Well, I’m afraid it doesn’t
do us any good then,” Symphony retorted.
“Agreed. We have to find a solution to wake them
up. And all at once. Symphony was right
earlier, if we wake them individually, we might run out of time to save them
all.” Fawn sighed in frustration. “If
only we knew what is going on right now in Aesgard… It might be vital information for us! But since I lost contact with Blue and
Rhapsody, it is impossible to know what direction the game has now taken – and
how much time we have left.”
“If we succeed in waking
up Captain Scarlet, without risking the life of anyone else, maybe this whole
game will stop?” suggested Harmony.
“If he wakes up…” Fawn said pensively. “That is, before he is killed in Aesgard –
then yes, maybe the game will be over – and maybe everyone else will wake too. But as long he’s soaked in that stuff, he
will sleep, and won’t wake up by himself...”
“And we don’t dare remove him
from it,” Symphony added. “Because it
might mean killing the others. We’re in
a dead-end.”
Fawn seemed thoughtful for a
few seconds. He suddenly snapped his
fingers. “Unless…” He looked down at the paper he was still
holding in his hand. “Maybe we can
introduce a counter-drug to neutralise the effects of that stuff he’s submerged
in…”
“He might
wake up by himself, then? And that
would mean the others won’t be at risk of dying?”
There
was hope obvious in Harmony’s tone of voice through the comm. and Fawn could
see that the same hope was now reflecting on Symphony’s face. He quickly took
his decision.
“Right. It might work. And we do have to try
something, don’t we? Harmony, you stay with Scarlet and monitor every change to
his condition – if any. Symphony, you
stay here and keep an eye on Bromwell’s computer. Do try to see if you can contact Blue and/or Rhapsody again."
“S.I.G.,” said Harmony’s
voice.
“S.I.G., Doctor,” Symphony
echoed. Both women’s tones implied that
they were satisfied to actually be doing something.
“I’ll be in the laboratory,”
Fawn continued. “The auto-analyser
results should be more than enough to find a proper counter-drug. I’ll make sure to tell you of any
results. Let’s keep the comm.link open
between us, shall we?”
With that, he walked briskly
to the door, followed by Symphony’s now hopeful eyes.
* * *
The winds were blowing strong
and the snow lashing hard by the time Blue emerged from the gorge which had led
him to the middle of the Ice mountains territory. His mount had trouble advancing in the deepening snow, and was
protesting, but he was pushing it forward, toward the top of a high hill, not
wanting to lose the trail. He didn’t
know how far away he was from his destination, but he expected that Black might
be watching out for any pursuer.
This falling snow, he
realised, might be useful to him – hiding his identity long enough for him to
approach Black before he could realise he wasn’t the quarry he was waiting for. But at the same time, Blue couldn’t forget what ‘Balder’ had said
to Rhapsody, concerning those snowstorms and strong winds, suddenly bursting
out without anything to previously announce them.
A raging
blizzard is the sure sign that the Ice Giants are walking the Earth…
So they were probably nearby,
watching – looking on as their plan was unfolding.
Not the Ice Giants.
The Mysterons…
As he was approaching the top
of the hill, there was a sudden gust of wind and suddenly, Blue’s mount reared
up and nearly threw him off its back.
Blue clung to the bridle and patted the animal’s neck, trying to calm it
down. Still nervous, the horse snorted,
and refused to take a further step, despite Blue’s encouragements.
“You won’t go any further,
will you, old girl?” Blue
murmured. “Well, you gave the most you
could, I believe…”
He dismounted, patting the
horse again, and looked forward, gauging the ground he would still have to
walk. His eyes opened wide when he saw,
beyond the hill and through the falling snow and blowing winds that almost hid
it, a huge dark form rising up to the skies.
A
tree. So big and so dark, that it hid
the horizon from his view… With
branches so wide, it cast a huge shadow on the land beneath them…
Yggdrasil.
“No wonder the Vikings
thought it was supporting the world…”
Blue murmured.
He had reached his goal. He had found Yggdrasil. Not that far from where he was standing,
Captain Black was waiting – with his hostage – his trap laid out.
There was no turning back
now. He had to move on.
Leaving the horse behind,
Blue continued on foot…
* * *
Odin was
still riding in Fenrir’s Forest when the winds and snow had arisen. With determination, almost savagely, the
lord of Aesgard pushed his protesting mount forward, not allowing it a moment’s
rest. He knew far too well what would
be the price to pay if he did not arrive on time to stop the tragedy he foresaw
ahead… A tragedy, he suspected, that
had been schemed for by the Ice Giants themselves, who had obviously used Loki
in this evil conspiracy to destroy humankind.
Odin was
admonishing himself for a fool – for not seeing before what was so blatantly
obvious now. If he still had any doubts
of that, they had left him as soon as the first high winds had started to
blow. Surely, this was the work of the
Ice Giants – and they were now there to make sure their plan would not fail.
Or to stop
him from intervening, before it was too late.
Odin did
not intend to let them win; he had fought them too long and too hard,
protecting his people against them, to permit them to finally win over them
all.
“We must
make haste, Vali,” he said in a strong voice to carry above the wind, “if we
want to catch those two fools before they kill each other. Perhaps we should…”
He stopped
in the middle of his sentence, suddenly realising that Vali and his horse were
no longer with him and that he was riding all alone. He suddenly stopped his mount and looked toward the trail behind
him.
“Vali?” he
called.
He
received no answer but the loud murmur of the wind – and could not see any
trace of his companion.
It was as
if he had disappeared into the forest.
Ymir’s Blood – where could he
be? Odin had no time to
waste waiting for him – or searching for him.
He turned back on the saddle and spurred his mount forward.
His horse
reached the edge of the wood; without so much as a pause, Odin urged it into
the sinister gorge he knew would lead him to the Ice Mountains. He rode through
the gorge at breakneck speed, knowing full well that he couldn’t afford any
delay.
He was
emerging from the gorge without even slowing down when suddenly, coming from
out of the shadows, a huge black form emerged, leaping straight at him, and
growling with fury. Odin just had the
time to see it coming: a wolf – a huge
one – who had obviously decided to take him as its prey. In a desperate move to avoid the fangs aimed
at his throat, he veered his mount, which received the full weight of the
oncoming predator.
There was
a brief, frightful neigh as the horse fell down into the snow, dislodging Odin
from its back. He rolled away, to avoid
being crushed under the weight of the animal;
then he stumbled to his feet, unsheathing his sword, his only eye
searching around for his opponent. He
found it right away, standing atop the fallen and dead horse, baring teeth
covered with blood, and with a fury in its red eyes matching that in Odin’s
single eye.
“Fenrir,”
snarled Odin. “I thought I recognised
your vile odour and your dark coat…” He
stood in a defensive posture, as the wolf’s ears moved at the sound of his
voice. “So you are doing your masters’
bidding and trying to prevent me from reaching my sons? Come forward then, you evil beast… Your hide will be mine to wear…”
He saw the
black wolf licking its lips, without even moving from its spot – looking at him
with what seemed like intent interest.
As it made a tentative step to climb down from the dead horse, Odin followed him with both eye and sword. He felt more than he saw the other wolf
coming from his right flank, leaping at him.
He slashed, almost blindly and stopped the wolf in mid-jump; he felt an
intense satisfaction when he heard the dying yelp of the new attacker, and it
fell at his feet, dead, and reddening the snow with its blood.
Odin's
victory was short-lived; through the whistling of the raging winds, he could
hear dull growlings – coming from all
sides; he looked around, turning on himself, carefully, keeping his
guard up. A multitude of red eyes were
fixed on him, slowly approaching his position, encircling him in a tighter
circle at each step. Wolves, all
around… Seven, eight, nine… A dozen of
them, not counting the black beast, who was just stepping down from the horse's
carcass. All of them were growling
savagely and baring sharp teeth, ready to jump at any time.
They had
trapped him; he had nowhere to run.
A bitter
expression passed in Odin's single blue eye as, after a quick evaluation of the
forces against him, he turned to stare squarely at the black wolf.
"Hellish
pawns," Odin muttered under his breath,
"do not think I will be easy prey.
Come now – and let us join Hela's domain together!"
Glaring
fiercely, the black wolf gave a brief bark; Odin never saw the wolf coming from
his blind side and pouncing savagely at him.
It landed on his shoulder and bit deep into his flesh, driving him down
with its weight. Odin roared in pain
and fell down, rolling to get rid of his attacker, and slashing wildly with his
sword. His fall seemed to give the
signal the other wolves were waiting for.
With
growls and barks of victory, they closed in on him – following the black wolf
who led the attack against the man who, they knew, had not a chance of escaping
them…
* * *
“Do not
tell me, Lord Thor, that you lost the trail again!”
Crouched
down in front of his horse, and examining the ground, Thor nearly rolled his
eyes at Sif’s statement. The
dark-skinned young woman was just standing behind him, holding the bridles of
both their mounts in one hand, and their bows in the other, looking down
mockingly at him. It had been twice
since they had entered the forest that they had lost the trail of their quarry,
and it did seem that Sif would not let Thor forget anytime soon that he was the
guide to their hunt party.
“Nay, my
love,” he answered quietly from his crouched position. “I did not lose the trail – again – like you
imply. I just discovered that we are
not the only hunters after that deer we’re chasing.” With his hand, he invited her to take a closer look and she bent
down next to him. “See those prints, my
lady? Do you recognise these?”
“Of course
I do,” she replied. “Wolf prints.”
“A big
male,” Thor confirmed, rising to his feet slowly, imitated by Sif. “And he is just in front of us…” He took his bow from the young woman’s
hand. “Maybe it is Fenrir himself… ‘Twould make a good trophy on my chamber
wall…”
“On our
chamber wall, Lord Thor,” Sif corrected him.
“Only a fool can expect to kill this beast without aid.”
“And you
will join in the fray, Lady Sif?” Thor asked, turning to her, sparkles in his
eyes.
She put an
arrow to her bow, lifting her chin defiantly.
“Try to stop me, Lord Thor, and I will be putting this shaft
through your heart instead!”
He
chuckled. “It never crossed my mind to stop
you, Lady Sif. We will continue on
foot, and leave the horses here.” She
made a step forward, but he put a hand on her shoulder – gently – to halt her
advance. “However, I will insist on
passing first,” he said in a careful but firm tone. “That way,” he added quickly, seeing she was ready to protest,
“you will be able to cover me… and avenge me if the wolf should have my head
before I have his.”
He put an
arrow to his own bow and walked first into their new quarry’s trail, Sif
following close behind, a brow still raised in defiance. “What makes you think I will make the effort
to cover you?” she said under her breath.
Thor did
hear her – as she intended, he was sure – but he simply smiled; there was
little point in responding to her remark; he knew the threat was empty.
In
silence, they slowly walked through the forest, following the trail, and
looking around for any sign of close danger.
The prints suggested that the wolf was hunting the deer alone, but as
they both knew, a lone wolf was a rare occurrence in these woods – they always
travelled in packs. This wolf’s pack
could be nearby, for all they knew – and getting ready to attack at any moment
they chose.
A cracking
sound in front made Thor stop, and he gestured to Sif to do the same; he narrowed
his eyes to see through the branches half blocking his view. Something grey seemed to move amongst the
trees, a few yards ahead.
“Here is
our friend,” Thor murmured. “Do you see
it?”
“I see
it…” whispered Sif, behind him. He
could hear her bow creaking, as she was bending it, ever so slowly. He did the same, putting a knee down onto
the ground to free her target line.
From this distance, he could see the wolf was huge… One arrow might not suffice to kill a beast
that size. If they were to only injure
it, it might escape and run away – or worse, charge and attack them.
It was
still half-hidden behind the trees; they had to choose the right moment to let
go of their arrows.
“Wait for
my signal, my lady,” he said in a whisper, closing one eye to take aim. “We must not let this beast escape us…”
He had
barely said the words than he heard a whistling sound and felt the wind of
Sif’s released shaft grazing his ear, and then a dull and violent thud, not
that far away from the knee he had put to the ground. Out of surprise, he let go of his own arrow, and it lost itself
in the woods; it passed way over the wolf’s head and he saw the animal,
suddenly alerted that danger was nearby, take off and disappear into the
darkness of the forest.
But Thor
was now barely giving any attention to the fleeing wolf. He had noticed the feathering of the arrow
leaning against his thigh, in an angle suggesting that it had been released
while it was pointed in his direction, and had barely missed him. His free hand swiftly drew his dagger and
keeping his position on the ground, he twisted around, toward Sif, standing
behind him. When she saw the dagger in
his hand, aimed at her in a defensive way, the Valkyrie made a step back, her
face remaining stern.
“What are
you doing?” she demanded, frowning in anger at his gesture.
“Do not
tell me that this shaft has been released accidentally!” Thor accused her
forcefully.
She
scoffed. “Of course it was not an
accident! What makes you think I will tell you the contrary?”
“Then you
were trying to kill me – but you missed!”
Her frown
deepened. “I did not try to kill you –
and neither did I miss. Do care to take
a closer look at that arrow, my Lord… and where it landed. If you have the courage to take your eyes
off me for just one second, that is!”
Thor
hesitated, before finally responding to her challenge and lowering his gaze
carefully; he looked down to where the arrow had struck. He opened eyes wide with incredulity.
“Ymir’s
beard…”
He could
see a black snake, its mouth wide open with its sharp teeth sticking out, so
very close to his bare knee. The point
of the arrow had driven itself into the back of its neck, pinning it to the
ground and killing it instantly.
“A Midgard
serpent,” Thor murmured, getting to his feet, and sheathing his dagger. “Its bite is mortal…”
“Yes,” Sif
said bitterly. “Even for a big man like
you…”
He looked
at her, apologetically. “You saved my
life, my lady.”
She
scoffed, letting go of her anger. “I
cannot believe you thought I would kill you!”
“Well –
you keep saying that you would,” he remarked, reasonably.
“And you
actually believe I would do it?” Sif
frowned. “Frankly, Lord Thor, I would
have thought that you would know me better than that!” She turned around with an exasperated grunt
and walked away swiftly. Thor gave
chase, reaching her in three long strides and caught her by the arm, forcing
her to face him.
“Unhand
me, you brute!” she shouted, her eyes
flashing.
He smiled,
not obeying her order. “I will
not. Not until I apologise to you – and
hear you say that you love me.”
“I am not
in the business of telling lies.” She
gave a deep sigh, trying to regain her calm.
“But I do accept your apologies.”
“That will
not be enough, my lady…”
“You will
have to content yourself with that, Lord Thor.
You will wait a long time before I agree to tell you the words you wish
to hear from me.”
“Nay,” he
replied obstinately. “I have been
waiting for too long now…” He frowned,
as if he was trying to recall something, nagging him in the back of his
mind. “Years, it would seem to me…” he
murmured thoughtfully. “It is time we
come clean with each other…”
“What is
that supposed to mean?” Sif asked, frowning in turn. She did not try to step back, when he approached her, and leaned
toward her.
Thor shook
his head, and took her into his arms, drawing her close to him. She looked up
to him, not moving. “Just kiss me,” he whispered, his breath caressing her
lips. “And I believe everything will be
clear from there…”
She was
obviously subdued by his words and his gentle manners and her lips were
reaching to meet his; they were about to meet, but a strong wind suddenly rose
– and the long, plaintive sound of a horn was heard coming from a
distance. That broke the magic spell
between them, and they turned around, looking in the direction the call seemed
to come from.
“What is
this?” Sif asked, putting a hand on Thor’s chest.
“Heimdall’s
horn,” he grumbled. “It is a call for
help.” The sound was heard again, this
time longer, more insistent. “And it
does not come from Aesgard,” Thor added, regretfully detaching himself from
Sif. “Come. Let us go back to the horses.”
“Lord
Thor, this wind…”
“I
know.” Thor looked fiercely in the
direction from which the wind was blowing; he could see huge clouds forming in
the sky, not that far away from them, partially hiding the mountains
beyond. “The Ice Giants are walking the
earth,” he said in a sour tone. “And they are close by.” He shook his head, his
features growing dark, as he gently took Sif by the arm and guided her towards
their mounts, while Heimdall’s horn was heard again in the distance. “This is not a good omen, my lady – I fear
something grave might have happened…”
* * *
As he was making his approach
to Yggdrasil, Blue could hear the savage howls of wolves, somewhere not so far
behind him, echoing through the mountains.
It sounded like the beasts had found something to feast on, and he hoped
that it wasn't his horse, that he had left behind. The thought had barely entered his mind than he shook it away
with determination, trying to remember that this horse was not real enough for
him to be concerned about… It was just
a 'tool' in this imaginary game, no more real than the winds whistling into his
ears or the snow lashing in his face… or even the wolves he was hearing.
But those
wolves certainly can be deadly, he
reflected, and it's better they keep their distance… I have enough on my plate right now without
having to concern myself with them!
He had walked past the first,
higher hill, and continued his journey, into knee-deep snow into a wide, snowy
plains of smaller mounds, his eyes
riveted on the goal he wanted to reach.
Finally climbing the last of the mounds, slightly higher than the
others, he stopped there, and looked out, as he was finally able to get his
first proper look at Yggdrasil in its entirety.
The trunk was enormous, but
somehow undersized compared to the hugeness of the branches overshadowing
it. All around it, there seemed to be a
small forest of bushes of dead twigs.
As Blue came closer still, he realised that these bushes seemed to be an
integral part of the huge tree itself, climbing and crawling plants attached to
the trunk or clinging to the lowest branches above, and rising to almost
entirely cover it. Branches and climbing plants were intertwined into an
intricate pattern, so very dense in some places, that it looked as if it was
fusing with the trunk – which gave it its massive appearance.
Blue resumed his walk,
climbing down the small hill towards the tree.
The winds seemed to have calmed down a little, and the layer of snow
under the tree was far thinner, even non-existent in some places, as the
branches overhead offered an effective protective roofing to the ground. Blue slowly walked around the complex
outline of undergrowth surrounding the trunk, still marvelling at the sheer
size of the tree. There were barely any
leaves on the lower branches, and it was a little too dark to see clearly
above, but it was obvious that what he was seeing was not all the same
plant. There were two varieties, as far
as he could see. The tree itself and
some kind of parasite plant… From the first,
he took one twig between his fingers and looked at it closely. Then he looked at the other plant, examining the tiny leaves that adorned it,
noticing the distinctive shape…
Good Lord…
Understanding suddenly
dawning on him, he made one step back and looked up to stare at the tree, with
wide opened eyes, horrified… He could
see the same shape of leaves… bigger, heavier, over his head.
Everywhere surrounding him…
And the tree itself. It was…
Blue’s jaw tightened with
anger.
No wonder
they wanted Balder to come over here! he reflected bitterly. We had
it all wrong about this tree…
A cry made itself heard,
barely noticeable over the wind and he raised his head in the direction it was
coming. Just a little lower down the
mound, in the direction he was previously following…
"Over here!" came the call again. "I'm over here!"
Through a rank of twigs, Blue
could see a patch of red hair, floating in the wind. He blew a deep sigh of relief and hurried in that direction. Taking his dagger off his belt, he rounded
the 'bushes' and came in front of Rhapsody Angel, who was tied up against a
large limb of the huge tree. Her pale
face reflected her deep worry at the sight of the dagger; but then, she saw who
her saviour was and sighed with relief, offering a faint but grateful smile as
he approached her.
"Are you all
right?" Blue demanded quickly as
his dagger cut through the ropes binding her hands. When he touched them, he noticed how cold they were, and that she
was shivering uncontrollably.
"Just shaken,
really," she answered. "It
was a long and harrowing journey… The
cold didn't help."
Blue wondered how much the
cold was actually responsible for her trembling. He cut through the restraints on her ankles and she got to her
feet… Only to fall forwards, unable to
stand. Expecting this to happen, Blue was ready, and caught her before she hit
the ground, effortlessly gathering her into his arms. She looked exhausted.
No
surprise there…
"Don't worry, I'm
here," he reassured her in a soothing tone.
He took her further amongst
the bushes, closer to the trunk of the huge tree, to a place more protected
from the winds, and sat her down there, on the dry ground. Then he took one of her feet between his
hands. They were icy.
“How long have you been tied
up there?”
Rhapsody shook her head. “I wouldn’t really know… Seemed like an eternity. It’s a good thing you arrived when you did. I was about to give in to the cold.”
Blue looked around. “Where’s Black?”
“I don’t know – he tied me up
here and went away right after that, without telling me anything. He disappeared over that hill…” Rhapsody pointed in the general direction
where she had last seen Black, but her arm was shaking so much that she had
trouble keeping it up. Taking pity on
her, and thinking that she was probably suffering from exposure, Blue quickly
removed the fur coat from his shoulders, before sitting down next to her and
drawing her body close to his, in order to give her some of his own
warmth. Holding her tight, he wrapped
the coat around the both of them, and held it tightly.
"You need to warm
yourself up," he said, starting to rub her hands vigorously. "You're as cold as a block of
ice. Draw your knees up, under the
cover… put your hands between your
thighs… Keep them close… Like that, yes…” She was docilely obeying
his instructions, and tiredly leaned her head against his shoulder. Her teeth were chattering inside her mouth.
“Tell me what happened,” he
asked her, wanting as much to keep her mind in focus as to also learn what he
could of her misadventure. He didn’t
want her to fall asleep, as she was threatening to do.
She shrugged under the
fur. “I had a fight with Paul… well,
Balder… shortly after leaving the field earlier. You can’t imagine the accusations he made – about you and
me – and what could have happened when the others found us two days ago…”
“Oh, I can imagine,” Blue
answered, rubbing her shoulders energetically.
“Please continue, Dianne…”
“I was so angry that
he would think such a thing of us that I forgot there and then that he wasn’t
really himself – and was simply acting the part forced on him by this stupid
game. I left him and walked away…”
“And returned to your
chamber?”
Rhapsody nodded. “Black was waiting for me there – with
Burgundy.”
“Burgundy too?”
“Yes… They forced me to
follow them to the stables. Black had a
knife, I didn’t dare give the alert or resist.
They tied me to a horse; Burgundy stayed behind and Black took me with
him… We rode out of Aesgard, without anyone noticing us. Throughout the whole time it took us to get
here, he didn’t say a thing, Adam, not a single word about what his intentions
for me were. And I tried to talk to him,
to get him to speak… it was as if he
was mute and deaf. That silence was
more scary than any threat he could have made…
I was so afraid…”
“I can believe that,” Blue
murmured. “When he finally arrived
here, he tied you to this tree and left
you alone?”
“Yes… I was already so cold and tired, I was
really unable to resist him at all. I
kind of imagined he was using me as bait – to attract Paul to this place…”
Blue raised his eyes, looking
up at the branches hanging over their head.
“Yes… He wanted him to come
here… To this tree…”
“Yggdrasil…” Rhapsody confirmed with a brief nod.
“You noticed what kind of
tree it is?”
She nodded again. “A yew tree,” she answered. “A giant yew tree… I’ve never seen
one this big before. And… I also noticed what kind of plant is
covering it…”
“Mistletoe,” Blue
confirmed. “And as we know, ‘Balder’ is vulnerable to either
yew… or mistletoe.”
“Or both?” Rhapsody offered.
“In any case, one of those
plants – or both - could kill him,” Blue said sombrely. “We were wrong about the tree, but right
about Balder, Rhapsody. They don’t want
to destroy the tree, but with it, they want to bring Ragnarok.” He made a
thoughtful pause, before continuing: “The ‘Prophecy’ they were all so wary of –
it mentioned the death of ‘one who walked with the Giants’, bringing death to
all things. The Aesir assumed it was
about Loki…”
“But it was about… Balder,”
Rhapsody realised. “He walked with the
Giants – they gave him his invulnerability.”
“Yes… and now,
they want to use this tree, to kill Balder…”
“They want to use it to kill
Paul,” Rhapsody pointed out. “Adam, if
he comes here…”
“He won’t.” Blue shook his head. “He’s safely at the palace, where I left him
trussed up and under Symphony’s guard.
I found the message Black left for him and I came in his place. I just knew it was a trap laid for him. I guess I was right.”
“You left him trussed up?”
Rhapsody repeated with a perplexed tone.
“What on Earth happened?”
“Well, he came to my chamber,
shouting at me the same accusations he made to you,” Blue explained. “And he was rather – er – hostile towards
me. I’m guessing those crazy ideas of
his had been planted in his mind – not only by this game, but also by someone
else…” He sighed. “Anyway, to cut a long story short, Symphony
– well, Iduna – helped me subdue him.
And then I came after you myself.”
“You’re a good friend, Adam,”
Rhapsody told him with a fond smile.
“Rather, a good ‘brother’,”
Blue replied with a smile of his own.
“Let’s just hope that we’ll be able to make ‘Balder’ understand that his
suspicions were wrong and that he’s been manipulated into believing them… Just to put him in conflict with me.”
“So you would be forced into
fighting each other… giving you an
opportunity to kill him.”
“Well, it seems it was the
plan all along, isn’t it?” Blue looked
at her closely. “How do you feel now?”
“Much better,” she admitted,
with a nod of her head.
“Then we shouldn’t stay here
much longer. I don’t know where Black
is, but I’m pretty sure he’s lurking around…
And I don’t know about you, but I’m rather nervous just thinking he
might be watching me from the shadows – maybe getting ready to attack.”
“I’m with you on that.”
“Let’s find him ourselves
then.”
Blue got up, leaving the coat
around Rhapsody’s shoulders, and gently helped her to her feet. She stumbled, still a little unsure of her
footing and clung to him so not to fall down.
They stepped out of their refuge.
It was at this exact moment,
that an angry, rumbling voice made itself heard, that literally caused Blue’s
and Rhapsody’s hearts to skip a beat and drove them to look up toward the small
mound at the foot of which they were standing.
“And so, my treacherous
brother, I find you at last – and in the gallant company of my loving wife,
in the cosiest love nest you could find for the both of you.”
They saw the tall figure of
‘Balder’ standing just on top of the mound, his drawn sword in his right hand,
and a merciless and cold expression on his now dark features. They blanched, suddenly realising the doom
that had befallen them.
They had fallen into the trap
and it was now closing on them…
“Oh no…” murmured Rhapsody.
Before she or Blue could say
anything more, Scarlet had leapt from his perch, viciously throwing himself at
Blue.
Chapter
8
Doctor Fawn entered
the room in R&D, clutching in his hand the small glass phial containing the
antidote he had prepared in his laboratory, with the help of the
auto-analyser. Harmony, seated on a
stool, stood up upon his arrival, and watched as he came to a sudden stop in
front of the tank in which Captain Scarlet was imprisoned. The doctor’s eyes were wide with
astonishment and untold outrage. Up to this moment, he had not actually seen
the tank, and the whole contraption that had been put in place to keep Scarlet
in check; he had only received Harmony’s and Symphony’s reports of what they
had seen themselves. Already, he had
been angered by the whole concept; seeing it was a totally different thing. It didn’t take long for him to let go of his
full anger and indignation at the scene presenting itself to him.
“What a barbaric
set up!” he lashed out. “I can’t believe they would hold a human
being against his will in such horrible conditions! We have to get him out of this thing, as quickly as possible.”
Harmony nodded,
in total agreement with the physician.
She watched as he carefully inspected the equipment - all the wires and
cables connected to the tank, the electronics and the life-support device. He nodded his head in understanding – and
Harmony reflected that he probably grasped most of it much better than she did
herself.
He made a stop in
front of the seat in which Captain Black was soundly sleeping and observed him
for a moment, thoughtful.
“What about him?”
he asked scornfully. “Has he shown any
sign of waking up?”
Harmony shook her
head. “No sign at all, and according to
the monitored data, he’s not about to wake up any time soon.”
Fawn nodded his
satisfaction. Black seemed as deeply
asleep as everyone else he had seen on Cloudbase so far. So he considered it the safest course of
action not to touch any of the equipment to which Black was linked. It was far better to leave him alone…
… for the time
being, anyway.
Returning to his
inspection of the tank, Fawn asked Harmony for the injection gun he had seen on
a table nearby, upon entering the room; she quickly went to fetch it and handed
it to him. He swiftly screwed his phial
onto it, changed the needle for a new one he had brought along, and gently
pressed the trigger, removing all the air from the needle. He looked at Harmony.
"Shall we
proceed?" he asked.
"Do we have
a choice?" she replied. "As
you said yourself, we have to get him out of this tank. And hope that at the same time, it will
serve to resolve the situation for the others.”
He nodded in
agreement. "If waking Scarlet up
is the way to stop that game… this would be the solution,” he said, indicating
the gun. “I'm just hoping that we're not making a mistake that might cost many
lives."
"Will that
be enough?" Harmony asked,
pointing at the phial, and looking with curiosity as Fawn turned to examine the
tank apparatus again.
He nodded, as he
introduced the needle into a valve on one of the transparent plastic tubes
attached to the tank. He squeezed the
trigger gently, slowly injecting the fluid into the tube. "This is highly concentrated," he
explained to the young woman.
"Yes, I think it should be enough to counteract the effects of this
drugged bath. In fact, it will change the chemistry of the drug, and dissolve
it completely from the tank. But… it
will work slowly – as it has to, for
Scarlet’s awakening to be as smooth as possible. I know he's supposed to be indestructible, but I don't want to be
overconfident that his relative invulnerability will keep him safe from –
emotional ailments. We're dealing with
the psyche here. And Scarlet is still
very much human in that respect, as much as you or me. Plus, we have to take
into account what effect his brutal awakening might have on the others as
well. I still remember Bromwell's
threat." Once the phial was empty,
he put the hypo-gun down on the table behind him and sighed. "Right. I guess we'll just have to wait and see now."
"How long
will it take?"
"I don't
know," Fawn admitted. "An hour… Less… The counter-effect will be gradual, but when it comes down to
it, it might be up to Scarlet's unique
metabolism and how it's fighting against the drug. I'm hoping, just like you, that it won't take too long."
A beeping sound
from the comm.link interrupted him before he could continue; then the voice of
Symphony was heard, with an edgy and urgent tone to it: "Doctor Fawn, you'd better come back
here quickly!"
Fawn moved to the
comm. and pressed the button.
"What is it, Symphony?"
"Something
is going on… The computer just started
bleeping, and keeps giving alerts about one of the participants."
"Who…?"
Fawn asked with a frown.
"Colonel
White, Doctor," Symphony
answered promptly. "I checked
the data – his vitals are going down."
"Damn!"
Fawn muttered under his breath.
"He's in the Sickbay auxiliary Room of Sleep. I'm on my way to
check him." He strode towards the exit, turning one last time to quickly
give his last instructions to Harmony, pointing at Scarlet. "Stay here and watch him. Monitor every change, and inform me if anything happens. One way or the other. AND…
keep an eye on Captain Black, in case!"
"You can
count on me, Doctor."
Fawn was already
out, before actually hearing Harmony's swift reply.
* * *
Although
valiantly fending off the wolves' attacks, Odin's strength and
determination finally failed him, and
he fell under the number and the sheer savagery of the beasts; his thick, heavy
clothing was barely enough to protect him against fangs and claws that shredded
it to pieces then tore into his flesh, drawing blood, and sending the wolves
into a renewed frenzy. Seeing their
prey down in the snow seemed to give them courage to confront the sharp sword
he was still holding, and to press their assault, nipping at any undefended
part they could find, and keeping the man down.
The
sword finally escaped from Odin’s hand when teeth viciously sank into his
forearm, and he found himself defenceless; it was all he could do to try to
protect his throat, head and chest with arms and legs against the relentless
assaults. In a desperate last attempt
to get back on his feet, he stumbled again into the snow – and stayed there,
barely able offer any further resistance.
His
fogging mind, tinted with red, faintly registered a black mass of fur coming
right at him, snarling, sharp teeth bared in a huge, foaming mouth. He was vaguely conscious that it was his
own death approaching – yet, he couldn’t even move; his eye closed tiredly.
The
black wolf leapt, and was about to victoriously tear into the downed man’s neck
when, all of a sudden, two arrows struck it in the flank. It yelped in pain and backed away, missing
Odin’s body by an inch when it fell down on its paws. Another series of arrows rained on its companions, forcing them
to back away as well from their prey.
From
beyond the gorge, two riders came swiftly at them, roaring with such fury that
the wolves quickly fled; that didn’t save one of them from being trampled under
the hooves of the first horse, while its rider let go of a new arrow against
another beast. The second rider, discarding his bow in favour of his spear,
charged the black wolf who was limping away – the two arrows in his flanks had
hurt it, but it obviously still had enough life in it to evade the spear and
snap angrily at the rider.
“Lo,
Hel’s offspring!” Tyr jumped off his horse, using his one good hand to steadily
hold the spear aimed at the black wolf now facing him. “This time, vengeance shall be mine – I will repay you for the hand you
took from me!”
“Do
not waste time with the beast, Tyr,” Freyr called to his companion; he stopped
his horse next to Odin and swiftly dismounted to check on the injured man. “Let it go.
We have far more pressing business to attend to.”
“Aye,
it may be so,” Tyr replied grimly. “But
this assault on Aesgard’s liege will be Fenrir’s last sin, Lord Freyr. This I swear.”
He
had not noticed another wolf, standing nearby, preparing itself to pounce at
him; a new arrow, coming from the gorge, struck the beast in the chest, killing
it instantly before it could reach its target.
The animal falling dead at Tyr’s feet provided a moment’s inattention
that the black wolf obviously thought it could use to its advantage. Fenrir
leapt forward, fangs bared, ready to tear its opponent’s heart out. But Tyr was waiting for it, his feet well
planted on the ground. He sidestepped
and his iron fist thrust forward – right into the wide-open jaws of the wolf.
“Try
to eat THAT hand, hellish beast!” Tyr snarled.
His fist crushed teeth and jawbones, forcing a gurgling sound from
Fenrir who fell to the ground, blood pouring from its huge jaws, offering its
flank to the mercy of the spear that Tyr, disengaging his iron hand from
between the broken jaws, finally plunged into the wolf’s heart with a howl of
victory. There was barely a sound from
Fenrir, as it finally died at its vanquisher’s feet.
At
the same time disgusted and satisfied, Tyr let go of the spear and turned his
back on the beast, seemingly not taking any interest in it now that it was
dead. From out of the gorge, a third,
slim rider appeared, riding a white horse,
and Tyr went right to them. He
bowed his head as he helped the rider down.
“My
thanks to you, my queen,” he said as Freyja handed him her bow. “You saved my life, with this last arrow…”
“How
is Lord Odin?” she asked, directing her steps towards the fallen man. “Have we arrived in time?”
“He
still lives,” Freyr answered as both Tyr and Freyja lowered themselves to his
level. “We did arrive in time, my
lady.”
“’Twould
seem you were right about Lord Vali, Queen Freyja,” Tyr remarked, looking
around, obviously in search of the missing warrior. “He is nowhere to be seen… He has disappeared, leaving Lord Odin to his fate.”
“I
remembered that Vali was not happy that Iduna had been betrothed to Hodur. I thought he might be part of some
conspiracy against him – and even that he was an accomplice of Loki.” Freyja huffed her disgust. “I feared he might even turn his sword
against Lord Odin himself, if he were to be alone with him.”
“He
did far worse than that…” Tyr grumbled.
“Delivering him to Fenrir’s brood…
I could not think of a worse death.”
Freyr
had carefully turned Odin on his back, and laid his own fur coat on him, in
order to keep him warm. While doing
that, he examined the injuries the older man had suffered. He didn't like what he saw and grunted. “He is seriously injured, Queen
Freyja," he announced, looking up
to the young woman. " ’Tis a
miracle that we arrived when we did… Or
the wolves would have killed him."
A
moan coming from the injured man attracted Freyja’s attention and she knelt by
his side. Gently, she lifted his head,
cradling it on her knees, mindful to avoid the bleeding wound now cutting his
cheek in two. He muttered something,
that none of them could grasp clearly.
"“If
we do not tend to his wounds soon, I do not think he will survive," Freyr
continued.
“He
must live,” Freyja said fiercely. “We
cannot leave him to die.” She leaned
over the injured man who, groaning again, was moving slightly. "Lord Odin, stay still. We will take care of you…"
Odin's
one eyelid fluttered and opened tiredly; he looked at her concerned face with a
haggard expression. His lips trembled
as he attempted to force words out of them.
"D-
Destiny…" His voice was but a
murmur, and it was all he managed to say, with this first – and last – effort.
It sent a twinge of pain to his head, his face contorting, and his eye
closed again.
"What
does he mean by that… ‘Destiny’?"
Tyr asked with a deepening frown.
He was interrupted by the sound of a horn, coming from the distance
beyond the gorge they had just crossed, and all of them raised their
heads.
"Heimdall!"
Freyja cried with hope in her voice.
"He must have found Thor and they are coming this way… Lord Tyr, go to them and bring them back
here. We might still have a chance to
save Lord Odin… But you must make
haste, before it is too late!"
* * *
Running back to
sickbay in a record time, Doctor Fawn went directly to the auxiliary Room of
Sleep. He barely waited for the door to
open to stride right in; squinting against the pulsating coloured lights, he
looked around to find the bunk on which Colonel White was resting. The unnerving, throbbing lights made it
difficult for him to see, so he savagely punched the button controlling the
lights, killing the effect instantly, and selected a normal light to take its
place. At this point, he
reflected, we might as well stop the light effects. We have nothing to lose, anyway.
He went to
White's bunk and checked on the data displayed on the control panel over the
head of the bed. The readings Symphony had reported him from Bromwell's
computer were repeated here, and seemed to indicate that White's condition was
deteriorating quickly.
"Damn,"
Fawn repeated in echo of his earlier reaction.
"Damn, damn, damn,
damn!" He sat down on the bed, and made a quick physical
assessment of the Spectrum commander, cursing all through it – against that
blasted stupid game, against Bromwell, against the Mysterons… against the whole
set up that was keeping all his colleagues – and friends – from waking up and
coming back to the ‘normality’ of their already unusual lives.
“Come on now,
Charles, you’re not going to do this to me, are you?” he muttered under his
breath, checking the pulse in White’s wrist.
It was far too fast for his taste and neither did he like the irregular
way his heart was beating. Even White’s
breathing had became laborious. So far,
the symptoms didn’t look like anything that had happened to Anna Preston – but
Fawn could read the signs. They were
not good at all.
Fawn unzipped the
colonel’s white tunic, and tore open his shirt, and started massaging his
heart, hoping that whatever efforts he could make would be enough to actually
make a difference.
“You’re not dying
on me, do you hear?” Fawn reiterated, leaning over his commander and addressing
him with as commanding a tone as he could muster. “I will not let you do that, Charles…”
A beeping sound
made itself heard from the comm.link.
“Doctor
Fawn?”
“I’m in the
auxiliary Room of Sleep, Symphony,” Fawn answered without stopping his
treatment. “I’m tending to Colonel
White – what is it?”
“Something
new on the computer’s data…”
Fawn nearly
groaned, hearing the concern in the young woman’s voice. “What now?”
“Nearly
all readings on the Spectrum senior staff are changing, Doctor. They all
increased suddenly - nothing to indicate that they are dying or anything like
that – it seems to indicate that they are… anxious – like if they were all
going through some kind of upsetting or distressing experience…”
“Something is
definitely up, all right,” muttered Fawn.
“I do hope it’s not related to our attempt to wake Scarlet up – that it
didn’t bring something bad down on all of them…”
“His
data have risen the same as the others, sir. If slightly higher. Maybe that has
nothing to do with what you did…”
“Then it might
simply mean that the game is going into the next – and maybe final –
stage. Keep monitoring – and inform me
if that changes.”
“S.I.G…”
“Harmony!” Fawn
called forcefully.
“I
heard Symphony’s report, Doctor Fawn,” the voice of the Chinese pilot said over the comm.
“No change in
Scarlet yet?”
“No,
Doctor. He is still unconscious. But the computer here gives me the same data
about him as the one Symphony is monitoring:
His subconscious seems to be experiencing some kind of traumatic event –
and the scales keep rising.”
“Let’s just pray
that he will wake before they reach the critical stage,” Fawn grumbled. “Keep checking on him.”
“S.I.G…”
“Now, Charles,”
Fawn said, addressing White again.
“You’ve always been a fighter –
you will NOT let a stupid computer game kill you. Whatever is happening in that blasted place, you will continue to
fight – and you will live, damn it – to tell me what the hell’s happening over
there!”
* * *
Blue’s back hit
the ground roughly, expelling the air from his lungs; the viciousness of
Scarlet’s attack was such that it had driven both men down. Scarlet had let go of his sword, obviously
preferring to confront his opponent with his bare hands, and was kneeling
astride him, keeping him down under his weight. Blue had trouble fighting him off; his friend was like a man
possessed, his grip was like steel, and his fist was like a hammer, each of his
punches connecting painfully.
At first, when he
had seen him dump the sword, Blue had entertained the hope that Scarlet didn’t
really want to kill him – perhaps hurting him badly enough to punish him
for whatever he imagined he was guilty of; but seeing the mad way in which his
friend was fighting, it seemed suddenly obvious to him that Scarlet wouldn’t
need the sword at all to finish him off.
He was quite
capable of killing him with his bare hands, if he wanted to.
Blue somehow
found enough leverage to push Scarlet off, sending him flipping over his
head; that obviously took the Englishman
enough by surprise to compel him to let go; he fell roughly onto his back and
Blue took the welcome opportunity to quickly scramble to his feet. He staggered away from his friend, who was
already getting up too.
“I don’t want to
fight you!” Blue said, gasping,
presenting a calming hand towards Scarlet. “Please, I don’t want to hurt you!”
“It is too late,
brother!” Scarlet growled, his eyes flashing with anger. “You already did hurt me! Now I want to do the same to you…”
“Paul, listen to
me… This is not you talking… This is not you acting like this!”
“I do not have
to listen to you!” Scarlet
raged. “Come and fight like a man,
coward!”
As if he had
decided that Blue wasn't moving fast enough, he launched himself at him without
any warning, and tackled with the force and the rage of a charging bull. Blue didn't have time to protect himself,
and his stomach suffered the worst of the blow. Scarlet used the momentum to push him back, and Blue thought he
would fall down again; instead, his back roughly came into contact with the
trunk of the tree to which Rhapsody had been tied earlier. The impact sent a wave of pain throughout
his body, and he heard an audible crack; something had given way – a rib, most
likely. At least, it felt like it.
Scarlet pressed
the attack and brutally pushed Blue’s head against the trunk behind. Blue saw
stars, and gave a loud moan; he could barely stand up, and was threatening to
slide down the bark of the tree. One
last punch into his injured side finished weakening him. Then Scarlet grabbed
him and threw him into the clearing where they had started the fight. Blue slid down the slight slope into a flip,
and landed none too gently on ground covered with dead twigs of mistletoe and
yew; it left scratches and splinters in his beaten body, forcing a grunt of
pain from his lips. Moaning, he stayed
there, sprawled on his side, scarcely able to move, stunned between
consciousness and oblivion, and fighting to get his focus back.
Through a fog, he
could see the victorious Scarlet, standing at the top of the slope, and looking
intently at him.
Scarlet gave a
snort of contempt, before slowly walking down, toward his fallen enemy. Passing by his fallen sword, he leaned down
to pick it up.
"You are not
as big and strong as you imagined you were, are you, my brother? And you thought you would be able to hurt me!”
He walked threateningly toward Blue, a grim determination on his face, as he
toyed with the sword. “Now it is time
to end this charade… dear brother.”
* * *
“Oh no…”
Still monitoring
the data from Bromwell’s computer in sickbay, Symphony Angel was suddenly
interrupted in her task when she heard soft moaning coming from one of the
three bunks behind her. She only needed
a glance to realise it was Blue who had started agitating himself. She was off
her seat and next to him in less than three seconds.
“Adam?”
She could see his
face, showered with sweat, and frowning as if making a violent effort; his jaws
were tight and he was grunting, fighting against the restraints of his bed;
Symphony thought it was a blessing that he was strapped down, or he would
probably fall off the bed and hurt himself.
Was he in pain – or was he just trying to
wake from that forced sleep of his?
Symphony wasn’t able to say, but she didn’t like the readings she was
seeing on the control panel over his head; they were going off the scale; far
higher than those of Rhapsody, who also seemed to be agitating herself in her
sleep. As for Burgundy – the creep’s
data remained very steady… as steady as his rest.
“Doctor Fawn?”
Symphony called. The comm.link had been
kept open, so she knew that the doctor would hear her from the Room of
Sleep. “Something is going on with
Blue! The readings have changed again…”
“I
can’t leave Colonel White’s side for now, Symphony. He’ll go into cardiac
arrest if I can’t stabilise his condition. Is there any indication that the
same is happening to Blue?”
“No…” The best
she could, Symphony tried to read the information on the controls panel. “No… It’s like previously – but it’s like
whatever he’s experiencing in that fantasy world has worsened, somehow. And he’s getting restless.”
“Harmony
to Sickbay,” the voice of the
Chinese Angel then said over the comm.link. She had obviously heard her
colleague’s information.“The same is happening to Captain Scarlet here. He’s starting to agitate himself in the
tank. More than earlier. Perhaps he’s breaking free?”
“Keep
monitoring, you two!” Fawn
instructed. “Symphony, you have training in first aid. If it should come to it, will you be able to
attend to Blue?”
She
hesitated. “I’ll do my best, Doctor…”
Do
I have any choice? she
added inwardly to herself.
She leaned toward
Blue and stroked his damp brow, gently brushing aside the sweat-matted fringe
of blond hair.
“Hang in there,
Big Blue,” she whispered. “I’m staying here… Whatever is happening, you have to
fight it… and come back to me, safe and sound!”
“You are deluding
yourself, my dear…”
The calm and
sinister voice, so close behind her, froze Symphony on the spot. She turned around – to gaze, with untold
surprise, into the pale face of Technician Bromwell, very much alive, standing
over her and looking at her with a very cold expression. The side of his head
was covered with his own blood, but underneath that blood, the injury caused by
the bullet he had put in his brain seemed to have disappeared completely. He had his gun in his hand, aimed at her,
and his other hand was resting on the comm.link control. He had just turned it off, by the flick of a
button.
She paled,
understanding suddenly that Fawn had been wrong about Bromwell earlier… and
that he was not what the doctor thought he was.
“You’re a
Mysteron agent,” she whispered.
He smirked at
her. “Of course
I am. Did you think the Mysterons would really leave
a simple human to direct this operation?”
With that,
without any warning, he struck at her, hitting her violently over the head with
the gun. She didn’t have time to react
to avoid the blow, and fell down to the floor with a gasp, between the two bunks
occupied by Blue and Rhapsody.
Bromwell looked
down in contempt at her prone body. The
side of her head was bleeding where he had struck her and she was either
unconscious or dead – in any case, apparently unable to put up any opposition
to him. He could always use the gun to
make sure she would not, but the shot might attract unwanted attention – Fawn
was still nearby after all, and he had shown already he was a force to contend
with. Besides - it seemed like it would
be a waste of time. He had more urgent
things to attend to.
He put the gun
aside and came to stand in front of his computer, before looking at Captain
Blue, who was still agitating himself in his sleep.
“Dear Captain
Blue,” he said with an evil smile, as he keyed a command into his computer, “I
think it is about time for you to fully join the game now… ”
* * *
"That is
enough!"
Up until now
keeping away from the fight, and watching it unfolding with growing concern,
Rhapsody thought it was now high time for her to intervene. Swiftly, she
stepped in front of Scarlet, stopping his advance toward the barely-conscious
Blue, and blocking his way.
He frowned
deeply, and growled, "Step aside,
woman!"
"No! Not until you hear me out!" Rhapsody
defied him.
"No more
talk!" yelled Scarlet. "I have had enough!" He pointed to Blue
in an accusing way. "’Tis the second time today you take his defence,
Nanna. If this is not proof enough that you are lovers…"
"Oh, please!
How wrong can you be!" Rhapsody said, nearly rolling her eyes. "Don't tell me you give credence to
what Gerda told you? You were right the
first time – Loki put those accusations in her mouth – and then into
yours! You would give credit to Loki's
words?!"
"Loki has nothing
to do with this. Vali exposed both
of you!"
"Vali is
Loki's spawn," Rhapsody replied, insistently. "Haven’t you worked that out yet?"
"Did you and
Hodur NOT run away together?" Scarlet accused.
"We did
not. You don’t know everything that
happened. I was abducted by Loki! He
came after us," Rhapsody said, pointing to Blue. "To stop you from falling into
the trap Loki was laying for you!"
"A likely
story," Scarlet mumbled. "But
I do not believe a word of it! If it
was true, Loki would be here! I do not
see him! But I see the two of
you!"
"For God's sake,
don't you realise what this place is – the danger it represents to
you?" Rhapsody persevered,
gesturing around.
"Aye – and
you think that scares me!?" Scarlet made a step forward toward Blue,
attempting to go around Rhapsody to get to him. The young woman sidestepped to
keep between the two of them.
"You won't
listen to me at all, will you?"
“Neither to you
and nor to him! Step aside,
woman!" he said again, warningly. "The time to talk is done – now is
the time to act!"
Rhapsody didn't
like the murderous flash in his eyes.
She was genuinely afraid he would hurt Blue. And the latter, as far as
she was able to judge at the moment, was obviously having trouble regaining his
focus. He would be defenceless against
Scarlet.
She had to keep
Scarlet – Balder – busy, until Blue was back on his feet, and could join her in
trying to make Balder see sense. For now, she realised, she wasn’t making any
progress at all.
Furthermore, she
was upset – so very upset that he would entertain such thoughts about Blue and
herself, and wouldn’t listen to her.
Of
course, it isn’t Paul who’s having those thoughts – but Balder… Paul would never
think such things.
With
Balder, however… It’s another,
different story…
And suddenly, she
understood why her attempts to get to him were not working: she was trying to reason with him, as if she
was trying to reason with Paul… as if she were trying to reach Paul that way. But Balder was nowhere near as rational as Paul was, far from it. That was a big
mistake she was making and it was obvious now that she would never be
able to reach through to her fiancé that way.
And that realisation made her suddenly change
tactics; maybe she would be able to make Balder react to her – somehow –
before he did something he – and Paul – might regret.
She gave him a
violent shove that barely made him step back, but obviously surprised him.
"You’re a fine one, accusing me – us
– of disloyalty towards you!" she snapped angrily. "Explain to me
why you should care so much – considering how fickle you are yourself
with women!”
He blanched, and
stared at her with a strange expression on his face, obviously startled that
she would speak to him in such a way.
“What…”
“You heard me,
you cretin!” Rhapsody lashed out again,
pushing him once more, this time more forcefully, and this time able to make
him back off a step. “You’re nothing but a philandering scumbag, who thinks of
nothing but taking your pleasure with the first available girl, then moving on
to the next bed!”
Whatever cold
anger he felt towards her suddenly transformed at that moment; he stood over
her, almost threateningly. “How dare you speak to me like that?” he spat
with irritation. “Do you not know who I am, and what you are to me? I am
Balder, Prince of Aesgard – and you are my wife! As such you owe me
respect and loyalty!”
Oh,
big mistake, buster…
“I’m showing you
the same respect you’re showing me, Prince Balder!”
Rhapsody snapped again, looking up defiantly at him.
“Oh, I see…
Because of a few past escapades, you would repay me in kind with my own
brother!? Is that the game you are
playing?!”
“ ‘Few
escapades’?” Rhapsody scoffed. “That’s a rather elegant way of describing
it! I have a feeling that there were more
than a few…”
“What I did in
the past,” Scarlet growled, his eyes flashing, “is in the past… We were not
even together at the time. And now, you
should know my feelings for you.”
“They do not run
deep, those feelings, if you think so little of me - thinking I would have an affair with your brother?! This is
what I’m talking about – that insulting lack of respect you have for me, even
to think I would do a thing like that! How many times do I have to tell you that there is nothing between
your brother and I?”
Scarlet didn’t
reply and contented himself with glaring at her, his jaws tight and his eyes
flashing. She was still looking at him with defiance. It was all she could do
to keep herself calm; already, she could feel her emotions threatening to
overwhelm her.
“What’s the
matter, nothing to say in your defence?” She pushed him again; he barely moved.
“What will you do now? Send me to sleep
in the stables, like you did with Gerda?” Tears were prickling her eyes, tears
of rage and desperation – and of distress, as she didn’t know how long she
would be able to keep it up before crumbling down in front of him. She gave another shove, and he still didn’t
budge. “Or will you use that sword of
yours and kill me after you kill Hodur?”
“Kill you?” By
the look on his face, the very idea seemed to shock him. “How can you think I
would be able to do that?” he protested.
“You are my wife…”
“Whom you’re
accusing of having betrayed you with your brother!” At this point, Rhapsody was
pounding his chest with her closed fists. “And you are prepared to kill him.”
“Nanna, you
should know that I would never hurt you…”
“It’s too late
for that!” She barely realised now that
she was using the same words he had earlier, while talking to Blue. She was continuing to punch his chest,
angrily, the tears now showing on the brims of her eyes. “You’re hurting me more than you will ever
imagine. Worst than if you ran me
through with this sword!”
“Stop it…” he
whispered.
“You are nothing
but a barbarian,” she continued, not hearing him out, “a savage who regards me
as just a possession…”
“That is not
true…”
“… who is ready
to kill his own brother just to remove an obstacle between himself and the
object he thinks is his… Well, I have news for you, buster…”
“That is enough…”
“… You DO NOT own
ME!”
“That’s enough, I said!”
The last shouted
word was followed by a swift slap; on the brink of hysteria, Rhapsody never saw
it arrive and so didn’t have time to evade it. It struck her on the right
cheek; the surprise more than the force of the blow made her foot slip on the
uneven and slippery ground. She fell back, and even as she did, Scarlet grabbed
her by the wrist, reacting just in time before she fell to the ground. She slipped forward and he pulled her up,
bringing her roughly against his chest, and he kept her there, forcefully.
Resting against
him, not daring to look up into his fierce face, Rhapsody’s heart was beating
like a hammer inside her chest. Well, if I wanted a reaction out of him, I
just got it… she mused inwardly, nursing her cheek with her free hand. The
slap had been violent, but hurt less than the fact that he had actually struck
her. She was trying to play down the
act, and somehow comfort herself that it didn’t mean anything at all. He could very well have used his sword, but
he had not. Surely, that counted for something?
You’re
deluding yourself, she
finally admonished herself inwardly. This is definitely not Paul. Paul would
never hit you. This harsh barbarian could NEVER be the man you love… You will
not reach Paul through him…
“D-Dianne?”
The whisper she
heard just over her head, brushing against her hair, made her heart miss a
beat; she swiftly looked up to the man who was holding her so tightly; Scarlet
was looking down at her with a lost, almost horrified, expression on his face;
he was shaking his head, his brow furrowed, as if attempting to decipher what
was happening to him.
“Paul?” Rhapsody
murmured, not really hoping that it was really him this time.
He shook his head
again; There was a guilty flicker in his blue eyes, as he raised his hand with
uncertainty, and caressed the cheek where he had hit her.
“I’m sorry… I- I
didn’t mean to… I don’t know what…”
The voice, at
that brief moment, devoid of that lilting accent, was Paul’s; and hope flared
in Rhapsody’s heart.
It died almost
instantly.
A shadow suddenly
came into view from behind Scarlet, leaping like a panther toward him, with a
roar of anger, sword drawn and ready to strike; alerted to the presence,
Scarlet had scarcely the time to push Rhapsody away from him, sending her
sprawling onto the ground, and to parry the low blow that would surely have
severed his right leg if he had not reacted in time. The violent impact struck
sparks from the two swords as they locked together. Scarlet brought them up swiftly, to find the face of his opponent
only a inch away from his own, distorted in complete rage. Rhapsody gasped in shock, identifying the clothes, but scarcely recognising the
features of the man now clashing with Scarlet.
Blond, untidy,
long hair fell on his neck and across his face, which was half covered with a
short but unruly beard of the same colour; bushy eyebrows surmounted pale blue
eyes ablaze with fury – but unmistakably familiar.
“Unhand the
woman!” Blue roared into the face of Scarlet.
“I swear to you, I will not let you hurt her again, my brother!”
A sinking feeling
of despair hit Rhapsody as she noticed in Blue’s voice that same lilting accent
she had heard from all those who were possessed by the game…
* * *
Locating
Thor, Sif and Heimdall had been rather easy for Tyr, as they were on the same trail
he had first followed earlier with Freyja and Freyr, while they were looking
for Odin. Once he had joined with them,
he only had to guide them back, riding to the spot where they had found the
king of Aesgard.
As
soon as they arrived, Thor jumped off his horse and strode purposefully towards
the scene, eyes wide with something akin to horror at the sight of a wounded
Odin lying on the ground, being tended by Freyja, while Freyr stood guard over
them. He crouched near the young woman
and made a quick assessment of his sire’s injuries.
They
were bad.
He
checked around, and noticed the bodies of the wolves surrounding them, a huge
black beast lying not that far away, its skull crushed and its side pierced by
a spear. He looked up to Freyja.
“Fenrir?”
he murmured.
She
nodded. “The foul beast led his pack
against your liege,” she answered in a low tone. “If we had not arrived, they
would have devoured him alive. ’Tis a
miracle that he is still alive.”
“He
will still die if we do not tend to him, however,” Freyr noted grimly.
“That
is why you are here, Lord Thor,” Freyja added.
“Me?”
Thor asked with surprise. “I am no physician, my lady… We would need Master
Mimir to tend to him…”
Tyr
stood over him, holding Thor’s hammer in both hands; he presented it to its
owner. “You may not be a physician, but
is it not true your weapon is imbued with the power to heal?”
“We
realise you are more accustomed to use it to strike at your enemies,” Freyja
added, as Thor took his hammer, with an unsure expression on his face. “But it is time today to use it
differently… and show us if the legends
are true.”
“They
are.” Sif had knelt beside Thor, and
her confident tone caused him to look in her direction. “I am sure they are.” She put a comforting and encouraging hand on
his stooped shoulder; he noticed the sheer gentleness of her gesture, and it
filled him with assurance.
He
nodded in Odin’s direction, took his hammer by the handle and brought it closer
to the wounded man.
“Take
his hands, and put them on the hammer’s head,” he instructed Sif and
Freyja. “And pray to all the gods that
you know… that it will work…”
"It
may be a pointless effort, my lords and ladies," Freyr then remarked
quietly. He was standing just over Thor
who raised an inquiring – and annoyed – eye to him. Freyr wasn't even looking down. His head was raised, and he was
scrutinising their surroundings, his eyes narrowed with attention.
There
was a low, but still audible curse from Heimdall, as in turn he discovered what
was attracting Freyr's attention that much; he unsheathed his sword. Everyone looked around then.
From
the side of the hills to the edge of the gorge, they could see shadows of men,
standing in waiting, all looking in their direction. Dozens of them, all around, seemingly unbothered by the strong
winds and snow that were lashing at them.
Just
waiting patiently.
Slowly,
Freyja rose to her feet, a grim expression on her face.
"We
are surrounded," she stated coldly.
"It
looks like we fell into a trap," Freyr commented.
"All
of you, form a circle," Freyja
ordered. "Around Odin. We must protect him, while Lord Thor tends
to him." As the warriors obeyed
her and unsheathed their swords and prepared their bows - except for Thor who,
as instructed, stayed near Odin – the Vanaheim queen turned a determined
expression toward the enemies that had trapped them.
"Prepare
to do battle," she announced with grim determination.
* * *
“Adam! Stop it!”
Rhapsody’s
protests fell on deaf ears as she watched, in complete dismay, the two men – best
friends in life, almost brothers – trying to kill each other in front of her
eyes.
She could
scarcely believe the change which had operated within Blue; he was now totally
possessed by the character he was meant to play in this lethal game. Nothing so far had led them to suspect –
even imagine - that the events would evolve in that direction… although
truthfully, Rhapsody told herself, it was an obvious conclusion for the
Mysterons’ plan to succeed. Blue would
never have willingly played their game and killed Scarlet as they wanted him to
do. The only way for that to be
achieved was indeed to suppress his real personality and to replace it with
that of ‘Hodur’, the Viking prince he
had now become, fighting with ferocity and rage, fully intent on destroying the
enemy he was now facing.
As for Scarlet –
if his real persona had emerged for a brief instant, when he had held her in
his arms with a contrite and confused look on his features, it had now totally
dissolved once again, and ‘Balder’ had reappeared almost instantly under
Hodur’s attack.
Both men were
exchanging savage blows with their swords, each delivered with fury and
strength behind it, and parried with equal force and determination. No quarter was asked, and none given, and
neither one of the opponents seemed willing to surrender or retreat. It would obviously be a fight that would end
with the death of one of the two warriors.
“Stop it, you
two! You will kill each other!” Rhapsody had risen to her feet, and was
following the two warriors, as they moved around the clearing that served them
as a battlefield. She had to find a way
to end this fight, before one of them got hurt – or killed. Each blow made her heart pound with dreaded
anticipation. It could only be a
question of time before one of the two men would make a mistake that his
opponent would use to his advantage.
“Adam!” she
called again. It was as useless as when
she had tried to call to Paul earlier, she realised. They were both ignoring her calls – but at the same time, she
noticed, they were trying to keep away from her. They were obviously both ensuring that they did not accidentally
hit her, during their fight.
This spurred into
her a sudden and desperate move; the second she saw both opponents pushing each
other away, she quickly stepped into the middle, disregarding the danger she
could put herself in by acting that way, before they could rush to each other
once again.
“Stop this
madness!” she demanded forcefully,
extending her hands toward each of them.
“You are playing their game!
They want you to kill each other!”
If there was but
a faint hesitation in Scarlet’s eyes, there was none on Blue’s part; rushing
forward, obviously deciding that nothing would stand in his way, he brutally
pushed her out of his way; she fell roughly to the ground again. Scarlet only gave her a glance, and the
hesitation disappeared from his eyes.
With a roar of
anger, he precipitated himself once more on his opponent – it was impossible
for Rhapsody to decide if he wanted to avenge the harsh way she had been
treated or if he just wanted to get at Blue.
Either way, the result was the same:
he narrowly avoided the blade of Blue’s sword as it slashed over his
head and, forgetful of his own weapon that he let drop at the last possible second,
he violently tackled Blue and seized him with both arms around his
midsection. They both tumbled down to
the ground. The strategy worked and
gave him the advantage.
“No…!” Eyes wide with horror, Rhapsody saw Scarlet,
now kneeling over Blue, unsheathing his dagger; with his free hand, he was
keeping Blue’s armed hand down under his knee, and was preparing to stab him in
the chest. The blond man caught his
wrist as he struck, and kept it away from its target.
Both men
struggled for brief seconds, trying to break away. Rhapsody got to her feet again and swiftly approached, again with
the intention of stopping the fight.
That was when Blue finally jerked his knee up and caught Scarlet in the
groin, making him flinch; then Blue let go of his sword to use his now free
hand to get a good grip on Scarlet, and forced him to roll over. They both hit Rhapsody, who was too close to
avoid them, and knocked her to the ground once more; her head hit a root,
half-stunning her. For a brief instant,
Scarlet looked in her direction, with obvious concern. It was
his downfall.
Now sitting with
all his weight on Scarlet’s stomach, Blue took advantage of his position and
violently hit his opponent on his exposed temple with his free fist, not
letting go of the hand that was still holding the dagger. The rage within Blue, his desire to destroy
his adversary, was such that he didn’t hold back. It was with intense
satisfaction that he heard the grunt of pain coming from Scarlet’s lips and saw
him wince. With a cruel smile, Blue
grabbed a rock lying on the ground nearby and raised it. Scarlet did try to avoid it, but he was just
a second too late. The rock hit him
just over the cheekbone; stunned, he fell back, finally letting go of his
dagger.
Blue picked the
weapon and looked at it intensely. A dagger was not enough to finish Balder off
– it would only stop him temporarily.
He glanced around, and his eyes fell on a piece of dead branch lying
just within reach; one end of it was shaped like a jagged, sharp stake… A piece of yew wood – Balder’s only weakness
against death itself…
Blue swiftly
picked up the piece of wood. He was
still pinning Scarlet down with his weight, gripping his throat and pushing his
head back. His opponent, still stunned, was now at his mercy, defenceless against
the killing blow. With a roar of
victory, Blue raised his arm high in the air, the jagged point aimed at his
enemy, ready to strike a forceful blow.
“ADAM! DON’T DO IT!”
Coming from
nowhere – or so it seemed to Blue – Rhapsody, who had regained her senses just
in time to see the tragedy about to unfold, suddenly appeared nearby, shouting
with all the strength of her lungs. The stake went down like a flash… And suddenly stopped, a inch away from
Scarlet’s throat.
Panting hard, Blue
– Hodur - was looking down with blazing eyes at the helpless man sprawled
underneath him. Balder – his brother…
his enemy. The man he was fated to
kill… The stake was pricking his neck
and Hodur would need to give only a strong shove to thrust it into his throat
and kill him – definitely. He blinked
in annoyance, faced with his own hesitation.
What was he
waiting for?
Don’t
do it…
The voice was
coming from inside his head now; a man’s voice this time – his own voice,
calling to him, attempting to tell him something. He grunted, trying to ignore that voice, struggling to push it
away into the recesses of his mind. His
hand holding the stake was trembling, as if fighting with a life of its own to
go down and finish the job started.
DON’T
do it…
“Adam…” The whisper was not from inside – but nearby
again. A female voice… He glanced briefly to his side. Standing there was the Valkyrie princess he
was trying to protect… Nanna…
No… Nanna was not
her name…
Rhapsody…
She knelt beside
him, hesitant to touch him, almost afraid that even the slightest contact would
break the spell that seemed to have frozen him. She could see he was battling
with himself, a part of him – Hodur – wanting nothing more than to kill
Balder, while the other – Adam – would
not let him.
“Adam, do you
hear me?” she said very quietly. “Do
not play their game, Adam... Do not let
them win…”
Them… Hodur
repeated inwardly. The enemies of all humankind. Those who wanted to destroy
them all, to destroy the world… and who
were planning to start with Balder…
The Ice Giants…
No, not the Ice
Giants… Those ‘others’…
A moan coming
from Balder made him look down; he saw his brother slowly recovering, shaking
his head from side to side. Hodur’s hand trembled again. He should kill him
while he still had the chance.
No…
you can’t kill him… He’s your… He’s
your…
Friend.
Paul…
Oh no…
God…
I came so close…
Hodur closed his
eyes and exhaled sharply; his trembling hand suddenly let go of the stake, as
if it were a branding iron, and it fell to the ground. He moved off from Balder and crawled on
hands and knees to a small spring he could see three feet away from him. When he reached for the so-desired and
needed water, his fingers only grazed an ice-covered surface. He grunted with annoyance and hit it once
with his closed fist. The ice was thin
enough, and he was able to take a handful of the water running underneath. It was very cold, and he drank from his
hand, greedily, before splashing his face, in an attempt to regain his
senses.
Crouched down
over the spring, he looked down with glazed eyes at the image the disturbed and
dark surface of the water was returning to him; bushy beard, unkempt hair,
falling freely all around his face…
Only his eyes were familiar, in
the image of this stranger reflected in the troubled water. He frowned deeply, as the undulations he had
caused slowly dissipated…
… And the image
changed. He finally recognised his own
face, looking back at him. No beard,
shorter hair, surmounting a very pale, confused and almost sick-looking face.
Still crouching
by the spring, Blue hugged himself with his arms, and shivered, thinking of
what he had just experienced.
“Adam, are you
all right?”
Rhapsody was next
to him again, and was wrapping her arms around his shoulders; she could see the
distress on his face – the face of the Adam she knew, who had apparently
succeeded in fighting off the influence of the game to the point of regaining
his whole persona. Why he had been able
to do it, she could only imagine.
That would be
something to think about later on…
“You’ve done it,
Adam. You beat them…”
Blue shuddered,
and shook his head; he looked like a man in shock. “I nearly didn’t, Dianne…”
He swallowed hard. “Now I know how it is for them - the total freedom… the absence of any restraint… only the desire to give in to your most
basic and instinctive needs… Then that
hunger for battle and for blood… The berserker rage in me… It was so strong… I nearly killed him… I wanted so much to kill him.”
“You were not in
control,” Rhapsody remarked. “You were
not responsible.”
Blue shook his
head again. “None of them are – I’ve
only been able to fight this because I…”
He stopped, unsure. “… I don’t
know, maybe it was because I already had the knowledge that we were living in a
fantasy world – that nothing was real, least of all the role I was playing.”
Rhapsody nodded
in understanding. “They underestimated you.
You’ve proved stronger than the game programming. You’ve won,
Captain Blue.”
“Yeah…” he
murmured. “But it’s only the program I
beat, so it would seem. We are still
stuck here.”
Rhapsody didn’t
have time to provide an answer as, right at this moment, a fully conscious
Scarlet appeared in her line of vision, standing behind them, a sword in each
hand. Suddenly aware of his presence,
Blue reacted too slowly, and couldn’t avoid the kick that pushed him
off-balance. He fell on his back,
nearly between Rhapsody’s arms, barely avoiding sprawling into the spring. When he tried to get back up, it was to be
stopped by the tip of Scarlet’s sword –
he had extended his right arm and was pointing it under Blue’s throat. Leaning on his forearms, the blond man
looked up, to see the sheer cold determination in his friend’s eye.
He was obviously
still Balder.
Not
again…
“You two are
controlled by the Ice Giants,” Scarlet accused them sombrely.
“You’ve got it
all wrong,” Rhapsody answered. She was
kneeling beside Blue, keeping him half-risen, but like him, didn’t dare move a muscle.
“She’s right, Paul,” Blue said in turn.
“We’re not. But you most
certainly are. You, and everyone else.
She and I… we’re the only people here who are not being controlled.”
Scarlet’s brow
furrowed. “Why do you keep calling me
that?” he grumbled.
“It’s your name,
Paul,” Rhapsody said. “Try to remember… Please, you have to break
free. Don’t you remember earlier? You called me ‘Dianne’. That’s my name.”
He grunted,
dismissing the assertion with a shake of his dark head. “You are speaking nonsense…”
“No, we are
speaking the truth,” Blue replied. He
made an attempt to rise, but Scarlet defensively moved the tip of the sword
closer to his throat, making him stop in his tracks.
His features
grim, Scarlet threw the other sword onto the ground next to his downed
opponent.
"You spared
my life earlier when I was at your mercy. Now I am doing you the same
courtesy. Pick up your sword and get
up. We have a fight to finish."
"No,"
Blue answered, slightly shaking his head.
Scarlet took a
step forward, pressing the tip of the sword even closer. "Pick up your sword and get on your
feet," he seethed.
"No,"
Blue repeated in a firm voice. "I
won't fight you. Dianne was right
earlier, don't you see? We would be
playing the Mysterons' game. I won't do
that."
"I will kill
you where you are if you don't defend yourself!"
"Then you
will have to do it." Blue's tone was calm and resolved, as was the
expression on his face, as he looked Scarlet squarely in the eyes. "Because I won't be picking up that
sword and I won't be fighting you – and run the risk of killing you. If you want to kill me, go ahead. I won't do anything to stop you."
Scarlet seemed to
ponder his words, but was still obviously reluctant to believe him. He took another step forward, and Blue felt
the blade pricking his chin. Although
apprehensive that his friend would thrust the sword forward and plunge it into
his throat, Blue kept his head high, not lowering his gaze from Scarlet's,
burning beads of salty sweat falling into his eyes.
Scarlet broke eye
contact for a brief instant, to glance in Rhapsody's direction; she was looking
at him expectantly, still not daring to move, her hand resting on Blue's
shoulder. Her eyes were telling of her
inner apprehension.
Suddenly making
his decision, Scarlet swiftly removed the sword from Blue's throat and extended
his free hand to him; he grabbed him by the arm and pulled him a little roughly
to his feet, before the blond man could even sigh in relief.
"I must be
as mad as the both of you to even listen to what you have to say," Scarlet
grumbled in an irate tone, frowning deeply.
Blue finally let
out a deep breath, and grinned, as Rhapsody, a now relaxed smile on her lips,
was slowly getting to her feet and coming to stand by him, to look at Scarlet
with an approving expression on her features.
"Thanks for
not killing me," Blue said ruefully, squeezing Scarlet's hand, which was
still holding his.
"Would I
kill my own brother?" Scarlet's tone was abrupt, but there was obviously
more feeling hiding behind it. He
looked at Rhapsody, and then at Blue.
He still had trouble keeping the doubts and resentment out of his
mind. "Tell me about these
'Mysterons'," he asked, trying to hide his awkwardness, and not daring to
look into Blue's eyes, for fear the blond man would detect something was wrong
within him.
"Well, it's
like this, you see… We are…"
Scarlet suddenly
interrupted Blue, well before he was able to actually start his explanation;
his eyes, hovering just over the taller man’s shoulder, had detected something
behind him in the distance, a number of yards away – the silhouette of a man
dressed in black, standing just atop the slope – bending a bow in their
direction. Scarlet acted quickly and
pushed Blue aside, stepping in front of him and Rhapsody and presented himself
as a shield, his arms extended.
"NO!!!"
There was a
whistling sound, and a dull thud as the released arrow struck Scarlet right in
the chest; he grunted in pain and fell backward – right into Blue’s arms.
"Oh
no…" Blue murmured. This can’t
be happening… He heard Rhapsody's
fearful gasp, as he held on to Scarlet, stopping his fall to the ground. He quickly scanned the area, from where the
arrow seemed to come – and saw the dark man standing on the hill just in front of them, his bow in his
hand.
"Loki,"
Scarlet murmured, clenching his teeth.
Black…
"Let's get
to cover!" Blue ordered.
He and Rhapsody
pulled Scarlet behind one of Yggdrasil’s huge roots, covered by thick bushes of
mistletoe. Then, taking the wounded man
under the arms, they gently lowered him down, causing him to wince and moan in
pain. Still conscious, Scarlet was
looking down at the arrow protruding from his chest, with some kind of
astonishment in his eyes. He grabbed the arrow in his trembling hand, and snapped it in two, before anyone was able to
stop it.
"Yew,"
he whispered in a low tone, looking at
the piece he was now holding,
"freshly cut from a tree…"
His fingers opened tiredly and let go of the shaft that Blue took from
his hand to examine. Scarlet leaned
back, and blinked his eyes to clear them of the sweat falling from his brow,
before looking up at Rhapsody who was gently putting his head on her
knees. He could see her pale face
staring down at him. "You were telling the truth earlier… about
Loki…"
"Did you
still have any doubt, you idiot?"
Her words were harsher than her gentle tone, which was displaying a
concern he had no trouble discerning.
"That's
where he disappeared to after he left you here," Blue said, addressing
Rhapsody. "He was making this arrow with a twig – while waiting for Paul
to show up."
"It missed
the heart," Rhapsody realised with some hope, carefully checking the
injury.
"Yeah, but
this stuff seems like poison to him,"
Blue retorted, noticing Scarlet’s pale features and his sweat-covered
brow. He removed his fur cape to cover
Scarlet with it, keeping clear of the
piece of shaft still stuck in his chest.
"How are you feeling?" he asked softly.
"Not…
good," Scarlet answered tiredly.
He was fighting to keep his eyes open and not succumb to the darkness
threatening to surround him. Rhapsody
took his hand into hers and brought it to her lips, to gently kiss the fingers.
"Fight it
off, please," she told him with a catch in her voice. "We’ll help you…”
"Hang
on," Blue said in turn, patting Scarlet’s shoulder encouragingly. He glanced around and saw one of the swords
lying nearby; then his attention returned to the top of the slope where he had
seen Black standing. There was no-one
there at the moment; but quite probably, he was on the other side now – there
were no traces in the snow indicating he had walked down in their
direction.
A blaze of anger
passed into Blue's eyes as a cold determination came to him, and he picked up
the sword.
"Stay with
him," he told Rhapsody, "and
wait for me…"
"Where are
you going?" Rhapsody asked.
"To get
Black… Loki," he added for
Scarlet's benefit. "If there is
someone who can tell us how to escape from here, it's him. And I fully intend to make him tell
us."
"And if he
refuses?" Rhapsody asked.
There was a short
silence from Blue, before he finally answered.
"Then I'll make damn sure that if we are to die, he will die with
us."
He was about to
get up, when Scarlet swiftly caught his arm; his grip still had enough strength
to hold down Blue, who turned an inquiring look toward him.
"Loki is a
dangerous foe to face," Scarlet said, with urgency. "I am not worth being killed
for…" He nodded toward
Rhapsody. "Take her with you and
escape… wherever you have to go. Do not risk your life needlessly."
"Let me
decide if you are worth risking my life for or not," Blue retorted. "As it is – I strongly disagree with
what you said. You might not be
yourself right now, but you're still my best friend – and I know you would do
the same for me, if the situation was reversed."
"Aye,"
Scarlet croaked, wincing against a tingle of pain. "Maybe I would. Maybe…"
Blue glanced in
concern at Rhapsody; Scarlet's voice was growing weaker by the second. He could see in the young woman's face that
she was wondering the same thing as he was:
if Scarlet were to die from that arrow wound here, would he die for real
this time, in the real world? And would
the 'Prophecy' accomplish itself and all of them follow him in death?
"Beside,"
Blue added, seeking to give some encouragement to the fallen warrior,
"even if I did follow your advice and take Dianne – Nanna – away from
you… I don't think she would follow
willingly." He smiled sadly. "I might be in even greater danger than
facing Loki." He squeezed
Scarlet's hand reassuringly, before getting to his feet. "Wait for me,
both of you."
The next second,
he was gone, rounding the enormous root behind which they were hiding. Scarlet turned an enquiring look toward
Rhapsody.
"So… you
still have feelings for me?" he asked.
She nodded her
head, almost dejected by his question. "Of course I do.
They've never changed. I can't
believe you even doubted it for one second – and that you thought I
could be interested in any other man than you."
"Aye…"
he whispered, sadness passing into his eyes.
"Then I must be as stupid as you implied earlier…" His teeth were chattering, and his eyes
threatening to close again. "I am
so cold…"
Rhapsody squeezed
his hand. "Listen to me," she
said urgently, "you will not give up on me, do you hear? I don't want you to fall asleep… You will stay with me…
I know this is not the first time you died, but this time… this time might be different. You might not come back."
"I do know
that…" he slurred tiredly.
"Then you
will fight, okay? Fight as hard as you always do. Not only for me, but for everyone else. If you die, we might all die too. Do you understand?"
"I… understand." Scarlet blinked, trying to keep focus on the voice calling to
him. "I will… try my best…”
But despite the
promise of his words, Rhapsody could also hear – and see - that he was weakening very fast.
He was
dying. And she wondered with deep
concern and sorrow if he would hold long enough for Captain Blue to get to
Captain Black – and find a way to get them all out of the game and to safety.
* * *
Her brows
puckered with concern, Harmony Angel was watching as Captain Scarlet thrashed
about inside of his watery prison, more and more violently as the seconds were
passing by. The data on the computer
screen had gone wild, but the vitals were still strong, if a little erratic,
with breathing rate and heartbeat far higher than they should have been.
And then
suddenly, the data changed, and the vitals started going down; The numbers on the screen went from green to
red, either increasing or decreasing, while the heartbeat definitely slowed
down. Harmony glanced at the tank, to
see that Scarlet, while still fighting against his bonds, was growing
increasingly weaker.
Something
is definitely up, Harmony
thought. Whether it was good or bad,
she couldn’t say for sure, as she was quite unable to completely read the data
on the computer. She needed to inform
Fawn, and tell him about this. He might
know what it meant…
“Harmony Angel to
Doctor Fawn… There is development in
R&D concerning
Captain Scarlet…”
As she started making
her report to Fawn, she failed to notice the door sliding silently open behind
her – to let a quiet shadow slip inside the room and take cover behind a bank
of computerised instruments…
* * *
Blue climbed the
hill as fast as he could, sinking with each step almost knee-deep in snow. He could see no trace of Loki – Captain
Black – as far as eyes could see. He suspected that his target could be hiding
just the other side of the hill, lying in the snow, getting ready to stand and
to bend his bow again – and to shoot straight at his upcoming pursuer. In other circumstances, that could have
worried Blue, but he figured that, considering the thickness of the snow, Black
would have to lose precious seconds to get his footing back, after standing up,
and be able to shoot accurately – which would give Blue time enough to plunge
down to safety, and avoid the shot.
He
could also be lying in wait on the other side, until I show up, Blue reflected. And then I’ll be an easier target for him.
It was very
carefully that he crawled the last yards leading to the top of the hill; but
when he reached his destination, it was to discover that Black was not on the
other side.
Not in reach,
anyway…
The only sign
that Black had been there was traces in the deep snow, first of a man, leading
to larger ones, that seemed to have been left by a horse…
Raising his head
in the direction they were heading, Blue could see the man on his mount,
riding away, toward a nearby hill - and
too far for him to reach him on foot.
Blue got to his
feet and let out a frustrated cry. He
couldn’t believe that his enemy had escaped him…
… And with him,
the chance they might have of leaving this God-forsaken place was also gone.
Suddenly, from
nearby, a voice, with a mocking sound to it, rose over the whistling wind.
"The plot thickens, don't you think?"
Blue turned on his heels; standing just a few yards from him was
Burgundy, looking at him with a sardonic smile on his lips, his arms crossed on
his chest. The man had obviously been
lying in the snow, out of view, and had just waited for this moment to stand
and show himself.
Upon seeing him, Blue saw red, and jumped at him with fury. Burgundy didn’t even make a move to escape,
until Blue reached him.
"YOU…
Bastard!" Blue took
Burgundy by his collar and pulled him up with a single hand, nearly lifting him off his feet, his anger
was giving him so much strength. He was
unable to wipe the smirk off the man's face.
"Where is Captain Black going?!" Blue shouted into Burgundy's face, holding him so tight his knuckles were completely white.
"Calm yourself, Captain," Burgundy advised in a
remarkably calm tone, his voice devoid of the lilting accent common to all the
other participants of the game. “And
please, excuse Captain Black. He has been… called away on a mission.”
"I knew it!" Blue hissed, pushing Burgundy away from
him. "You were playing it all
along. You’re just like Rhapsody and
me. You are yourself in these
settings – you are not ‘Vali’."
"Did you ever doubt it?" Burgundy inquired. “Surely, Rhapsody must have told you about my
involvement in her kidnapping?”
“She did, yes,” Blue continued, pointing an accusing finger at
Burgundy. “And Black… he’s like us too, of course. He never was Loki. Always has been Captain Black, all
along… Planning, scheming… following the plan of his masters – the plan
of the Mysterons.”
“Of course,” Burgundy
answered simply.
“And you came to participate in this game,” Blue realised, “just to give Black a helping hand.”
“Yes,” Burgundy admitted again.
“In the guise of the warrior Vali…
and as you probably know by now, Captain…”
Burgundy suddenly unsheathed the sword by his side and slashed the
air in Blue’s direction; anticipating his move, Blue took a step back, avoiding
the blade, and pushed it aside with his own sword.
“…‘Vali’ is destined to kill ‘Hodur’,” Burgundy continued, putting
himself on guard, a thin smile appearing on his lips. “It will be my pleasure to fulfil this… ‘Prophecy’.”
Blue presented his
sword, holding it with two hands, his face grim with determination. “You’ll find I am not as easy to kill as you
imagine, Lieutenant,” he announced defiantly.
“Don’t over-estimate yourself, Captain,” Burgundy said with a
chuckle. “As you probably know – I’m
quite proficient with a sword. I’ve
been practicing fencing a lot these last few years, when I was human – even
with Rhapsody Angel – and Captain Scarlet, who are quite the experts
themselves.” He smirked. “I do not
believe I ever saw you in the fencing hall, Captain Blue…”
Blue put himself on guard, not even deigning to answer Burgundy’s
taunting. From the corner of his eye,
he could see Black, stopping on top of the other hill, and standing there, his
back turned on them.
He was drawn out of his temporary distraction, when Burgundy came
into attack…
and
he had to parry, rather clumsily, the
next strike against him.
He would need to keep his mind on the fight, if he wanted to
survive it…
* * *
"What are they waiting for to attack?"
Standing in a circle around the wounded Odin, their weapons at the
ready, Aesir and Vanir warriors were looking expectantly at the multitude of
armed men surrounding them in a vast, but close ring from which they knew there
was no escape. None of their foes had
made a single move so far; they indeed seemed to be waiting… for what exactly, the defenders would not be
able to say.
"We are at their mercy," Freyr said in answer to
Heimdall's remark. "They can take
all the time they want…”
"They just want for us to sweat then?" Sif said between her teeth.
Tyr spat on the ground meaningfully. "It is too cold to sweat," he remarked, with a
near-chuckle. "I reckon they are
simply waiting for a signal from their leader."
Freyr nodded his assent.
"I think you are right.
They are Svartalfheim men. Unable
to think for themselves."
"Ice Giants' minions," Freyja noted. "Then the Ice Giants are behind
this…"
"Of course they are, my queen…" Freyr said. "They used Vali to lead Lord Odin into
a trap – they probably orchestrated the wolves’ attack."
"Are you saying that Vali was the instrument of the Ice
Giants?" Heimdall asked with a
growl. "That he himself led our liege here and left him to die?"
" 'Twould seem so, brave Heimdall. You know that it is not beneath the Ice Giants to use mere
mortals to do their bidding," Freyja remarked. "He probably lied to Balder as well, concerning Hodur and
Nanna… And we still don't know what
happened to those two – or to Balder, for that matter."
"I smell Loki's doing in all this," spat Heimdall.
"And you would probably be right at that," Tyr
remarked. "It would be like the
villain to manipulate all of us like that…
All for his masters’ benefit.”
At this point, Thor got to his feet, leaving Odin’s side, and
stood between Freyr and Sif, holding his hammer firmly in his hands.
“How is Lord Odin?” Freyja asked him.
He shook his head grimly.
“I did all I could for him,” he answered. “I believe I was able to buy him a little time – but whether he
lives or dies now will depend on him.”
“And on them,” Sif added, nodding towards the line of warriors
surrounding him.
“Them, as well,” Thor
agreed. He addressed a faint smile to
Sif. “ ’Twill be an honour, my lady, to
fight beside you.” She answered only
with a smile – a faint, but genuine smile that went right to his heart. He looked around and nodded to everyone,
Vanir and Aesir alike, surrounding him.
“To fight beside all of you,” he added quietly. “And to die by your side.”
“Aye,” Freyr added with a grim smile. “We will surely die, but we will take many of our enemies with us
to the doors of Hel…”
There were approving murmurs all around.
Up on the hill surmounting the scene, they saw a lonely, dark
figure appear on a horse; they tensed suddenly, realising that the leader of
their foes had arrived. Now the attack
against them was imminent.
Heimdall’s sharp gaze did not leave the lone rider for one
instant. He watched as the rider
stepped down from his mount to stand very casually beside it, looking in their
direction. Heimdall narrowed his eyes
at the newcomer. He thought he
recognised…
His eyes grew wide.
“Loki…” he whispered under his breath.
And all of a sudden, pure rage took hold of him, and a roar
emerged from his throat, as he lunged forward, holding his spear for the
attack.
“LOKI!!!!!!”
His unexpected action took everyone by surprise, and though many
shouts called for him to come back, he didn’t hear them. He was running, directly towards the man
standing on that hill…
Beyond the enemy line – which had started moving forward.
Behind him, the rest of the Aesir and Vanir readied themselves to
dearly defend their lives.
* * *
Doctor Fawn blew a deep sigh as he checked once again the data
displayed on the control panel over Colonel White’s head. The vitals had stabilised to a normal
rate. He checked the pulse in his
patient’s wrist just to make sure; it was beating regularly, if a little slower
than usual. The breathing was easy and
regular too.
“You must have an iron-cast heart, Charles,” he muttered, getting
to his feet. “You’re out of danger – at
least, for now,” he added inwardly. “If
only I knew what’s going on in that game right now…”
He turned his attention to the comm.link, thinking that he could
safely concentrate on other matters. He
had to check on Scarlet now – the latest report from Harmony, a few minutes
ago, was causing him some concern.
“Harmony, how is Captain Scarlet now?”
“He has calmed down considerably, Doctor,” the voice of the Chinese Angel announced. “All the readings are lower.”
“Vitals?” Fawn asked with a frown.
“For now – lower than when I previously called you. But still within normal range. Although only just.”
“I don’t like it,” Fawn
muttered. “Colonel White is out of
danger. I’m on my way to check on
Scarlet, now.”
“S.I.G.”
“Symphony?” Fawn called again.
There was no answer from the comm. Fawn’s brows furrowed. It
had been some time since he had heard from Symphony. He went to the comm. controls to check on them.
“Symphony, do you hear me?”
There was still no answer; Fawn realised that the contact with the
room where Symphony was standing guard over Rhapsody and Captain Blue – and
Bromwell’s instruments – had been cut from the other end.
Why would Symphony do that? the doctor asked himself in wonder.
A thought suddenly came to his mind.
Oh no… And what if…? Bromwell?
Could I have been wrong?
His mind raced. If he had made a mistake, then something might
have happened to Symphony – and that would not be the only problem, he
realised.
He pressed the comm.link button for a direct access to the R&D
room where Harmony was watching Scarlet.
“Harmony, I might be delayed a bit,” he informed her.
“Something still wrong with Colonel White, Doctor?” Harmony asked with concern.
He hesitated, wondering if he should tell her. He decided against it. Someone might be monitoring their
radio exchange. “I’ll explain later,”
he answered briefly. “Just keep close
to Scarlet, until I arrive.”
He barely waited for her answer and strode out of the Room of
Sleep, directing his steps towards the sickbay reception desk – behind which he
knew he would find something of which he might have need.
* * *
From his vantage point
on the hill, Captain Black had a perfect view of all the dramas unfolding
around him, and was still at a safe distance not to be implicated in any of the
action.
On the North side of the hill, just under the shadow of the huge
tree Yggdrasil, he could see Rhapsody Angel tending to a dying Captain Scarlet,
while a short distance from there, Captain Blue and Lieutenant Burgundy were
locked in a furious battle that could only end with death for one of them – it
was a duel that, obviously, the more expert Burgundy was winning.
Towards the South,
just before the gorge leading to the edge of Fenrir’s Forest, there were the
Aesir and Vanir defenders, grouped around a fallen Odin, and besieged by
Svartalfheim warriors.
Soon, it will all be over, he realised, and the Mysterons would
have won this round – perhaps, a very important round, that could decide the
outcome of the War of Nerves, if the Spectrum senior staff was wiped out, and
Earth left without sufficient defence.
Somehow, that thought
didn’t trigger any particular feelings within Captain Black – no satisfaction,
or elation of any kind for a job well-done.
If anything, the little part of himself that was still human, hidden in
the far recesses of his mind, could only feel sorrow and despair over the
doomed fate of old friends and colleagues.
And also – a bit of selfish hope that his masters would perhaps –
finally – permit him a little rest now – or even free him?
His conscience would never
truly allow him to be free, even if they did let him go – which he knew would
never happen, and somehow that was his punishment for all these unspeakable
acts they forced him to do…
That flicker of a
thought disappeared from his mind as quickly as it came, and Black turned cold,
unfeeling eyes towards the scene unfolding not far from the opening of the
gorge. As if he had given a mute
message, the Svartalfheim men slowly started to move forward, towards the
trapped men and women they were surrounding.
Black saw one of the defenders peel off from the defence line and
charge forward towards the attackers, a spear in his hands. He narrowed his eyes, wondering which one it
could be, that had seemingly decided to be the first to die…
It didn't really matter; they were all condemned anyway.
They would all die shortly.
* * *
For the nth time, Blue parried Burgundy’s new attack; it was
obvious the man had not lied earlier, and that he really had a good knowledge
of fencing – far better than Blue’s.
So far, Blue had succeeded in keeping clear of the sharp blade –
but he was growing frustrated at not being able to hit his opponent, and his
moves were clumsy and unexpected. That
frustration was wearing him out, and causing him to make mistakes… He realised
it, as soon as the tip of Burgundy’s sword cut through his shirt, grazing the
flesh underneath, and drawing blood.
Blue slashed his weapon up, forcing his opponent away and took a step
back himself, carefully keeping clear of another attack.
“You are growing weaker, Captain Blue,” Burgundy taunted him. “Your earlier battle with Captain Scarlet
has tired you out… and you’re moving
too heavily – without any style.” He
pointed his sword toward Blue. “I just
need to be patient and I’ll have you. I
have control of the fight, you see…”
“You think you have!” Blue growled, still keeping his distance and
trying to gain some time to get his breath back. “That’s your mistake,
Burgundy. You and Black never were in
control of this game… My colleagues
proved too… ‘unstable’ for you to control.
Their actions – and reactions – were too unpredictable, right?” He blocked a new attack from Burgundy and
tried one in turn, but his sword was easily pushed aside. He stepped back again.
“There were many imponderables, granted,” Burgundy sighed. “Despite Mister Bromwell’s claims that his
plan was perfect. That’s why we had to
take direct action… to guide your
colleagues – and take full advantage of their unrestrained, basest… ‘human’
instincts.”
“Like putting in Scarlet’s
– Balder’s - mind, those suspicions that led him to mistrust Rhapsody and me,”
Blue spat. Furious at that thought, he
attacked again, but Burgundy parried easily and pushed him off.
“Nice touch, wasn’t it?”
Burgundy chuckled. “We had to
give you a pivotal role in that… Wagnerian saga, Captain. Pitting you against your partner… It was I who pointed him in
the right direction – leading him here to find Rhapsody and yourself in what
would look to him like a ‘compromising situation’. Oh… Didn’t you know? It was you all along we wanted to follow Captain Black
here. Never Scarlet.”
“I should have realised,” Blue said. “The note… It was signed ‘Black’. Not ‘Loki’. Balder would never have known who Black was. So it was addressed to me.”
“Exactly. It was a simple
matter, you see, to prepare the ground.
Pushing Scarlet and you to fight... We at least hoped that one of you
would kill the other…” Burgundy sighed.
“We even arranged for you to be possessed by… ‘Hodur’s persona’, so to
speak, so you would fight more ferociously.”
“So you did…” Blue noted grimly.
“But you failed! I didn’t kill Scarlet – and he didn’t kill me.”
“That’s why we had our back-up plan, Captain.” Burgundy lunged forward, wildly striking at
his opponent. Surprised by the sudden
fierceness of his attack, Blue could only parry, as best as he could, to avoid
being cut in two. He quickly
back-peddled in the snow, and finally managed to push Burgundy’s blade off,
stopping the assault. He had the
impression that his opponent had allowed him this small respite, when he heard
him laugh.
Burgundy stepped back, looking at Blue, whose left hand had now
let go of the handle of the sword; he was now keeping the blade down, as if his
right arm was growing tired of holding it up.
The Mysteronised agent smiled wickedly, seeing his victory so close.
“Soon, Captain Scarlet will die from that arrow wound Captain
Black inflicted on him – and then, everyone else will die too. As we speak now, your entire senior staff is
about to be slaughtered in an ambush… they have no hope of escaping. And I, Captain, will have the honour of
killing you, as it was meant to be – exactly according to legend.”
As he said these words, he lunged forward anew, even more
furiously than he had before. But this
time, Blue was ready, as he had studied Burgundy’s previous attack
carefully. He sidestepped, and leaned
down to avoid the sharp blade, which slashed the air just over his head – he
was sure he lost a lock of hair in the process. But he had no time to waste
over that thought; the hand that had previously let go of the sword was now
firmly holding his dagger, that he had taken from his belt and kept out of view
from his opponent until now. Burgundy’s belly was now exposed, just within reach. Without any hesitation, Blue plunged the
dagger into it with great force.
Burgundy gasped, as the blade sank deep into his flesh. His advance was automatically stopped, and
he nearly leaned over Blue’s shoulder, as the latter fiercely pushed the knife
up and twisted it. Burgundy’s sword
fell harmlessly from his hands and planted itself in the snow behind Blue’s
feet.
With disgust, Blue pushed Burgundy off him and the Mysteronised
agent fell onto his back in the snow, like a cut tree. His eyes wide open with obvious surprise, he
looked down at the knife handle, protruding from his belly - then up to the grim-looking Captain Blue,
who was standing over him, his sword in his hand.
“H-how…?” Burgundy said
with a croak. Blood started pouring
from the corners of his mouth. He
coughed. “I was supposed to win…”
“You changed the
story, Burgundy,” Blue told him quietly, as he regained his breath. “You weren’t fighting a blind Hodur,
powerless to fight and guilt-ridden because he had caused the death of his own
brother. On the contrary – Hodur was
now a man determined to get revenge upon those responsible for his brother’s
fatal injury. The conclusion is therefore different.” He raised his sword, tip down toward the man’s chest. “Sorry – but I’m afraid you lose.” Without even blinking an eyelid, he
stoically plunged the sword into Burgundy’s heart.
* * *
Lieutenant Burgundy sat up straight onto his bunk, suddenly
gasping for air; Bromwell raised his head over the screen of his computer,
looking at the man’s reaction with obvious disbelief. He saw Burgundy’s hands flying to his throat, his fingers twisted
as he clutched desperately for much-needed air, and his eyes wide. Then, as suddenly as he had risen from the
bunk, he fell down on his back, with a gurgling, agonising sound.
Bromwell quickly left his station and strode towards the bunk of
his accomplice; he looked at him, noticed his wide-open mouth and glassy eyes,
and knelt down, to check the pulse in his neck. There was none.
“No,” Bromwell murmured, shaking his head. “It can’t be possible…” He shook his accomplice, as if expecting to
be able to wake him up. “It can’t be possible!” he shouted.
“How can you let yourself be killed, you idiot?! It was you who was supposed to kill
him – not the other way around!”
Bromwell got to his feet, and looked fiercely towards Blue, who,
after agitating himself so much on his bunk over the past few minutes, seemed now to be resting quietly. “It looks it’ll be for me to do it, then,”
he muttered, with a murderous glow in his eyes.
He took his gun from his belt and levelled it at Blue. At the same moment, he heard a groan, that
made him stop. He watched as, from
between Blue’s and Rhapsody’s bunks, Symphony Angel was stirring, and starting
to come to. Still half-stunned, she
raised herself into a sitting position, holding herself upright against the
side of her fiancé’s bunk. There was blood pouring from the injury on the side
of her head, and she obviously looked concussed, as she raised confused eyes in
the Mysteronised agent’s direction. He
smirked evilly.
“You’re just in time, Symphony Angel,” he said in an affable
enough tone. “You will join your lover
in death – in just a few seconds.” He
cocked the hammer of his gun. “Don’t
thank me… I’ll be more than happy to
oblige…”
*
* *
Captain Black was
still standing on the hill, monitoring with attention the battle taking place
below his feet. The first men from
Svartalfheim had fallen against the defence of the Aesir warriors, who were
fighting them off with swords, spears and arrows, with a desperation such that,
temporarily, they seemed to have been given a slight advantage. The crazy man
who had broken from their defence line earlier had disappeared into the waves
of advancing warriors, and Black had
not been able to find him again in all the confusion that followed.
Black was figuring out that the Spectrum senior staff turned Aesir
warriors would not be able to repel their enemies' attacks for very much longer
and that it would soon be finished.
That's when he sensed it.
A strong, mute signal, that announced
Lieutenant Burgundy's death and made
him turn suddenly on his heels. An
improbable sight offered itself to his view.
He watched, as a victorious Captain
Blue, his sword in his hand, was standing over his vanquished foe lying in the
middle of blood-reddened snow.
Impossible! thought Black, as a first faint sign of
emotion passed through his normally unaffected features. Burgundy had the advantage over his
adversary – the odds were all in his favour – and he had been killed by the
inexpert Blue!? How could that have
happened?
He saw Blue turning his attention to
him, and staring at him defiantly.
Black's jaw tightened, as his hand reached for the bow and quiver of
arrows hanging from the saddle of his horse.
Blue was still at a good distance from him, and it would take time for
him to run in this direction, if ever he would attempt to do so. But Black didn't have any intention of
giving him that time; it didn't matter that Burgundy had failed. Since it had to come down to it, he would have to do the job himself.
He didn't even have the time to put the
arrow into the string and bend the bow.
He
felt a sudden, sharp pain tear into him, as he was brutally struck from behind;
he gave but a faint grunt, and staggered on his feet under the violent
impact. Eyes widened in shock, he
looked down at himself…
And saw the point of a spear covered
with blood – his
blood – emerging from
his mid-section.
What the…?
With a grunting effort, he stumbled
forward and gave a sharp pull, extracting himself from the weapon that had
impaled him. His hands instinctively
went to cover the large wound, but he could barely stop it from bleeding. He was still on his feet, although
unsteadily standing, and managed to slowly turn around, finding the strength
not to fall yet.
Just over the side of the hill,
kneeling on one knee and supporting himself on one hand while the other was
holding the spear that had struck him, Black discovered with surprise who had
dealt him this terrible blow.
“Green,” he whispered.
Heimdall – Lieutenant Green – was looking up at him with hatred – and
triumph – flashing in his eyes. He had
somehow managed to get through the lines of enemy warriors, fighting his way up
just to get to the loathed ‘Loki’. He
was breathing with difficulty and his body was covered with multiple wounds,
obviously sustained during his arduous passage – and he was obviously running
on his last ounces of strength – but he had nevertheless accomplished with
success what he had set himself to do.
“If we are to die,” Green said in a
strained but satisfied voice, “you will die with us, villain.”
Black coughed and fell on his knees,
wincing slightly at the pain in his belly.
No… it couldn’t end
like this… He couldn’t be allowed to
die here… It wasn’t the plan…
His masters still
needed him… His work wasn’t done yet.
He had to escape. He had to be saved, and return to the real
world, before he died in this fantasy world…
For if he was to die, it would also
mean Spectrum’s victory…
No… All was not said…
“The game is not over
yet,” he said in a
defiant monotone, looking straight at Green.
And it was as if he was not addressing only him – but the entire staff
of Spectrum, presently fighting for their lives.
Green just had the time to see him evaporate into thin air, but was
already too weak to even be surprised by this strange phenomenon; he fell
forward, his draining strength now barely able to keep him up…
* * *
As she was still checking on Captain
Scarlet’s condition, Harmony Angel turned in alarm when she heard a groan
coming from behind; it was with much distress that she saw Captain Black stir
in his seat, shaking his head from one side to the other. He’s awakening, she thought, instinctively backing off a step. This man was, after all, the most dangerous
enemy Spectrum had ever had to meet – not counting his Mysteron masters. The man they feared the most – and the one they
wanted the most.
Great. He’s here, on Cloudbase – probably thinking
we’re all powerless against him – while he is unarmed and awakening…
It was an unhoped-for chance for
Spectrum to capture him now – the main thing was to act quickly, while he was still defenceless and didn’t
suspect a thing.
Harmony
drew her weapon – the gun she had taken from Petrie earlier – and took a
careful step toward Black. She stopped
at what she considered a safe distance from him, and watched him cagily, gun
levelled at him.
She was just thinking that she would
have to contact Doctor Fawn again and inform him of the new development after
she had secured Black, when Harmony felt something cold suddenly resting
against the back of her neck. She froze
instantly, as she heard the distinctive click of a gun hammer being drawn back.
“Drop
the gun,” a voice – decidedly female -
ordered her implacably. “Do it
quickly – or I’ll shoot.”
Knowing better than to resist, Harmony
let go of her gun, which clattered to the floor. The weapon resting against her neck was removed, and the person
holding it pushed the Chinese pilot to one side. With one swift kick, the gun on the floor was sent sliding out of
reach.
Harmony watched with anger and
frustration as her assailant came to stand in front of her, the gun now
levelled straight at her heart.
Surprise flashed in the Angel’s eyes when she recognised the woman
standing now in front of her – wearing the uniform of one of sickbay’s nurses.
“Anna
Preston?” Harmony murmured with a deep frown.
“I thought Doctor Fawn said you were…”
“Dead, Earthwoman?” Preston
said with a brief smile. “Doctor Fawn
was right. Anna Preston died in that
game world where your colleagues are doomed to be destroyed, too. That’s why I
am here now.”
“You are her Mysteron replacement,”
Harmony said, with barely a nod.
“Very clever of you to have deduced
that,” Preston said coldly. She saw
Harmony eyeing the speakers, and guessed the idea that had surged in the
Angel’s mind. “Don’t bother to call out
– I closed the channel.”
A groan from Black made Preston give
but a glance in his direction. “Stay
where you are,” she advised Harmony.
“You know I won’t hesitate to kill you.”
Keeping totally still under the threat
of the gun, Harmony looked on as Captain Black’s eyelids fluttered and finally
opened, after his long slumber.
Automatically, his almost lifeless black eyes scanned the room, in a
cold assessment. He took note of the
Mysteronised Anna Preston’s presence, without a single sign of surprise – or
any emotion whatsoever - passing on his features. Then his attention was drawn
to Harmony and he stared intently at her.
The Angel pilot could barely keep a shiver from running down her
spine at the intensity of his gaze. He
said nothing, however, and put his feet down on the floor, before standing up,
slowly. If he felt any stiffness due to
his sleep in the same position for so long, he didn’t show it at all.
“The mission has failed,” Anna Preston
told him, and he hardly turned his head in her direction to acknowledge her
words. “You barely escaped with your
life. You must now flee.”
Captain Black slowly shook his head at
the suggestion. “No,” he said, and that single word, spoken
in that inhuman voice that Harmony had never heard before coming from him, but
that others had described to her so often, was enough to freeze the blood in
her veins. “The mission is not finished yet.”
Black scanned the room again, and
Harmony saw his eyes stop; she followed the direction of his gaze, and
discovered he was now looking intently at the tank that contained the still
unconscious Captain Scarlet. Her eyes
opened wide with horror, when she turned back to face Black, and could see
nothing but cold determination in his pale, stone-like features.
“There is still a way
for us to win,” Black
declared in a detached tone.
He stepped forward, towards the tank.
* * *
From down in the valley, Captain Blue
had seen Captain Black being struck down by the wounded warrior who had came up
from behind him; but he was too far away to do anything about it. And if he had to be honest with himself, he
had to admit that he wasn’t that unhappy about what had just happened to Black.
However, he was still concerned that if
Black were to die, it might also mean that he would never be able to make him
talk, in order to reveal how they could escape this fantasy world. So it was almost with desperation that he
took a few tentative steps towards the top of the hill; as far as he could see,
Captain Black wasn’t dead yet, so maybe he would be able to reach him before…
He then saw Black fall on his knees and
vanish into thin air, and that made him stop right in his tracks.
He wondered if Captain Black had not,
yet again, escaped them – inexplicably, like so many times before. But this time, his escape could very well
mean he was leaving them all to their fate…
"Adam!"
The cry behind Blue made him turn on
his heel; he saw Rhapsody, still tending to Captain Scarlet, gesturing wildly
in his direction. Right then, he forgot
about Black – and ran back to his friends.
When he arrived next to them, completely out of breath, Rhapsody raised
despairing eyes to him.
"He's getting worse," she
informed sadly. "And what he
says…"
Blue noticed that Scarlet had his eyes
closed and was feverish; he knelt beside him, and put an hand on his shoulder,
shaking him gently.
"Paul?" he asked.
"Can you hear me?"
Scarlet was shaking his head from side
to side.
"Cold…" he whispered. "So cold… "
"Hang in there," Blue urged
him. "You will get through… Like
you always do."
"Can't breathe…" Scarlet murmured.
"Listen to me," Blue
insisted. "You are not going to die from that arrow
wound. You are not Balder! You are not vulnerable to yew…
Never have been and never will be.
You are Paul Metcalfe – Captain Scarlet – and you are trapped in a
fantasy world where you believe you are Balder."
"It's all in your head,"
Rhapsody added quickly. "Nothing
of what is happening in this world is real."
Scarlet shook his head, without opening his eyes. "I feel the cold… The cold… is
real…"
"Yes, I know," Blue
sighed. "Everything seems so real
here – and if you believe it, and if you die here – you will die for real. You just have to convince yourself it's not real.
You have to listen to us… Believe in us instead…"
"The cold is… real," Scarlet
reiterated obstinately.
"Please listen…"
"Adam," Rhapsody suddenly cut
in. She had noticed something that Blue
obviously didn't. "Listen to his
voice… The accent is gone. It's not Balder answering you."
Understanding dawned on Blue.
"The cold is real," he repeated, remembering what Rhapsody had
already told him about Scarlet's first attempt to break free of the game
control, the previous night – how he was obviously himself for a few seconds,
saying he was trapped – and cold. He
leaned closer over his friend, and
called in a stronger voice, "Paul!
Can you hear me?"
Only a faint grunt answered him.
"Paul!" Blue tried again, even stronger this time.
"Answer me! Do you hear me?"
Scarlet opened his eyes, like a man
waking up badly. He blinked several
times, looking into Blue's face with attention. "Adam…" he finally said in a whisper, fighting not to
fall asleep.
"Attaboy, Paul!" Blue said with a grin. "You're getting back into
control."
"Di-Dianne…" Scarlet
continued, his eyes finding Rhapsody, leaning over him in concern.
She wiped his sweaty brow with her hand,
very gently. "Keep fighting,
Paul. We won't give up on you…"
"Paul," Blue continued. "Where are you? Can you tell us?"
"C-cloudbase," Scarlet
slurred. "I'm so cold… Trapped…"
"Trapped? Where?" insisted Blue.
"Water… all around... Cold water…" Scarlet's eyelids were drooping drowsily. "I'm sleepy…"
"Can you break free?"
"Don't know… so sleepy…" Scarlet’s eyes closed again.
"They're somehow keeping him under
sedation," Rhapsody realised.
"With some kind of drug." There really wasn't any other explanation.
"Fight, dammit!" Blue encouraged his friend. "Fight it, whatever it is. Wake up, for Heaven's sake! Wake up into the real world, before it's too
late or you'll die in here!"
"Don't know… if I can…"
"JUST DO IT!" Blue almost
barked.
There was but a faint nod from Scarlet
before his chin drooped down onto his chest.
Then he sighed deeply, as if he was taking his last breath.
Before Rhapsody Angel or Captain Blue
could realise what was happening, they saw his body shiver, and suddenly…
vanish into thin air.
Like if he had never existed.
Just like Black
before, Blue mused.
With eyes wide with shock, Rhapsody was
now staring at her empty lap, where Scarlet's head had rested a second
earlier. She looked up in concern to
Blue. "Is he dead?" she asked
with a quiver in her voice. "Or…
is he back to the real world?"
“Damned if I could say for sure,"
Blue answered gloomily.
He was desperately hoping for the second alternative.
* * *
“Bromwell! Drop it!”
The door leading into the room slid open,
and Technician Bromwell twisted around to see Doctor Fawn standing just in the
doorway, aiming a Mysteron gun, strapped around his shoulders, straight at him.
“I think not, Doctor,” Bromwell said,
his tone still very quiet, and his gun still levelled in Symphony’s
direction. “I think you understand that
one false move from you will mean the death of your precious Angel.”
Fawn grunted with irritation; he could
see it was all too true. Bromwell would have plenty of time to press the
trigger before Fawn would be able to shoot him with the Mysteron gun. It seemed like a good idea to begin with,
when he had taken the weapon from the security locker, just behind the sickbay
reception desk. Only he, the head nurse, the Spectrum senior staff and the
security guards assigned to sickbay knew the numeric code to open the locker –
a code that was changed regularly. So
the enemy didn’t have access to it, when they had taken the base, and had not
removed it from the locker. Most
probably, they were not even aware of the gun’s existence.
“Nice of you to join us,” Bromwell
continued. “But I’m afraid this new…
‘toy’ of yours will not be useful to you.
You will not shoot me.”
“Are you so sure about that?” Fawn asked dryly. “You still think I would
be unable to shoot you if I have to?”
“You wouldn’t risk Symphony Angel’s
life, would you?”
“What would killing her give you,
Bromwell?” Fawn asked coldly. “It’ll be
one more death to your credit… Haven’t
you killed enough?”
“Never enough,” Bromwell seethed. “The aim of this operation was to kill every
person onboard Cloudbase… So don’t
think I will not be ready to start with this meddling woman…”
“You kill her, I will definitely shoot you.”
Bromwell laughed. “I don’t think you’re able to. You were quite unable to shoot me earlier, Doctor,” he reminded him. “I had to do the job in your stead, putting
a bullet in my head by my own hand, don’t you recall?”
“I thought you were human. Your… ‘suicide’ threw me off, I admit
it. That was crazy enough to come from
a deranged and naïve human being… You
manipulated me.”
“Yes, I believe I succeeded in making it… realistically dramatic,
didn’t I? I particularly liked the line about how the Mysterons would reward
me…” Bromwell added with a grin. “But
you were not that far wrong, mind you, Doctor.
And your logic was without flaws.
Stephen Bromwell was human when
this operation started, weeks ago. He
was human all the time, when, following his instructions, he set up the
equipment, and prepared the ground for the fateful day when the Mysterons would
strike. He certainly didn’t imagine
that he would finally be killed, three days ago, in order for him to be
replaced by… well… me. The operation was
entering its critical phase – the Mysterons would certainly not leave an Earthman in charge of it. It was too risky. Earthmen are so… unpredictable.”
“Whose instructions was he following?”
Fawn asked. “The Mysterons’? And how
was he killed?”
“It doesn’t matter, Doctor,” Bromwell retorted. “You can’t act on that newfound knowledge anyway… And I’ve lost enough time as it is right
now. It is time for the Mysterons to
have their just rev…”
Bromwell didn’t have the time to finish his sentence; there was a
swift gesture from Symphony, as in a last desperate resort, she grabbed the wires
lying on the floor – one end of which were connected to the projectors over her
fiancé’s and Rhapsody’s bunks. During the exchange between Fawn and Bromwell,
she had noticed that the Mysteron was standing on them; when she pulled them up
roughly, they entangled round his feet and threw him off-balance. The gun went off and the bullet lost itself
in the projector over Blue’s face, sending white sparks of light falling
everywhere like fireworks. Symphony buried her face in the bunk’s mattress and
covered her head against the rain of sparks – and from under her arm, witnessed
as Doctor Fawn triggered the Mysteron gun that sent a mortal flash of light –
blue this time – towards Bromwell. The
high voltage generated in the gun hit Bromwell squarely in the chest and sent
him crashing roughly against his own console. His eyes wide open with what
looked like an expression of total bewilderment, he then slowly slid to the
floor, where he sprawled, his now lifeless features staring at the ceiling.
Doctor Fawn walked over to Symphony, and gave her a hand to get to
her feet; she swayed, as a wave of nausea hit her, and he helped her to sit
down, on the side of Blue’s bed. He
quickly examined her injury.
“You might have a concussion,” he noted briefly.
“That makes two of them in one day,” she muttered darkly,
wincing. “First in that fantasy world,
and now…” Symphony glared viciously at
Bromwell’s dead body. “I will really
have to brush up on my fighting skills…”
“You’re been through a lot, and you are tired. Don’t be so hard on yourself.”
“Thanks for saving my
life, Edward… I know how you feel about
weapons, and how much it must have cost you to actually pull that trigger…”
“Yes, well… I didn’t have much choice, did I?” Fawn murmured,
lowering his gaze. “It was you or him –
and it was this Mysteron’s mistake to think I would hesitate one second to kill
him, if it meant saving you – and the others.”
He leaned his head to one side, looking at her. “I will have to check that more closely…”
“Later,” she said, waving his help aside. “We have other problems to attend to at the
moment, don’t we?” She gestured towards the console. “I hope it wasn’t damaged
by that electric shock? We might still
need it…”
Fawn walked to the console and checked it out briefly. “No, it seems perfectly all right. Thank
goodness.” He sighed. “Come on. We’d
better contact Harmony. She hasn’t
heard from us for some time, and she must be wondering if everything is all
right.”
* * *
Captain Scarlet’s first reaction upon regaining consciousness was
panic.
He had awakened with water – cold water – all around him. He was immersed in it, completely. Worse, he couldn’t even get to the surface;
something was keeping him down, underneath the water – restraints he could feel
on wrists and ankles, and around his waist.
His first instinctive response was to fight against them, trying to
break free to escape this watery grave – escape the death by drowning that
somebody had obviously designed for him.
Then in the space of a few seconds, the panic had given place to
surprise, when he realised that he wasn’t in danger of drowning. There was something in his mouth, strapped
onto his face – something that permitted him to breathe freely underwater – a
respirator.
Scarlet opened his eyelids slowly and let his eyes getting
accustomed to the pressure of the water against them, while forcing himself to
calm down. He felt weary, with almost
no strength, and there was the residue of a strange numbness in all his muscles
– he could barely feel his fingers or toes.
He looked around himself, and his surprise – and anxiety – grew as his
exact situation revealed itself to him.
The icy-cold water in which he was immersed had a strange blue
tint, but was clear and he could see through it, and through the bubbles caused
by his own respirator. He could see into a room which looked like a
laboratory. His heartbeat increased
when he realised he was a prisoner inside a glass tank; tentatively, he reached for the surface of
his prison with his fingertips – the tank
was large enough to contain him, but his movements were restricted, even if he
had been free of the restraints holding him down. He couldn’t hear anything at all – even if there had been sounds
surrounding him, his water-filled ears wouldn’t be able to pick them up.
He was completely isolated inside this tank.
Where am I? What is going
on? Scarlet’s
mind was trying to comprehend his situation, but he was still too confused to
fully grasp exactly what could have occurred for him to find himself in this
tank – and even less the full extent of what was happening to him. The last thing he could remember was a dream
– such a very strange dream – that felt so real when he was living it – and yet
seemed so improbable right now…
He felt, more than actually heard, a vibration, as something – someone
– started tapping a steady beat against the surface of his prison; that
seemed to be coming from the other side of the tank. He turned his head around, to see what it was – and froze
instantly.
His heart rate increased again.
Beyond the blue-hued water, he could see the sinister features of
Captain Black, looking unemotionally at him.
* * *
“He has awakened,” Anna Preston told Captain Black
“I can see that,” Black responded
in his cold and ominous tone.
His eyes had locked with those of the prisoner inside the
water-filled tank, who was staring at him through the glass, upon discovering
him standing there. There was still
that spark of defiance in those indomitable eyes, even as he found himself in
such a precarious position, totally defenceless and with no obvious way of
escape. Black couldn’t help but feel
some admiration for his masters’ most relentless enemy. Today, they had the chance of getting rid of
him – definitely.
A pity.
“We have little time to spare,”
Black declared. “Now that he has
left the game, the others will do the same shortly.”
So Doctor Fawn was right, Harmony
Angel reflected grimly. She was
standing right next to Anna Preston, who was keeping her gun levelled at
her. The young Chinese pilot had been able to do nothing else but watch
helplessly, as Captain Black had approached the tank earlier, just as Captain
Scarlet was finally regaining consciousness to find himself held prisoner in the
water tank.
“We have but a few minutes to turn everything back again,” Black said, turning to Preston. “We must kill him before the others wake up.”
“And then they will
all die during the game, like they were supposed to,” Preston said.
Black nodded. “The
senior staff was already in a… delicate situation when I left the game. Killing Scarlet will secure their fate. Doctor Fawn will not have the time to save
them – and the Mysterons will have won.”
Black walked around the tank slowly, followed both by the eyes of
the prisoner inside and by those of
Harmony, and came to a stop next to the cylinder of oxygen to which
Scarlet’s respirator was linked.
Methodically, he turned the first valve, regulating the flow of oxygen;
Scarlet’s eyes became wide, as he understood what his enemy was up to. He began straining against his restraints,
desperately. Water started splashing
over the sides of the tank under his efforts.
“This will be too slow,” Preston pointed out. “And Scarlet being indestructible, he will
revive from it, even if the others die.”
“Then we must find a way to kill him – permanently,” Black agreed, as his hand started turning the second valve on the
oxygen cylinder.
Preston was looking around, searching for something she had seen
earlier in the room – something she knew would be perfect to ensure Captain
Scarlet’s final fate.
There. She found it.
The electric rod lying on the control console, only a few metres
from her.
“I have exactly what we need,” Preston said with an evil grin, as
Black was closing the second valve tightly.
She grabbed Harmony by the arm and pushed her towards the console. “Start walking, you…”
Touching Harmony and keeping so close to her was a mistake Preston
didn’t realise she had made before it was too late. As swift as a cobra, Harmony twisted around, and her open hand
dealt a karate chop at Preston, while her other hand gripped the wrist holding
the gun. The force of the Angel’s
attack was enough to shatter Preston’s cheekbone, blinding her temporarily. Harmony slipped her foot between the woman’s
feet and sent her down; Preston’s head hit the floor with violence, stunning
her; the gun escaped from her hand and clattered away.
Barely three seconds had passed, and by that time Harmony had
turned around again and made a step towards the console to take the electric
rod herself; Captain Black suddenly appeared before her, and his hand clutched
her wrist, just as she was lifting the weapon up; she gasped in surprise, as
she gazed into his cold, emotionless face.
“Resourceful as always, Harmony Angel,” he said, and before she could react, his other hand snapped
around her throat and held her like a vice.
She gasped again, and struggled to escape him, but his clutch was too
strong. He backed up toward the tank,
still holding her, as effortlessly as a cat holding a mouse.
Beyond the face of her opponent, Harmony could see Scarlet,
thrashing about inside the tank, so wildly that it was rocking on its supports,
and that large amounts of water was spilling onto the floor. Surely, now that he couldn’t breathe through
the respirator, he was suffocating – and trying frantically to escape that
fate.
Black was barely taking any notice of the splashing sounds so
close behind him; all his attention was on Harmony, whom he was holding so
tightly, it was hurting her. His hand
squeezed around her throat and she gave a faint whimper.
“All your efforts will serve nothing,”
he intoned as she looked with terror into his dark eyes. “Tonight, all of Cloudbase personnel will
die – starting with you.”
There was a sudden, more violent splashing sound behind, that made
Black turn in surprise; with a last, desperate effort which called on reserves
of strength he didn’t even know he had, Captain Scarlet had snapped his wrist
and waist restraints to finally burst through the surface of the water. Holding
himself against the side of the tank, he immediately removed the now
ineffective respirator from his mouth and gasped in much wanted air, shivering
against the cold, and his teeth chattering uncontrollably. He was pale, weak and barely able to move,
but there was still the same spark of defiance in his bleary blue eyes, as he
glared at Captain Black.
The latter’s jaw tightened dejectedly. “You have not won yet…”
He let go of Harmony’s throat, and tried to take the electric rod from her
hand. This was the opening she was
waiting for, and she hit him with all of her strength with her free hand
squarely on his temple. He blinked under the impact and pushed her away from
him, before stepping back, almost by instinct – straight into Scarlet’s reach.
The latter, despite his present state of weakness, swiftly grabbed him,
wrapping his arms around Black’s neck to hold him in the strongest lock he
could manage at the moment.
“As long as I live,” Scarlet gasped in a strained voice into
Black’s ear, “I will never let you hurt anyone in front of my eyes ever
again…”
As Black struggled to free himself from Scarlet’s tightening
clutches, Harmony took a step forward to help her colleague – just as Anna
Preston, who had got to her feet in the meantime, launched herself at her with
fury. The violence of the attack pushed
Harmony against the console behind her; her back bent painfully, as Preston
held her down with her weight, trying to pry the electric rod from the Angel’s
hand.
“Give me that, witch,” Preston seethed under her breath. “If I have to kill you to have it, I will…”
As Preston, like Black before, put her hand around Harmony’s
throat, the latter propped herself against the console, to get some leverage
and raised her right leg. She aimed a
strong kick at Preston’s midsection, freeing herself, violently pushing her
opponent away from her. Unbalanced by
Harmony’s kick, the Mysteronised nurse
fell back.
To Harmony’s horror, the force of her shove had sent Preston right
into Captain Black; the latter’s struggles, in the meantime, seemed to have
been successful in freeing himself from Scarlet’s hold and he was turning
around to deal with the Spectrum officer when the full weight of Preston came
crashing onto his back. The tank, already unbalanced by Scarlet’s efforts to
free himself and then by the tussle between Scarlet and Black, slid to the
other side of its support and finally tipped over.
Scarlet had seen the danger, seconds before it actually happened;
he had at once let go of Black and was already leaning over the side to escape
the tank when the latter started tipping; he didn’t know by what miracle the
restraints holding his feet gave way at that moment – maybe the strain he had
put on them while trying to free himself and the following struggle with Black
had done the job – in any case, he just had the time to jump free of the tank
as it finally fell off its support, pouring out an enormous quantity of liquid,
and finally smashed down onto the floor, with a thunderous crash.
Scarlet roughly crashed to the floor, thankfully clear of the
falling tank. His naked body was actually sliding on the slippery floor, and he
felt shards from the broken glass hit his right leg; he gave a low grunt, as he
was pushed away by the momentum of the wave of water escaping the now broken
tank. Coughing and breathing hard, and dragging his wounded leg behind, he
crept as far as he could from the glass debris and electric cables lying on the
wet floor… to finally fall on his
belly, exhausted by his efforts, ten feet away from where he had fallen.
Captain Black had miraculously stayed clear of the accident,
managing to stay on his own two feet and jumping to the side to escape water
and falling broken glass. The worst he
had to suffer was to have his boots splashed with water. He backed away, and looked on as Anna
Preston, propelled by the force of the earlier thrust, tumbled over the prop
which previously supported the tank – and fell onto the water-covered floor,
straight into the glass debris. She
gave a loud shriek of pain as the biggest glass fragments cut deeply into her –
and sliced into the soaked electrical cables lying underneath, sending a
massive amount of voltage through her injured body. There was a sudden flash of white light and smoke – and a burning
smell that made Harmony, who was witnessing everything, look away in disgust
and horror.
The door slid open right at that instant, and Doctor Fawn,
carrying the Mysteron gun, stopped at the entrance, shocked by the scene – and
the stench. He watched with eyes wide
with revulsion as Preston’s half-burned body gave a last, silent shudder before
finally lying still on the floor.
Captain Black was hugging the wall at a safe distance, watching
the grisly death of the Mysteronised woman with eyes that were still
unemotional. He just raised his head
upon Fawn’s arrival, and glared at the doctor, who had not seen him yet,
through the thick smoke mounting from Preston’s body.
Black then looked at Harmony, whom he discovered staring straight
at him.
Before the Chinese pilot could make a move, or even decide what
her next action should be, she watched, with untold astonishment, as he
literally started fading into thin air.
She was still staring in deep surprise at the spot where he had
been standing, when the voice of Fawn rang loudly through the room:
“For goodness sake, what the Devil happened in here? Harmony, where are you?”
“Over here…” Harmony
coughed through the smoke. “We’re over
here…”
Shaking herself from her moment of shock, she moved around the
tank, avoiding the many puddles of water, glass shards and wires, to walk
towards Scarlet. Thank the stars, and
his incredible luck, he had been out of reach of the electrical surge that had
killed Preston. He was still lying on
the floor, barely conscious and almost unable to move. She leaned down next to him, as Fawn
carefully made his way towards them through the mess the room had became.
Scarlet coughed and stifled a groan, as pain from his injured leg
assaulted him when Harmony gently turned him on his back; his eyes fluttered
and he looked up, tiredly. He gave her
a weak, but genuine, smile.
“Harmony” he slurred.
“Thank you, Angel… You… saved my
life…”
“I think you saved mine,” Harmony answered with a brief smile,
stroking his wet hair soothingly. “Now
rest. You have been through a lot… You need to heal.” She was unable to say if he actually obeyed her, or if he simply
passed out due to exhaustion, when she saw him nod weakly at her words and
close his eyes, just as Fawn came to stand over them.
“How is he?” the doctor asked with concern.
“I believe he will be all right,” Harmony answered. “Now that he has escaped that awful
tank…”
“That’s… Anna Preston,” Fawn said with a deep frown, looking in
the direction of the dead, still smoking, body lying on the floor a few metres
from them. “They Mysteronised
her?” When she sadly nodded, he
muttered under his breath, “Bastards. I
knew there was trouble the minute I saw communication was cut to this room…”
“That’s why you came with the Mysteron gun?” Harmony asked.
He nodded. For now, there
was little point telling her that something similar had happened in sickbay
for. He would keep that for later. He glanced around, suspiciously, and noticed
the empty seat that Captain Black had occupied recently. “And what about Black? Where is he?”
Harmony shivered, almost despite herself, finally raised her head
toward Fawn. “Believe it or not,
Doctor,” she said with a quiver in her voice,
“but he vanished into thin air.
Just like… a phantom.”
Fawn simply acknowledged the information with a brief nod. It wasn’t the first time he had heard report
of that happening, in the case of Captain Black, and frankly, he couldn’t say
he was that surprised…
In any case, he was far too busy right now to devote time to that
new mystery. He had other things to do at this moment..
“Now,” he murmured moving to the control console, “let’s hope that
everybody else onboard will be all right…”
* * *
As they could do nothing but worry about the fate of Captain
Scarlet after his disappearance before their very eyes, Captain Blue and
Rhapsody Angel came to the conclusion that the best course of action for them
was to keep busy – while waiting for something to finally happen that
would mean their escape from this fantasy world – or their doom that they’d be
staying here and die shortly.
When Blue told Rhapsody what had happened to Captain Black
earlier, and considering that he had disappeared in much the same way as
Scarlet, they thought they should investigate the event. Finding the horse that Black had used to
bring Rhapsody to this place, tied up not that far from there, they mounted it
together and rode towards the hill where Black had vanished into thin air. They found there the warrior who had struck him
down, lying face-down in the snow.
They had no trouble recognising him as they approached his still body –
the colour of his hand, still clutching the sword by his side, was eloquent
enough. Rhapsody was down from the
horse before Blue had properly stopped it, and she was already down on her
knees by the warrior’s side by the time he dismounted.
“Green!” She carefully
turned the warrior over onto his back and saw the closed eyes in the still,
hairless face of Lieutenant Green. He
moaned faintly and she sighed with relief, before probing his injuries. Blue came to stand by her side and she
looked up at him. “He’s alive, but
barely,” she explained. “He’s been
badly hur…”
Rhapsody stopped suddenly when she saw the grim expression on
Blue’s face, as he stared down the other side of the hill. It was only at that moment that she detected
the clamour coming from there; almost afraid to discover what Blue could be
watching so intently, she slowly turned her head around…
… And finally saw the multitude of ill-dressed barbarians, all
armed with swords, spears and bows, doing battle down the hill, surrounding a
very small group of warriors who was fighting off their assaults with a
strength born out of desperation for a lost cause.
“Oh my God…” Rhapsody
gasped, her eyes opened with horror.
“Is that…?”
Blue nodded grimly. “I’m
afraid it is,” he murmured, remembering Burgundy’s earlier words. “The last stand of Aesir and Vanir… where
they all are destined to die.”
“Then… all is lost,” Rhapsody said sadly. She had spotted a cluster of barbarians, who
were now climbing the hill in their direction.
They had probably noticed their presence now – and fully intended to
make them share the fate of the others.
Blue slowly unsheathed his sword, for the last upcoming
battle. “At the very least,” he said,
“we would not have gone down without a fight.”
There was a faint smile on Rhapsody’s lips. They had never stopped fighting until that
moment – they would certainly not do it now.
“Spoken like a true Viking,” she said, looking up to Blue.
He answered with a huff, and then took his position to defend the
ground. Rhapsody was about to stand up
with Green’s sword, when she heard the injured man moaning again. When she looked down to him, his eyes
started fluttering. He stared up at
her, tiredly.
“Seymour…” she started, and stopped – there wasn’t much that could
be said in the circumstances.
“R-Rhapsody…” he whispered, much to the young woman’s surprise,
his eyes beginning to close again.
“D-Dianne… What is going
on…” His voice slurred away and his
eyelids closed.
Suddenly, he vanished into the air – much like Scarlet had done
earlier. Rhapsody nearly jumped to her
feet, her eyes riveted on the empty spot on the snow where his body had been
lying. Just as the clamouring enemy
warriors were reaching the top of the hill, getting closer to them, she turned shocked eyes to Blue – hardly
daring to think what Green’s disappearance could mean.
“Adam… What does…”
“I don’t know!” Blue
shouted over the uproar of the approaching warriors and raising his sword. “Prepare yourself!”
And just as Rhapsody turned around, sword in hand, to face the
warriors who were now on them –
- They both thankfully vanished into nothingness.
* * *
“There are too many of them!” Tyr yelled to make himself heard
over the battle cries and weapons clashes surrounding them. He used his sword to push yet another blade
away from him and took a step back.
“They will overcome us soon…”
That none of the Vanir and Aesir defenders had been killed so far
was nothing short of a miracle from the gods, but none of the valiant warriors
had any illusion of what their ultimate fate would be. Soon, they would fall under the sheer number
of the enemies closing in on them.
Thor looked around in Tyr’s direction, maybe to reply to his
comment but he didn’t have time, as suddenly, before his very eyes, he saw his
ally fading away, just as he was pushing back the attack of a new assailant.
Where he stood, there was now but empty space, nothing left to even indicate
that Tyr had been there.
Before the astounded Thor was able to voice his surprise, he saw
Freyr disappear in much the same way, along with Freyja . There was only himself left, and the Lady
Sif, standing with him over the wounded and still unconscious Odin.
When Thor looked down at his liege, he then saw him too vanish –
as if he had never existed.
What sorcery is this?
Now alone with Sif to repel the enemy’s assault, Thor smashed his
hammer against a warrior who had come too close to her, and took her by the
hand to make her back away with him.
The warriors from Svartalfheim stopped their attack, and watched as the
last Valkyrie and Aesir prince stood their ground, readying themselves. It was but a brief respite, that would be
followed by the last assault.
Breathing hard, Thor turned to Sif and locked eyes with her. “I love you,” he said quickly between two
breaths. “Do you feel the same for me?”
“Of course I do,” Sif answered as swiftly. There was a sad, but genuine smile on her
lips, as she finally told him the words she knew he hoped he would hear from
her. “I have loved you from the first
moment I laid eyes on you.”
He nodded, with intense satisfaction obvious on his face, then
turned around to fiercely face the warriors now very close to them. “Then let us die together, as one!” With that, he roared with fury, imitated by
Sif and both charged the enemy. There
was a violent crash of thunder in the sky…
- And they faded away, just like their allies had done before
them, and everything surrounding them – Svartalfheim warriors, horses, trees,
snow, even the landscape itself, and Yggdrasil last, started dissolving, as if
it was but a water-colour picture being washed away by the rain…
Captain Blue woke up with a start, gasping
loudly as he did. The air surrounding
him was different; it wasn’t cold, and there wasn’t any wind blowing onto his
face or whistling into his ears. All he
could hear was the reassuring humming of electronic and electric equipment
surrounding him.
He opened his eyes and blew a deep sigh of relief as he stared
right up at the brightly lit, high ceiling of the sickbay room, in which he had
fallen asleep the evening before. He
turned his head to his left and found a smiling Rhapsody staring back at him. He smiled back at her.
“We did it,” she told him.
“We did it,” he answered, with a satisfied nod of his head. It seemed to him that his voice came out as
a mere whisper when he spoke.
“Hello, my Viking prince.”
The enticing voice made Blue shiver, almost despite himself. He turn his head and saw Symphony bending
over him, on the other side of the bed, beaming radiantly, and presently busy
freeing him from his restraints. Blue’s
smile widened upon seeing her, and then he frowned with concern; she had a dressing over her temple, which
was soiled with the blood of a very recent wound that it was obviously
covering.
“What happened to you?” Blue asked. God, my throat is so dry – I am so thirsty…
She shrugged. “It’s
nothing… Iduna cut herself shaving.”
“Very funny.”
“I’ll explain later. For
the moment, I don’t have the time. Everyone is waking up all over Cloudbase,
and I expect to be busy helping Doctor Fawn for a while.”
“Everyone…?
Scarlet…?” Blue didn’t dare
finish his sentence. He exchanged a concerned
glance with Rhapsody.
“Everyone is all right,” Symphony reassured them. “As far as I’m able to say right now. Paul too,” she added, turning to Rhapsody.
She saw relief relaxing the tense features of both her lover and friend. “His awakening was a little… hectic, to say
the least, but Doctor Fawn reported that he’s fine right now. The doctor was with him in R&D, when
people started waking up – about ten minutes after he did.”
Blue’s head fell down on his pillow and he sighed again, with even
deeper relief. “It worked then… We’re all back. We’re safe.”
“I don’t know what worked exactly, but you’re definitely
back. All of you.” Symphony bent down closer and lightly kissed
his lips. “And am I glad YOU’RE back,
Big Blue, and you’ve finally deigned to leave the world of dreams…”
“Do you have any idea how
much effort we had to make to leave that ‘world of dreams?” Blue asked with a
frown.
“Oh, I have an idea…” She
kissed him again and got to her feet.
“And I love you even more for being the hero you are.” She smiled again. “Now will you be a dear, and finish freeing Rhapsody for me? I have work to do.”
“With that wound of yours?” Blue asked, as he rose into a sitting
position and put his feet to the floor.
He grimaced. His whole body was
killing him. He’d be nursing painful
muscles for the next few days, he was sure of it.
“For now, there’s only Doctor Fawn, Harmony and myself to monitor
everyone’s waking up,” Symphony reasoned, as Blue leaned over Rhapsody to
remove the last of her restraints. “I
have to make do.”
“Then we’ll give you a hand,” Rhapsody offered, now free and sitting up on her bunk. She
frowned at the sound of her own voice and looked around. “Is there any water
around here?”
Symphony handed her a glass that the English pilot took greedily,
sipping the contents with obvious delight.
“Rhapsody is right. We’ll help you,” Blue said in turn.
“After what you’ve been through?
You’ll have to rest a little…”
“And what about you?
Shouldn’t you be resting too?”
Blue asked. He accepted the glass Rhapsody was handing him and drank in
turn.
“My ordeal can’t have been as terrible as yours. And beside, I woke up a few hours ago
already.”
“How come…?”
“Again – I’ll explain later.
I will admit though,” Symphony said a little sheepishly, “that I’m
feeling kind of tired, but I’ll think about getting some rest later. And no,”
she added quickly before Blue could comment, “I will not use the Room of
Sleep. Not for a while. And even
if I wanted to, the darn thing is offline, anyway.” She pointed to the console. “I’ll just monitor everyone’s
progress from this computer here, don’t worry about me.”
“Then how about you tell us everything that happened, while we’re
helping you out?” Blue offered, getting
to his feet. “We won’t overexert ourselves,
if you don’t either. But,” he added as
she smiled again in a thankful way, “I won’t do anything before having some
more water to drink – and something to eat…
I’m famished and my throat is as dry as sandpaper.”
“The same for me,” Rhapsody said in a pleading voice, her hand
resting on her stomach. “I feel as if
I’m starving to death…”
“I can understand the feeling,” Symphony chuckled. “There’s some fruit at the nurses’ station
and on the reception desk. It’s not
much, but it’s fresh… Help yourselves… And bring me an apple, please. A big, red,
juicy apple… In the meantime, I will
call Doctor Fawn in R&D – and tell him you have woken up. He’ll be pleased to know you’re all right
and ready to help!”
* * *
“Melody! Wait!”
Hearing
the male voice calling to her from a short distance behind in the corridor,
Melody Angel didn’t even slow down.
Instead, she quickened her pace, making a show of pretending she had not
heard anything. She heard the man
following her break into a run.
“Mag! Please, wait for me.”
The
shout was a little too loud for her to continue feigning she didn’t hear
it. She stopped, just in front of the
door to her quarters and sighed deeply, raising her eyes to the ceiling, a
defeated expression on her face. She
had regained her composure by the time her pursuer had reached her; she turned around just as he was about to
touch her arm, and stood as tall as she could before him, looking him in the
eyes.
“Yes,
Captain Ochre? What can I do for you?”
His
hand lowered, without coming into contact with her. He gave her a puzzled look.
“I’ve
been trying to talk to you since we woke up from that… er… game last evening,”
he told her. “I wanted to ask you…” He
lowered his gaze. “… How are you?”
“I’m
fine, thanks,” Melody answered. “Well – a little frustrated, maybe, because
Doctor Fawn signed me off duty for the remainder of the week.”
“He
put nearly all of us off duty, after he released us from sickbay. Or at least, on light duty for a little while,” Ochre remarked. “We kind of think we’re indispensable, don’t
we? Don’t worry, they found someone to
take the Angel duty during that time.
Beside, Harmony is still there to supervise the replacements…”
“It’s
not that I’m worrying about,” Melody interrupted before he could continue. “Working helps me cope.”
“Cope
with what?”
“Well
– the situation, of course… It’s not
every day you wake up to discover the dream you were having was shared with
four hundred plus people…”
He
raised a brow. “How about ‘shared with
one specific individual’? Me?”
“What
about you?” Melody asked, matter-of-factly.
This
time, Ochre frowned slightly. “Mag, I’m not stupid, you know? I’ve noticed. You’ve been avoiding me since yesterday. I’ve barely seen you…”
“That’s
not true!” she scoffed. “I do remember
we’ve seen each other a few times…”
“Yeah,
but you carefully made sure that it would be while others were around, so we
would not be alone together, you and I, at anytime.” Hearing footsteps approaching, Ochre stopped
and looked on as a technician passed by them, going about her business, without
apparently paying any attention to them.
He waited until she was out of earshot before looking again at
Melody. The latter had grown very quiet
– and looked slightly uncomfortable. “I
want to talk to you about what happened during that game.”
“Captain
Ochre… I assure you there is nothing…”
“Rick. Look, I know it was embarrassing and all –
having to cope with everybody else about those strange events… How we all interacted with each other…”
“Yes,
you can say it’s embarrassing,” she admitted, between clenched teeth. “But not to the point where I can’t move on
from there. I know we were all acting out of character. We were not ourselves, and had no control –
each of us obeying the programming that was put into our minds. So I don’t hold a grudge against anyone, I
assure you. And that includes you,
Captain.”
“Rick,”
he insisted again. He tilted his head to one side, looking at her with
attention. “Are you sure we acted so
out of character – you and I?”
She
glared at him. “If you are telling me
you liked seeing me as a prisoner, chained and humiliated in front of a bunch
of drooling, ill-bred barbarians…”
Ochre
automatically held up his hands to stop
her. Obviously, it was still a sore
point, and it was better not to go into it.
“No, nothing like that,” he assured her. “I mean – what actually happened between you and
I…”
“Nothing
happened,” she pointed out. “Nothing of
what you’re implying anyway…” she added, turning around and entering the
numeric code to unlock her door.
“Yeah but…
It’s not as if we actually didn’t want it…”
The door slid open and Melody, who was about
to enter, stopped in the doorway, her back turned to Ochre. She glared at him over her shoulder. “I blacked your eye,” she reminded him.
“A
gentle love tap,” he said, with a shy smile, approaching one step as she turned
around. “I know that’s what… ‘Sif’
meant it to be.”
“You would be arrogant enough to think so…”
Melody said, staying on her guard. Despite her assertion to the contrary, she
still felt a little awkward, with him now so very close to her. “I give quite another description to that
‘love tap’, Captain.”
“Do
you?” he said with a grin. “If we’d had
more time, Mag…” he bent down to kiss her but she stopped him, putting a hand
on his chest.
“But
we didn’t,” she remarked.
“Circumstances
didn’t allow it. We were too busy
fighting for our lives, I believe. But
what you said to me, just before we left the game…”
“What
Sif said to Thor,” Melody corrected him. “Remember, we were still playing roles.”
“Were
we?” Ochre asked, lifting a brow.
“Beside,
there’s nothing to say that she really meant it,” Melody reiterated.
“You
think so?”
“She
– they were about to die. You can say
anything at all when you’re about to die.”
“I
tend to think that truth often comes out when you’re about to die,”
Ochre said, thoughtfully.
Melody
shrugged, without caring to answer. She
turned back and stepped into her quarters.
Ochre stood in the doorway, leaning on the frame, looking thoughtfully
at her. The smile on his lips enlarged
slowly, and he stepped nonchalantly into the room, the door sliding closed as
he cleared the doorway.
“You
know – I checked them out on Worldnet.”
Melody
turned on her heel to face him again,
with an inquiring look; her first move was to ask him why he was entering her
quarters uninvited, but she was rather curious to know what he was on about.
“Who?”
“Thor
and Sif… I mean – those from Norse
mythology?” Ochre stopped in front of
Melody, grinning. “They were quite in love
with each other.”
“Really
now?” Melody retorted. “That didn’t save them from Ragnarok,
though…”
“In
a way, it did.”
“But
if Ragnarok means the End of the World…”
“Did
you know there’s a later version of the Ragnarok story?” Ochre explained. “An addition to the tale actually – there
were a few gods who actually survived – or were even resurrected – once the
battle between good and evil was done, and the Earth was purged by fire of
nearly everything… That would be the
dawn of a perfect era, where everyone would live happily ever after. Balder would resurrect of course – no
surprise there, actually. I mean –
those indestructible guys have all the luck.
And his brother Hodur too…”
“And
Thor and Sif?”
“No,
those two died during Ragnarok.”
“But
you said…”
“I
said that in a way, they survived Ragnarok.” Ochre looked thoughtfully at Melody. “Through their sons.”
“Sons?”
Melody repeated.
“Apparently,
those Thor and Sif had less trouble than us in…” Ochre rose a brow, “… shall we say, getting together?”
Melody
lowered her eyes. “Captain…”
“Rick. I keep telling you to call me Rick. Or Richard, if you prefer.” He took her by the arms, gently, and that
compelled her to look up to him again. He was smiling at her.
She
sighed deeply. “I never know when you
are serious with me,” she finally blurted. “I can never know if you are leading
me on or not…”
“But
I am serious, Mag. Well, right now I
am.” Ochre sighed in turn, seeing the
confusion – and the doubt in her eyes.
“Look… if I hurt you – in any way – during the adventure in the
Land of the Vikings, I assure you, I didn’t mean to do it. But for all the rest – I regret
nothing. Except, perhaps… for that missed opportunity for us to be
together.”
“By
‘missed opportunity’ – you mean… ‘sleeping together’, right?” Melody asked, raising a brow. She shook her head. “First of all, I’m not sure it would have really
mean something. It was all
make-believe, Captain. Only a trick of
the mind. It would not have really
happened.”
“Yeah… But at least it could have been the start of
something, don’t you think? I
mean for you and me?”
She
raised a brow, her face a mask of imperturbability “Secondly…”
“Yeah,
I know.” Sighing again, he let go of
her arms. Obviously he wasn’t going to get through to her today.
“Sleeping together is hardly a
way to start a relationship. There’s a
lot more to it than that, and all that jazz…
Well, you’re right, Mag, and I’m a jerk for even thinking it could have
worked. I’m a jerk and an opportunist –
what, thinking I could have taken advantage of the situation to end up in bed
with you... You are right in thinking
I’m a despicable character. I’m sorry
if I’ve bothered you with that.” He turned around toward the door. “It was just a silly notion I had that we
could start something together – for real this time. My mistake, I think.”
Ochre
was starting to walk away, but he felt Melody’s hand suddenly seize his forearm
and pull him to her. He turned around
in surprise, and bumped into her, as she took a step forward. She was looking up at him, straight in the
eyes, with a very serious expression upon her face.
“Secondly,”
she continued, “I never thought you were an opportunist – nor a
despicable character. Okay, infuriating
at times, but never despicable. And
lastly…” She lowered her eyes briefly,
in a falsely coy fashion, before raising them, and looking up at him again,
this time mischievously. “… Don’t you think it would mean far more if we were
to do it for real – instead than in some silly computer game?”
He
frowned, unsure if he had heard her well.
“Do it for real?” he repeated.
She nodded, silently. “You mean…
you and I… together… We’d be…”
“Boy,
are you slow to catch on…” Melody said, with a mockingly dejected sigh.
His
frown deepened. “Now it’s me who can’t decide if you’re serious or not…”
“Well,
now you know how I feel half the time with you. Let me show you how serious I am…” That said, Melody put her arms around his shoulders and, hanging
from his neck, she tiptoed as high as she could to press her lips against
his. The first moment of surprise past,
he took her into his arms, bending down a bit so she could reach him
easier.
The
kiss they exchanged was deep, and lingered on.
When their lips finally parted, they looked at each other, smiling with
the same kind of contented – if somewhat sheepish – expression on their faces.
“Boy – Mag, when you come on… you certainly
come on!”
“So
– do you still think I am not serious now?” Melody asked.
Ochre
started laughing and gathered her up into her arms, swiftly and
effortlessly. She didn’t do anything to
stop him. “Oh, I knew all along you
were serious,” he replied nonchalantly, as he walked toward the bedroom with
his precious load. “You know you can’t kid a kidder, honey…”
To
that she simply rolled her eyes.
* * *
“I should have known
you would be here. Doctor Fawn will
have your hide for this.”
Seated at the circular
command desk in the Control Room, with his feet up, Captain Blue lifted his
head from the document he was reading and gave a sideways glance in the
direction of Symphony Angel who had just entered the room and was now walking
purposefully toward him. The stern expression on her face was every bit a match
for the tone he had heard in her voice. “What?” he asked, lifting an inquiring
brow. “Someone has to man this station…”
“Someone, but
not you. You are supposed to be on light duty,” Symphony reminded
him. “And if I remember correctly, that
would be starting after tomorrow. Today, you are off duty, and should be resting completely. Doctor’s orders.”
“Quite frankly, this
is as light as you can get. I’m not
doing that much…” He put the papers
down and waved at his risen feet as proof.
“See? I am resting.”
“Right. And I’m Little Red Riding Hood...”
“The colour would suit
you,” Blue said, grinning and putting his feet down. “How did you find me?”
Symphony scoffed. “You think that was that difficult? I found Captain Magenta in sickbay – he
came to visit Lieutenant Green and ask questions about the computer security
and communication systems. As I
understand it, Magenta has been working to get communications back online and
to give the databanks a thorough cleaning, to get rid of the last of the
programming Bromwell installed in them
for the Twilight of the Gods game. By the way, why is he doing
all that? Shouldn’t he be resting, like
the rest of us?”
“Correction: Pat was simply monitoring the work,”
Blue retorted. “He promised he wouldn’t
lift a finger.”
“You are quite naïve
if you believed that!”
“…And the teams under
his supervision did a wonderful job too,” Blue continued, feigning not to hear
her interruption. “Almost everything is
already back online and in perfectly good working order – we just need to run a
few security checks to make sure that…”
“You’re as bad as each
other!” Symphony broke off again, standing next to him, and pointing an
accusing finger at him. “You can’t rest and Pat can’t rest either! What are we going to do with the both of
you?!”
“What can I say –
working on the computers seems to be helping Pat to relax. How could I refuse him?”
“And riding this desk
helps you relax?” There was a
doubtful tone to Symphony’s voice. “I
ought to denounce you to Fawn – for your own sake!”
Blue rolled his
eyes. “Shouldn’t you be resting
yourself, instead of spying on us?” he admonished her. “Like ‘not stay on your feet for too long,
considering you have a slight concussion’?
Take a seat, that’s an order.”
“I thought you would
never ask.” She literally fell onto his
lap, and encircled him with her arms, looking into his face with a large
grin. He frowned at her.
“What do you
think you’re doing?”
“Obeying your
order.” She shrugged. “This is a comfortable place to rest.”
“This is the commander’s
chair.”
“No… this is your
lap. Your butt is on the commander’s
chair.”
“Karen – don’t you
have any sense of decorum? And can’t
you be serious one minute? I have work to do…”
“No, you
don’t. Now you will call Captain
Maroon – who arrived fresh from London Headquarters early this morning,
with a full team of agents to take over from us while we’re recuperating – and
you will pass over the chair of command to him. That’s where he should be, not you.”
Blue sighed with
annoyance and Symphony could have sworn he was now pouting; that didn’t deter
her in the least, even if it amused her greatly. She continued to stare at him with as stern an expression as she
could muster. “Well? What will it be? Will you go quietly or do I have to make a call to Doctor Fawn –
who is in charge of things at the moment?”
Blue grimaced. “Maroon and his team…” he muttered. “They’re only a skeleton crew…”
“Perhaps, but there’s
enough of them to man the essential stations,” Symphony pointed out. “And to help with the proper repairs. And it’s only for a couple of days, Big
Blue.”
“And if there is an emergency?”
“Maroon has experience
in command – he’ll know what to do.”
Symphony paused a second, then permitted herself a faint smile. “Beside, if there is an emergency, I expect
to see Colonel White ejecting him out of his
chair faster than he could say ‘S.I.G.’
So he’d better be good at his job…”
“He’d better be,
yeah,” Blue mumbled.
“Will you stop
worrying?” Symphony admonished him,
punching him playfully on the chest.
“Ouch! Careful!
That’s typical of you, hitting me when I’m unable to defend myself!”
“You were always
quite defenceless against me, Big Blue,” she chuckled mockingly.
“Well, as long as you
promise never again to threaten me with a knife, I can accept almost
anything from you… almost.”
She grimaced. “Are you ever going to forget that”? she
said, blushing. “Or that whole Valkyrie
episode, for that matter?”
“Never. You were really too sexy, as a Viking
princess. Too bad we weren’t able to
take pictures…”
“Oh please… Tell me you’re joking…”
Blue laughed. Pushing
her off him slightly, he unzipped his breast pocket and fished a small object
out of it. Symphony watched his gesture
with curiosity, but whatever he took from his pocket, he was now carefully
hiding in his closed fist, so she could not see what it was. He gently reached for her hand.
“What are you up
to?” she asked with a raised brow.
“Don’t ask questions,
just be the Angel you normally are and give me your hand.”
She complied and then
he opened up his own hand. Between his
fingers, he was holding a small, white-gold ring, with a single, finely cut
blue stone shining brightly on top.
Symphony opened eyes wide with astonishment as, almost reverently, Blue
slid the ring onto her ring finger.
“This comes from my
great-grandmother,” Blue explained.
“The ring, that is. The original
stone was lost years ago, but my mother always kept it anyway. She… sent it to me recently – not long after
we returned from Las Vegas. I wonder if
my Dad had mentioned you to her and she might have thought I would eventually
need this. Naturally, she would not
tell – which is quite like her. I
always suspected she might have E.S.P. powers…”
“Adam, this is…
wonderful,” Symphony whispered, admiring the ring. “Your great-grandmother’s ring…
You said… the original stone was lost?”
“Yeah. So I had it replaced by this one,” Blue
answered, pointing to the stone. “A
blue diamond – the job was done by a jeweller in Los Angeles, while I was
there. He did a wonderful job, fitting
it nicely onto the ring.”
Blue kept to himself
the fact that he had gone to a Hell of a lot of trouble to actually have the
whole job finished in time, before his return to Cloudbase. The work schedule in Los Angeles had only
permitted him to send the ring to the jeweller by private courier, and he had
contacted him by videophone for the specifications. Only on the very last day, when he had finally been able to free
himself from his work, was Blue able to go to the jeweller, and finally take
delivery of his precious gift – and to supervise the details of the latest modifications.
“He also resized the ring, so it would fit
your finger.”
“How?” Symphony asked,
raising a curious brow. “Since I wasn’t
there to lend my hand…”
“There was a salesgirl
in the jewellery shop whose hands were just the same size as yours,” Blue said,
with a wink. “I took the measurements
myself with her fingers…” He delicately
kissed the top of her hand. “This is
your engagement ring, darling. A proper
engagement ring this time.”
“Oh, Adam… You know it
could have been a cigar ring, for all I care – but I am truly touched… This is such a wonderful gift.” She leaned to kiss him on the cheek. “… Coming from a wonderful man.”
“Do I get only that
as a thank you?” he asked with a grimace.
“That was for your
mom. This…” Symphony leaned closer to his lips. “This… is for you.”
With that, she gave
him a very passionate kiss.
* * *
Rhapsody
Angel quietly entered the sickbay room through the sliding door to discover
Captain Scarlet lying in bed with his eyes closed. He was half propped up on his
pillows and looked like he was deeply asleep, so she tiptoed over to him, as
the door slid closed behind her. As she
leaned over Scarlet, brushing his forehead with her lips, he sighed deeply and
stirred. She leaned back and watched
as he opened his eyes.
“Hi,
Angel,” he slurred as he beamed up at her.
“Am I glad to see you…”
“And
am I glad to see you,” she answered with a smile of her own. She bent to him and lightly kissed his
lips. “I missed you… I mean the real you. How are you?”
“Better
than I was – before you walked in.”
“That’s
so sweet of you to say…” She smiled,
stroking his cheek. “You will shave
this stubble of yours, won’t you?”
“Oh,
that…” he rubbed his rough chin,
offering her a sheepish grin. “Reminds
you too much of that Balder fellow, does it?
I promise, as soon as I can, it’s gone.
I’m afraid I haven’t had time lately – being immersed in drugged water
and all for three days. You know… normal stuff like that?”
“I
heard about that,” Rhapsody said, her tone sad, while looking straight into his
face. “It must have been terrible… Are
you all right?”
“Waking
up in it was kind of panic-making,” he admitted with a shake of his head. “But…
I’ll survive. As I always do.”
“You
look tired.”
“I
am. Doctor Fawn ordered me to take a
full week of rest – completely off duty.
Quite frankly, I can’t say I’m unhappy with that – for once.”
“My
poor love… Come here. I have exactly
what you need to recover fully.”
Rhapsody
leaned again to kiss him, this time more fervently and he answered in kind,
stroking her hair as he did so, then the nape of her neck, her cheek… When they finally broke the kiss, she leaned
her forehead against his, her eyes closed, and sighed.
“And
what about you?” Scarlet asked. “How
are you?”
“Oh,
quite fine – I’m off duty for the rest of the day and then light duty… for a few more days, I believe. I didn’t suffer as much as you obviously
did.” Rhapsody drew away slightly from
him and sat down on a nearby chair, holding his hand in hers.
“Are
you sure?” Scarlet insisted.
“Yes,
perfectly. I’m fine, I assure you.”
Scarlet
didn’t seem convinced. “I’m so sorry for what happened, Dianne…” he whispered
tenderly. “What I did – and what I said
to you. Really, you don’t know how
much…”
“It’s
all right,” she answered. “You were not
yourself – nobody was, during that game.
So I can hardly blame you, can I?”
“I
wouldn’t be surprised if you did blame me… Because I do blame myself.
Even if I wasn’t myself, as you say – I can’t help feeling responsible
for whatever harm I did to you – when I was that… ‘barbarian’. When I think of what I did, especially to
you – and to Adam – under the influence of that game… The worst part of it is
that I remember everything. Not
like that time when the Mysterons took control of me…” He stroked her cheek. “I so wish I could erase all the pain I
caused you. I feel so – ashamed…”
“Hey,”
she said gently, “you have no reason
to, I can assure you.”
“I
practically raped you.”
Rhapsody
scoffed. “You did not! As Balder, you were still a pretty decent
guy – for a rough-edged barbarian, that is.
Beside,” she added with a smirk, “nothing happened between us that I
didn’t consent to.”
“I
wasn’t too… rough, with you?”
“There
was still a huge part of you present in Balder – that I believe would not have
permitted him to hurt me. I realised
that the minute I was in his arms – your arms.”
“But
I did hit you,” Scarlet recalled sombrely.
She
shrugged. “It didn’t hurt that much,
and I knew it could happen. I was
trying to push ‘Balder’ off the edge, to get to you. It actually worked, but… the circumstances didn’t allow you to…
come back to your senses.”
“I
remember, yes,” Scarlet murmured, lowering his eyes. “Dianne, all those things you said to me – about me hurting you,
the way I was acting…”
“Yes,
well – ‘hurting’ is rather a big word.
‘Disconcerting’ would better describe how I felt confronted with that…
new aspect of your personality.”
“I
was acting like a jerk, wasn’t I?”
Rhapsody
rolled her eyes. “Oh yes, you
were…” She saw him blush at the remark,
and she smiled, almost despite herself.
Serves him right… She raised a brow. “It was also… interesting to see how easily you settled in
the role of an obnoxious, cocksure womaniser,” she continued. “You were very convincing.”
“Was
I?” he said, raising a brow in
turn. “I can imagine it… surprised
you. And you were probably thinking –
that I might be a little like that myself?”
“I
did – well, yes and no. You are after
all a devilishly handsome man – and it’s a safe bet you would have had your
fair share of success with girls already.”
Rhapsody’s smile widened slightly.
“I just have to think about Destiny, to be reminded of that…”
Scarlet was rather dumbfounded – and
impressed! – that she would take the matter so lightly. He had fully anticipated from her a full
scene of righteous wrath – or at the very least, barely-contained
antagonism. Even considering that he
wasn’t really himself during that whole episode, he had trouble believing she
would not feel annoyed at him on that particular subject. Her temper, after all, was more than a match
for his.
He
nodded very slowly, almost thoughtfully.
“I’d better have a word with my mother soon,” he mused. “Before she
starts telling you stories about when I was younger… and had a girlfriend or two.”
He
raised a curious eye in her direction.
If he expected her to have any reaction – flinch, jump, frown, shoot him
with a murderous glare – it didn’t happen.
She was smirking knowingly at him.
“You
are teasing me,” she commented pleasantly.
“Barely,”
he said, chuckling. “Do you really
think my mother would actually
know about that?”
“I
don’t know…” Rhapsody replied, her brow rising skyward. “I will definitely have to talk to her to
find that out.”
“Now
you’re teasing me,” he
grinned, noting her still amiable tone.
She
only answered with a large grin, before lowering her eyes. For a few seconds, she was silent, then her
brow furrowed in a thoughtful way. “I
do have a question to ask you, though,” she said, a little hesitantly.
“What
about?” Scarlet asked, wondering what could be on her mind.
“It’s
about Anna Preston.” Rhapsody raised
her eyes to look back at him. “Did she
and you ever…? Not during that
stupid game… I mean… for real?”
Scarlet
kept silent for long seconds, as Rhapsody stared at him expectantly, waiting
for his answer. She wondered what could
be taking him so long to give it.
“No,”
he finally said. “Although – it nearly
did happen.”
She
frowned. “Really? When was that?”
“You’ve
got no reason to get jealous, love,” he said quietly, noting her rather barbed
tone, and giving a faint smile as a peace offering. “It was long before you and I… got together. Actually, it was not long after I woke up that first
time – after I broke free from the Mysterons’ control? Anna was the nurse looking after me in
sickbay. She assisted Doctor Fawn with
most of his tests, she brought me food, chatted with me, even played cards and
chess with me… And she showed she was very
interested in me.”
“I
see,” Rhapsody said, nodding her understanding. “And you weren’t?”
“Not
really,” Scarlet replied truthfully.
“She was a very attractive woman – and I was rather flattered by her
attention. But… I couldn’t bring myself to let anything happen between us.” He rubbed his chin, thoughtfully. “I had… issues, with my humanity, back then,
you know? All this… Mysteronisation,
retrometabolism and indestructibility business was so very new to me… I wasn’t able to respond in kind to Anna’s
interest in me. She was kind enough to
understand…”
“I
believe she might still have carried a torch for you, then,” Rhapsody said.
“If
she did – she didn’t let anything on to me.
I… plunged into my work, and didn’t let myself be distracted by the
possibility of entertaining any kind of relationship with a woman back then –
if you remember …”
“I
remember,” she answered, thinking back to how much time they had both wasted
before acknowledging their attraction to each other.
“Since
my Mysteronisation – and before you – there had really been only one woman
in my life,” Scarlet continued sourly.
“And we both know how badly that ended.”
She
nodded again. “I remember that too,”
she acknowledged, lowering her eyes.
“Hey…” Scarlet took her hand in his, and drew her
to him; he gently took her chin and looked deep into her eyes. “Have I already told you how sorry I am to
have hurt you?”
“Numerous
times, since you woke up,” she answered.
“Then
I’m repeating it once again,” Scarlet whispered. “And I want to assure you – that in my heart, there is only one
place for one woman.”
“Your
mother?” she asked in the same tone,
grinning. “I still will be asking her questions, you know… eventually.”
He tutted, giving her an exasperated look.
“You are still teasing me,” he said.
“You
will find out in time…”
“Then
I believe I will have to do more to convince you of my undying love.”
Scarlet
raised his lips to hers, and she leaned toward him…
…
Just at this moment, the door slid open, and almost automatically, they drew
away from each other.
“Behave,
you two,” Symphony Angel said cheerfully, upon entering with Captain Blue in
tow. “You’re pretty lucky that it’s
only us coming in right now…
What if it had been someone else…”
“There’s
no risk any more,” Blue added in the
same tone, as the door closed behind him.
“Now that we know that Doctor Fawn has known about them all along …”
“Please,”
Rhapsody said, scoffing loudly, sitting back straight onto her chair. “It was quite a shock when he mentioned it
to me the first time! But when we
finally asked him what he meant…”
“He
looked at us, rolling big, exasperated eyes,”
Scarlet continued, making a face in imitation of the Cloudbase chief
medical officer’s reaction. “As if we
were children unable to hide a secret from their doting father. ‘How can you believe I would not
notice something like that happening in my sickbay’, he said.” The others chuckled at his imitation of
Fawn’s voice – he had nailed it almost to perfection. “Quite infuriating, I reckon,” Scarlet added with a grin.
The
pleasant banter seemed to put everyone at ease; truthfully, both couples had
been feeling a little uncomfortable, almost dreading this moment when they’d be
meeting face to face. Especially
Scarlet and Blue. For a short time,
after Scarlet’s last words, they just looked at each other in silence, grinning
awkwardly – almost idiotically.
“Adam,”
Scarlet then started, “I don’t know what to say. I’m sorry I…”
Blue
raised his hand to stop his friend, before he could start apologising
profusely. “There’s really nothing to
say on the subject, Paul. Really, it
wasn’t your fault.”
“That’s
not much of a comfort. I could have killed you. Not that it would have been the first time I tried,” Scarlet
added in an undertone.
“Well,
in neither case were you to blame. I was rather in the same situation this
time, remember? When I… er… ‘got lost’
in that character of Hodur. I could
have cut you in two.”
“Where
did you learn to handle a sword like that?!” Scarlet asked with a frown and an appreciative smile.
Blue
grinned and shrugged. “Beats me – I
imagine it wasn’t me at all – but that it was present in the programming of
Hodur’s character. Who knows? Anyway, it would have been really handy to remember every trick when it came to fighting
Burgundy soon after that. I remembered just enough not to get killed.”
“You
remembered just enough to actually win,” Rhapsody retorted.
“My
Viking hero,” Symphony teased, twining an arm around Blue’s shoulders and
hugging him close to her. He smiled in
answer.
“Adam,”
Scarlet continued, “No matter that it was all a game – and that we were not
responsible for our actions – I still want to say how sorry I am for what
happened. For doubting you – and
Dianne. I don’t know how I could even believed all those shameful lies…”
“It
was all in the programming, Paul… In
fact, based on a rather obscure version of the legend of Balder and Hodur – a
version in which both brothers were indeed in love with Nanna…”
“Would
you stop interrupting me – I’m trying to tell you how sorry I am for that… and
for nearly having killed you. Will you
accept my apologies?”
“Only
if you accept mine…”
Scarlet
raised a brow. “What have you got to
apologise for?” He extended his hand
towards Blue – who quickly clasped it.
“I owe you another one… brother.
We all do this time.”
Blue
squeezed the hand vigorously. “I only did what had to be done,” he answered
truthfully. “And only what you’ve done
yourself so many times. And that, I
believe, is a debt we will never be able to fully repay… my brother.”
Scarlet
grinned at Blue’s choice of wording. He
wasn’t that used to displaying his emotions, the way Blue was doing at the
moment, and although he appreciated Blue expressing his friendship so
outwardly, it made him feel a little awkward.
Noticing that, Blue smiled in answer, and released his hand.
“The
important thing is – we all made it back alive,” the blond captain
continued. “Even though we had some casualties… and Captain Black did manage to escape…”
“None
of that could be helped,” Scarlet replied with a sigh. “We’ll mourn our losses – and honour them. As for Captain Black…”
“There
will be another time,” Rhapsody said.
“Another
time,” Scarlet agreed with a nod.
“So
all in all, it’s been a success,” Symphony added.
“Which
calls for a celebration,” Blue finished.
He produced his left hand, that up until that moment, he had kept behind
his back, out of view from Scarlet. It
was holding a bottle of champagne.
“Where did you get that?” Scarlet
asked with surprise – and a very approving tone.
“I’ve
had it for some time,” Blue answered. “Keeping it for a special occasion. I think this is special enough, don’t
you? We beat the Mysterons to their own
game yet again… while the odds were really against us.”
“You
clever dog… I must be really tired not to notice you bringing this into the
room!”
“We
need glasses…” Rhapsody pointed out.
“Got
that covered.” With a mischievous
smile, Symphony showed in turn, from behind her back, four little paper cups
that she had grabbed earlier from the water fountain, in the waiting room. Scarlet chuckled at the sight of them.
“You
two are really made for each other,” he remarked, while Blue was working
on the cork of the bottle.
“You
still doubted that?” Symphony asked. She proudly showed off her hand. “Here.
See what my lover boy gave me…”
Scarlet
gently took the hand and, with Rhapsody, examined the ring adorning the
ring-finger. They both exchanged
knowing glances and smiles.
“So
that makes it official, then?” Scarlet asked with a wink.
Symphony
scoffed. “It’s been official for
months! Didn’t you know that already?!”
“Of
course we do,” Rhapsody grinned. “We’re
just saying that it’s yet another reason to drink that champagne.”
The
cork popped out, without any mess, and dutifully, Blue started filling up the
paper cups that Symphony was holding for him.
“What
should we drink to first, then?”
Rhapsody asked, when she received her cup.
They
looked at each other, as Blue was putting the bottle down onto the floor.
“To
the Mysterons’ defeat?” Symphony suggested.
“To
Spectrum?” Blue offered in turn.
But
Scarlet, with a smile on his lips, shook his head.
“To
brotherhood,” he said, presenting his cup.
The
others nodded in assent, touching the fragile paper cups together, taking great
care not to destroy them or to spill their contents.
“Brotherhood,”
they repeated together.
That
was worth drinking to.
* * *
“We don’t know what
exactly triggered the ‘ending of the game’ last night,” Doctor Fawn, standing
next to the bed, quietly reported to his patient. “But about fifteen minutes after Black woke up, and ten minutes
after Scarlet, everyone onboard Cloudbase started to regain consciousness. Within about three hours, everyone was
awake. Everyone’s suffered some degree
of dehydration, hunger, and cramped muscles – and there were a few cases of
advanced weakness – most of them amongst the members of the senior staff. Nothing that can’t be cured by a good meal,
plenty of fluids and a good rest – as you well know yourself.”
Propped up in the bed
of the private room that had been assigned to him, Colonel White slowly nodded
his understanding, as he listened intently to Fawn’s account of recent
events. Next to his bed, on a little
bedside table, were the remains of a small, healthy meal – and a big pitcher of
water, about half empty. He was still
holding in his hand the glass he had been drinking from.
“We were lucky not to
have more casualties than we did during that game,” the Spectrum commander
brooded.
“We would have if
those ‘Svartalfheim warriors’ had actually been ‘possessed’ members of the
crew,” Fawn remarked. “instead of a simple illusion created by the game. The senior staff were most efficient in
fending them off… We would have had several victims, I’m afraid.” He scratched his ear. “Captain Magenta explained to me that in
computer games, characters like ‘goons’ and ‘foot soldiers’, created as a
‘first level of attackers’ for the player to confront, are often fairly easy to
defeat. Which would explain why the
senior staff were able to repel such a huge number of warriors, in the final
battle.”
“Nevertheless,” White
mused, “they were nearly killed by those… first level attackers, as you said.”
“I never said it was all
that easy for them,” Fawn replied. “No doubt they would eventually have
fallen under sheer weight of numbers – as the Mysterons intended, obviously.” He watched with curiosity, as White lifted
his hand to his face, to stroke the left side of it, almost with apprehension,
and then jiggle his fingers in front of his left eye, looking intently at them. “It wasn’t easy for you either, I know,” the
doctor added with a faint smile.
“It’s so strange,”
White remarked, again stroking his cheek, which was covered by an irritating
three-days’ growth of hair. “To think that this game actually succeeded in…
changing our appearance the way it did.
I fully expected to wake up disfigured and blind in one eye.”
“I know. And don’t worry: you’re not the only one to react that way. Captain Grey has been playing with a stress
ball with his right hand almost from the moment he woke up – as if to reassure
himself he didn’t really lose it, and that he still had it.”
“I can understand the
feeling,” White grunted. He took a sip
from his glass. “Our appearance was not
the only thing that game changed,” he continued, putting the glass down. “I’m afraid there’s been a lot of…
misbehaviour, due to lack of restraint, during that game… There will be much embarrassment,
nervousness… and uneasiness amongst the crew.”
Fawn shrugged. “None of you were responsible, Charles. You couldn’t help yourselves. You all were conditioned by the game’s…
programming, I believe is the right word for it.”
“Oh, I know that – and
I’m not about to hold anyone accountable for anything that might have happened
during that little stay in the fantasy world.
But I’m afraid that I won’t be able to stop people from feeling
uncomfortable, or even humiliated by what they did – or what was done to
them.” In his mind’s eye, White
couldn’t help but conjure the image of the Angels-turned-Valkyries, being
dragged in chains in front of him, in the middle of an assembly of very
appreciative ‘Viking warriors’. He
shook himself. “I’ll be trying to
forgive myself,” he mused. “And I do
hope that everyone onboard will have enough willpower to do just the same for
themselves – and for others. But if
they can’t – I will have a hard time blaming them for being emotional. And I will understand if they want a posting
elsewhere.”
“Let’s hope all hurt
feelings will be put aside, then,” Fawn said.
“Although I quite agree with you, we’ll see a lot of red faces around,
in the next few days…”
“If we only have that,
I believe we’ll be lucky – as long as we can avoid any quarrels… and
fights.”
White drank a long
gulp of his water, before looking down into the now empty glass,
broodingly. “How are the senior staff?”
he asked without looking up, lost in his thoughts.
“Fairly well, all
things considered,” Fawn sighed.
“They’ve been up and about rather quickly – with the ‘symptoms’ I
already mentioned to you. They wanted
to help, but as soon as I had enough lower-ranked personnel, particularly from
sickbay, who had been less stricken than the senior officers – I sent them to
rest. Despite their protests, I might
add. They’re either off duty or on
light duties for a few days, until I decide they are back to full
fitness.”
“You are the doctor,”
White mused.
“Yes, I am… And I do wish that sometimes, people – you
included – would remember that fact.”
White didn’t rise to
the critical comment. “I see you have
taken the matters well in hand, as well,” he simply noted.
“Well, I am the senior
officer in charge at the moment, right? So I had to make quick decisions…
Although Blue seemed to have entertained the notion that he should be
manning the commander’s station…”
“Did he?” White said
with a brief smile.
“I humoured him – to a
certain extent. If he thinks I’ll let
him do all that work as he sees fit, without intervening, he’s sadly
mistaken…” Fawn smiled in turn, seeing
the concerned look on White’s face. “Don’t worry about the base: until the senior staff and proper officers
can resume their usual duties, I assigned lower-ranked officers to their places
– and organised rotas so nobody will tire themselves too much. I called ground for backup, and Captain
Maroon arrived this morning, with a group of agents and technicians, from
various disciplines – they are currently taking over the essential posts.”
“Maroon? He’s a good officer. He’ll do well. What about the Angels?”
“All taken care of,
like the rest. We have enough
experienced fighter pilots to fill in while the Angels recover fully – which, I
expect, won’t be too long. Except for
Symphony Angel – whose concussion will take a little more time to heal -
they’ll be back on duty soon. And Harmony
is still fit for duty. I just hoped she
will not overexert herself, though.”
“I’m sure you will see
to that,” White smiled.
“No use of the Room of
Sleep, of course, for anyone,” Fawn grunted.
“It’s out of order, anyway, since it was used for that stupid game. It’s being repaired right now, by the technician
Captain Maroon brought with him, and purged of the game programming and added
technology that Bromwell put into it.”
The doctor huffed loudly. “If
you ask my opinion, you should have that monstrosity dismantled and sent back
to ground in little pieces...”
“I know you’ve never
been very happy about the Room of Sleep, Doctor…”
“With good
reason: look where it got us!”
“It was simply a
mishandling of an otherwise effective piece of technology,” White pointed
out. “I’m sorry, but we do need the
Room of Sleep, if only for emergency use, as we’ve been using it up until now,
if this base is to keep working efficiently round the clock. And we need it to be repaired, as quickly as
possible.”
Fawn blew a deep
sigh. “Yes, I just knew you would say
that. And I guess you are right,” he mumbled, looking disheartened.
“Don’t be such a
grouch, Doctor,” White said, fighting not to smile too openly. “Please, carry on with your report.”
“Those who suffered the most from the
experience – Captain Scarlet, Lieutenant Green… and yourself – are receiving
special treatment.” Fawn smiled when
White looked up at him. “That means
plenty of rest, lots of good meals, all the water and juice you can drink – and no duty at all for at
least the next week.”
“I feel fine…”
“Of course you
do. You didn’t nearly have a heart
attack,” Fawn scoffed. “You said it yourself: I’m the doctor. And you will have to trust me on that judgement. You will stay put, Colonel, even if I have
to restrain you to force you to it.”
“I believe you’re
quite capable of doing it too,” White deadpanned. “Will Green be all right?”
“He’s a strong young
man. If he hadn’t been, he would be
dead right now. He was the weakest of
the bunch when he woke up late last evening.
If I understand what happened in the fantasy world, he suffered the most
from the confrontation with the Svartalfheim warriors – but acted like a true
hero by dealing Captain Black the blow that sent him back to reality. Which could have been what triggered your return,
all of you. We will probably never know
for sure… But nevertheless, he might
have saved you all.”
“Does he know that?”
“He certainly does…”
“Then we haven’t heard
the last of it,” White said with a faint smile.
“I think you are
right!” Fawn chuckled. “It’ll make him
popular with the ladies – especially in sickbay!”
“Good for the
lad. He certainly deserves a
break.” White paused for a moment, and
then returned to seriousness. “And what about Scarlet? You said he’s confined
to rest for the next week too.”
“His was the worst
experience, Charles,” Fawn confirmed.
“Trapped inside that tank of drugged water – for days… Oh, the wounds to
his body are healing fine – if perhaps a little slower than they would normally
do – but he’s very weak. He will need
time to recover fully. I gave him his
usual room. He’s resting fine, right
now. Maybe sleeping better than he has
for a long time.”
“He deserves his
rest,” White said with a nod of approval.
“Make him comfortable and make sure that he is not disturbed more than
necessary for the next few days.”
“Already done that,
Colonel. Although I might not be able
to stop close friends from visiting him from time to time – especially his lady
friend.” Fawn grinned knowingly, and saw just the ghost of a smile appear on
White’s lips, before he became sombre and pensive again.
“It’s a shame we
missed the opportunity to capture Captain Black,” White said. “An opportunity like the one we had doesn’t
present itself every day. But… I
suppose it was to be expected that the Mysterons would take action to ensure
his safety.”
“Indeed,” Fawn
nodded. “Harmony was quite shocked to
witness the way he was… teleported, shall we say?… right there, in front of her
eyes.”
“Rather like Scarlet’s
report of what happened in Monte Carlo, during the Verdain affair,” White agreed.
“Right. About ten minutes after he had disappeared,
while we were all busying ourselves with the crew waking up everywhere onboard,
we received notification from the automated security system that a plane was
leaving the hangar bay for an unauthorised launch from the main airstrip.” Fawn sighed. “It took off before we even thought of doing anything – not that
we would have been able to, mind you.
Three guesses as to who was on board?”
“Captain Black, of
course…”
“Who else? Everybody
else onboard was accounted for. We
checked that out.”
“Mmm… Could that mean that the Mysterons’ power of
teleportation works only over restricted distances?”
“I wouldn’t know,
Colonel. But my guess would be to never
underestimate them. We still don’t know
the extent of their powers – and quite frankly, what we do know of them so far
is disturbing enough as it is.”
White acknowledged the
remark with a nod. “You did very well,
Doctor. In more ways than one.” He became thoughtful again. “I’m thinking of putting you in for a
commendation – you and Captain Blue, and Harmony and Rhapsody Angels. You did more than your duty. Without all your efforts – and your
dedication – all of Cloudbase’s crew
would have been lost. We’d all be
dead.”
“We only did our job,
Charles… Although I must admit, we were
rather desperate to succeed. The
outcome would have been disastrous, if not.”
“I’m sorry for the
loss of Nurse Preston, Edward,” White offered genuinely.
Fawn sighed. “She was an excellent colleague,” he said
with a sad tone to his voice. “She has
been with us since day one, and – she’ll be truly missed. We should count ourselves lucky that she was
the only victim of the game as such – not counting those who were struck down
before, so the Mysterons could have agents on board to carry out their plan.”
Colonel White nodded
again. “Lieutenant Burgundy, two
security guards – Rochester and Petrie – and Technician Bromwell.” He glanced at Fawn, remembering the doctor’s
earlier report concerning those men.
“And not all of them Mysteron reconstructs.”
“No,” Fawn said
harshly enough. “Rochester was not – he
was as human as you or I. And so was
Bromwell, in the weeks it took to set everything up. He had to be, or we would
have detected him easily at one point or another, if he had been a Mysteron.”
“Logical deduction,
yes,” White mused.
“And he did confirm it
to me afterwards. It was later that he was killed, to be
replaced by a replicant - I was just foolish enough not to think of that eventuality! He was Mysteronised, when the Mysterons
deemed it necessary for them to do so.
Just like Petrie and Burgundy. We found their bodies this morning –
their deaths were about three days ago – meaning they were killed just before
this devious plan was executed.”
“Rochester killed
them?”
“Ballistics still need
to be run – but Rochester probably killed Petrie, at the very least. They were bunking in the same room, and
that’s where the real Petrie was found. Then they might have shared the work of
killing the others. Bromwell probably
never suspected a thing. As for
Burgundy…”
“They needed someone
in the Control Room,” White said in understanding. “It just happened that Burgundy was to take over duty at the
moment they had chosen to execute their plan.”
“Unfortunately for
Burgundy, yes. They could have taken anyone.
Including Lieutenant Green – or even yourself.”
“So that’s how it
happened,” White said grimly. “That’s
how Cloudbase’s security was so easily foiled…
They used human agents to get through to the very heart of our most secure base. I can’t say I am very pleased, Doctor. In fact, I’m upset they could have pulled off a stunt like this.
Spectrum personnel – military and civilian alike – were supposed to have been
carefully hand-picked, the very best people available – the most loyal and
dedicated. Obviously, there were some glitches in the selection.” White looked up at Fawn. “How could human beings side with the
Mysterons?” he asked with bitterness.
“Spectrum personnel especially – they should know what their
ultimate aim is. I don’t quite
understand the logic in this.”
“Perhaps there isn’t
any logic in it,” Fawn replied quietly.
“Or rather – none that we in Spectrum could understand.”
“But those were Spectrum
people…”
“Charles, I don’t
think that those behind this are really Spectrum people. Or if they are, they’re not dedicated to the
same cause as us.” Fawn paused, a
little hesitant to continue, as White raised inquiring eyes to him, obviously wondering
what he was trying to say. Fawn
sighed. He thought of waiting to reveal
what he had learned just recently; but now, there was little point in not
telling it right away.
“I examined
Rochester’s body,” he explained. “And
Bromwell’s. Well, the original Bromwell’s
body, to be precise. Not an
in-depth examination, mind you, I haven’t had time for that as yet. Just a quick assessment for the moment… I…
didn’t find anything odd on Rochester’s body.
But for Bromwell… I discovered
something…”
“What did you find?”
White asked, getting impatient with Fawn’s continuing hesitation.
“You’re not going to
like it…”
“Doctor, I’m already
beyond that. So tell me now: what did you find?”
Fawn sighed, rubbing
his chin in a thoughtful fashion. He
approached the bed. “I found… scars, on
Bromwell’s body,” he explained. “Needle
marks, to be exact. Many of them, and
very deep. Some of them on his
forearms, but most of them…” He lifted his hand and rubbed the nape of his own
neck, his eyes set on White, to register his reaction. “… were located here.”
White’s eyes grew
wider in sudden understanding. “Oh no…”
he murmured. “The Dream Spinner?”
“I’m afraid so, yes. And that means…”
“The Network.” White looked down, a frown deepening on his
brow, as he spat the word. “I thought
we’d rid ourselves of them.”
“Did you truly believe
that?” Fawn asked bitterly. “I didn’t.
I’m pretty sure that if we study whatever stuff had been added to the
Room of Sleep’s machinery – and if we test the programming that was used for
the game – we’d find similarities with the Dream Spinner apparatus…”
“Quite possible, yes…”
White rubbed his own
neck, a shiver running down his spine.
He still remembered what the Network had done to him, many months
before, when they had strapped him onto the mind-control machine known as the
Dream Spinner, in order to brainwash him into doing the Mysterons’ bidding.
That he had escaped the treatment and regained his own free-will was nearly a
miracle. But the experience wasn’t something he was likely to forget.
“How old are the
marks?”
“A few weeks,” Fawn answered
with a sigh. “Two months, perhaps? The marks were deep – which is why they left
scars.”
“Those men were not
responsible, then…”
“Bromwell was not, at
least,” Fawn agreed in a gentler
voice. “No more than you were yourself
at the time the Network had you under their control… As for Rochester, I really can’t tell. His body had no marks on it, but it might only mean that those
marks had completely disappeared – or
were even removed. It does not mean he
didn’t undergo the Dream Spinner treatment, like Bromwell obviously did.”
“Like I did,” White
remarked bitterly. He still retained a
faint mark from the ordeal, where the needle which had been introduced directly
into his brain had entered. “But it
could also mean he was acting completely of his own volition,” he
remarked. “And that he was supervising
Bromwell’s actions.”
Fawn nodded. “This is another possibility, yes. I might find out more when I examine the
body more closely.”
“Please do that,
Doctor.” White’s features
hardened. “What it does also mean
is that the Network has infiltrated Spectrum – as it claimed to have
infiltrated other Security Organisations. We thought we were safe from that –
but we are not. We’ll have to tighten
our security, check and re-check all personnel.”
“That seems sensible
enough.”
“Doctor, I want you to
give special instructions to all medical personnel in Spectrum facilities
around the world. I want all personnel
to undergo their annual medical check – as soon as possible. Starting with everyone on Cloudbase. Civilians, military, from the lowest workers
sweeping the floor to the highest ranked officers of the senior staff.”
“You want the medical
staff to check if anyone has been subjected to the Dream Spinner
treatment?” Fawn asked with a frown.
“The treatment leaves
traces that are easily detectable.
Scars on the back of the neck… foreign substances in the blood… A medical examination should be able to find
that out.”
“S.I.G.,” Fawn
muttered. “That operation will take
time, if you want all personnel from all facilities to be checked.”
“No matter. It will take as long as it has to,” White
replied. “Once we can be sure of the
condition of the senior staff, we’ll hold a staff meeting – and inform them of
the matter – discreetly. We don’t need
the word to spread about this.”
“You will have to
inform Intelligence,” Fawn pointed out.
“It’s an Internal Affairs question.
They will have to know.”
White nodded
thoughtfully. “I’ll make contact with
Thomas Wade – as soon as he passes his ‘annual’. I know it sounds paranoid, but we don’t have much choice. We have enough to do with the Mysterons
right now, without having to deal with human infiltrators. Our security has been breached – and that
could have terrible consequences. It
means we’re vulnerable to inside attacks – that we can’t efficiently do our job
to protect the world, as stipulated in our mandate. Something like what happened here should never happen
again within Spectrum. Not anywhere in
the organisation – and certainly not on Cloudbase. If there are still Network agents
infiltrated in the organisation, we must root them out.”
“I agree,” Fawn
said. “That should take care of
conditioned agents… But what of the
Network itself? What about those who
are running that organisation – collaborating with the Mysterons for their own
purposes – however unreasonable and despicable they might be?”
“Yes, the
Network,” White murmured, his blue eyes
narrowing, and flashing with a cold anger brewing deep inside of him. “We will have to deal with them soon,
won’t we? We will have to find them,
before they do any more damage than they have already done – and bring them
down… once and for all!”
THE END
(who are not obligated to read them – but hey, you
might find them interesting!)
When I started this story, at the
end of March 2005, for the Multiverse Challenge, I never
intended for it to be this long. At the
beginning, it was supposed to be a five-part story. But as it is often the case when writing – especially a
multi-levelled, multi-part story like this one – you find out that you need
more room to explain the situation in which your characters find themselves in. Not only that, by [but] these
characters often have the tendency to take over your story and develop it their
own way! They are very difficult to
control, these characters, especially when they are as stubborn as those
inhabiting the Captain Scarlet universe!
That said, the story mainly went
the way I had originally envisaged it – albeit with more details and few minor
changes to it. I’ve always been
interested in mythology, for nearly as long as I can remember. Greek/Roman, Arthurian, Norse… even going as far as including modern
‘super-hero’ mythology in that list – after all, comic books stories are but
the modern extension of those fantasy stories of the past, where powerful gods
ruled the universe, and mighty heroes
fought unimaginable threats to Humanity, facing villains and monsters alike… Not that different than any super-hero in
any comic strip!
Captain Scarlet &
the Mysterons, created for
television, and polished through time with details added by various media
(press releases, magazines, annuals, comic strip stories, articles, various
books, audio-adventures… and even fan fiction to some extent…) certainly has
its own mythology, with its own ‘demi-god-like’ invincible hero and his loyal
companions, its warrior-like women, riding their ‘white steeds’ to battle, its
god-like figure – all of them fighting the ‘invisible forces of evil’,
themselves embodied by their most malevolent agent – who once been on the side
of good. Classic mythology, straight
out of the History’s traditional tales.
While over the years we have often
heard talk of similarity between the world of Captain Scarlet and the Christian
religion (Cloudbase/Heaven, White/God, Scarlet/Jesus Christ, Black/Lucifer, the Angels, etc.), and
although I do not deny such comparison – which fully demonstrates once again
the relationship between the series and traditional folklore anyway – I myself
found there was also some aspects of the series which bore some
surprising similarities with the Norse myths.
So was born the idea for this
story. It took a number of years to
actually overcome the many difficulties presented by the task of writing
it - to find a proper plot that will
take our favourite heroes in the Land of the Vikings, to explain their often
out-of-characters behaviour – to make it believable, they had to act like warlike
barbarians, in a fantasy world which was not their own, and at the same time,
it was essential that these characters would still remain the same characters
we all knew from the series – that their own personalities would show
themselves through these ‘roles’ they were forced to play – and that they will
eventually come back to their senses and their own world.
It was when the idea that they
would all be brought into a 3D-Game – which came through a chat with friends,
although I don’t remember it what circumstances it came up exactly – that finally overcome the last problem of
putting the characters into the needed settings.
As for the rest… the Mysterons
have powers no-one of us can hope to comprehend…
The ‘Network’ and ‘Dream Spinner’ ideas are my own, and
first made their appearance in the story
Spectrum is White, some events
of which are referred in the last chapter of this story. It’s also in Spectrum
is White that it is
revealed to the readers that Doctor Fawn has known for a long time that Captain
Scarlet and Rhapsody Angel are a couple – a ‘secret’ that Colonel White also
knows, but has taken very good care not to reveal so far. This story is therefore set after the
events in Spectrum is White and those
in A Symphony in Blue, in which
Captain Blue and Symphony Angel are officially engaged. The Network will make a reappearance in
future stories.
The relationship between Captain
Blue and Symphony is, of course, canon, being hinted at in some episodes, while
the relationship between Captain Scarlet and Rhapsody Angel is semi-canon,
inspired by hints in stories from Century 21 books (Captain Scarlet and the
Mysterons, by John Teydon, and the graphic novel, The Angels.
Mary J. Rudy developed the relationship in many of her stories, and other fan fiction
authors – including myself – followed.
The stormy relationship between Captain Ochre and Melody Angel is not
canon, and had been suggested before in my short story Master
of the Night. The relationship appears to take a further step in this story. But who knows? With Ochre and Melody, there is really nothing that
definite… Time will tell.
The story of Captain
Scarlet’s past relationship with another woman – which ended badly… is still in
the work. It will be for another
time, promised!
My thanks to Marion Woods, who
acted as ‘test reader’ throughout the writing of
this story, and whose comments have been useful, and to my beta-reader, Hazel Köhler, without whom this story will only be a
jumble of words without sense. You
performed an invaluable task, Hazel, and I will be eternally grateful.
Also thanks to Gerry Anderson and
Sylvia Anderson, and all those who worked with them, for the creation of the
Captain Scarlet and the Mysterons series.
Finally, thanks to you, the
readers, for reading this – with or without the author’s notes!